STARSHIELD Volume 1: Sentinels By Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman Agent: Jonathon Lazear The Lazear Agency 430 First Avenue North / Suite 416 Minniapolis, Minnisota 55401 (612) 332-8640 AUTHOR’S NOTE: What you are looking at is a unique document. This is the original manu- script as it was submitted to the publisher in its first completed form. There have been changes, to be sure, as it has gone through editorial (including a complete rewrite of the first five chapters of the book when it first appeared in paperback). This, however, was our original vision -- flawed as it was. We hope you enjoy this glimps into our creative world. While you’re at it, we hope that you enjoy the story as well. Tracy Hickman October, 1997 Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman. All Rights Reserved. Permission is given to the purchaser of this CD-ROM to print the contents of this file directly from the original CD-ROM file once for their personal use only. Any other reproduction or transmission of the content of this file, either in whole or in part, including but not limited to photocopying, printing and/ or internet distribution is strictly prohibited. For information concerning this copyright, contact: Tracy Hickman 720 S. River Road / Suite A210, St. George, Utah 84790 or via email at zanfib@starshield.com. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 1 Contents STARSHIELD ................................................................ 1 E’toris Maxim ..................................................... 216 PROLOGUE: MYTH AND LEGEND .......................... 4 Nine Oracles ....................................................... 216 ALPHA: THE BOOK OF MERINDA ........................... 6 APPENDIX II: QUANTUM WEATHER .................. 217 Chapter 1: Cascade ........................................................ 7 Quantum Fronts ........................................... 217 Chapter2: Minor Inconvenience .................................. 13 Quasi-stable states, Zones, and Convergence217 Chapter 3: Inflight ....................................................... 18 Transitional Fronts ...................................... 218 Chapter 4: Keepers of the Citadel ............................... 22 Flynch-Halpert Q-dex.................................. 218 Chapter 5: Avenue of Diversion .................................. 26 Chapter 6: Dialogues .................................................... 32 APPENDIX III: SYNTHETIC MINDS ..................... 219 Chapter 7 : Freefall ...................................................... 37 APPENDIX IV: TRANSLATION NOTE .................. 220 BETA: BOOK OF ARCHILUS .................................... 42 Chapter 8: ARCHILUS LOST ..................................... 43 Chapter 9: Into the Frying Pan .................................... 45 Chapter 10: Uncertain Death ........................................ 50 Chapter 11: Information Half-life ................................. 55 Chapter 12: Dissonance ................................................ 61 Chapter 13: Inquisitas .................................................. 68 Chapter 14: No Place Like Home ................................. 73 Chapter 15: Old Friends ............................................... 79 Chapter 16: Escape ....................................................... 86 Chapter 17: Maelstrom ................................................. 91 GAMMA: BOOK OF THE SENTINALS ................... 99 Chapter 18: Omnet ..................................................... 100 Chapter 19: Oracles .................................................... 104 Chapter 20: Sword of Knowledge .............................. 109 Chapter 21: Runaway ................................................. 113 Chapter 22: Legends ................................................... 120 Chapter 23: Oscan ...................................................... 127 Chapter 24: Faster than Thought ................................ 131 Chapter 25: Minor Deceptions .................................. 136 Chapter 26: Honor Among Thieves ............................ 141 Chapter 27: Orders of Faith ........................................ 145 Chapter 28: Detour ..................................................... 150 Chapter 29: Underworld ............................................. 155 Chapter 30: Resurrections .......................................... 159 Chapter 31: Tempted and Tried .................................. 166 Chapter 32: Departures ............................................... 171 OMEGA: BOOK OF KHENDIS-DAI ....................... 176 Chapter 33: Avadon .................................................... 177 Chapter 34: Blasphemy .............................................. 183 Chapter 35: Downfall ................................................. 189 Chapter 36: Starlight ................................................... 194 Chapter 37: Convergence ........................................... 199 Chapter 38: Enlightenment ......................................... 204 Chapter 39: Unified Fields ......................................... 208 Chapter 40: New Home .............................................. 212 APPENDIX I: OMNET .............................................. 216 Purpose ........................................................ 216 History ......................................................... 216 Organization ................................................ 216 Librae .................................................................. 216 Vestis ................................................................... 216 © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 2 Colophon: Being an account of the journeys of one Captain Jeremy Griffiths (USN) as translated into the English Language for the class IV planet known locally as Earth. Be it known hereby that this translation and distribution is provided in fulfillment of requirements under the New Worlds Contact Pact of 9211 I.C. for first contact with emerging industrial worlds — particularly Provision 972.E.815.a which requires ‘emerging sentient planetary societies . . . be gradu- ally introduced to the realities of galactic society . . . through the use of local channels of entertainment media . . . in order to minimize cultural shock and distress.” This document is distributed by IGNM, the Intra-galactic News Matrix, a division of OMNET, in express compliance with those guidelines prior to initiating direct contact. When you want the really big picture, turn to IGNM. IGNM: a universe of perspective you can trust. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 3 Prologue: Myth and Legend Shauna-kir walked the stars. They were her birthright. They were her home. She danced through the nebula clouds of the galactic disks with a silent step for fear of awakening the new stars within too soon. She laughed, her hair whipping playfully about her oval face as the gales of the quantum wave fronts destroyed civiliza- tions, histories and ideas around her. She turned and considered them for a time, those worlds where the passing of one reality for another had caused the life their to shudder and cry out in pain. It saddened her, for such was her greatness that she could be sad at the passage of such a small thing. Yet sadness was not her nature. She turned again, diving through the black holes as a swimmer moves through water surfacing again in another time and place. Each beauty enraptured her. Each horror contemplated to its solid depth. Until, at last, she looked deep into the eye of the galaxy and, through its rotating singularity, saw a gem. Black, it was, its facets becoming more and more complex with its depth until its heart was obscured. It was the greatest of prizes and Shauna-kir’s heart nearly burst for it. Not for the beauty of the gem — for gems were her specialty and the rarest and most beautiful were made by her hand. By all accounts, this gem was not the most beautiful. Yet within its depths, this gem held another prize: a prize which was obscured by the facets of the crystal. The prize sang to the soul of Shauna-kir for its name was mystery and never before had Shauna-kir encountered anything that was new or hidden. “That which is hidden compels us,” came the sleepy, deep voice over her shoulder. Shauna-kir turned to the Void which blotted out both stars and space alike, a hole in all creation drifting near her. She spoke to him by name. “Obem-ulek, you come to us unbidden. What know you of this gem?” The Void drifted slowly around her in a sensuous nothing, considering her yet not foolish enough to attempt surrounding her. “Why, nothing and everything, Shauna-kir! I know only that it’s worth lies deep within it. Through it’s eyes only you may experience all creation and only through it’s knowledge will you find your destiny. Sadly, all else is left a mystery,” Omeb-ulek lied the half-lie, speaking only truth enough to satisfy his sister. “For knowledge is a mystery who are without it. Knowledge is a prison for those who lack it. Knowledge is slavery for those who have it used against them. Does not Kendis-dai keep you in mystery? Are you not a prisoner of his Mantle of Wisdom? Are you not a slave to Kendis-dai before all he knows that you lack?” Shauna-kir considered all these things for she knew that Obem-ulek was a cunning brother. Yet the words were echoing in her heart and the desire was within her to honor Kendis-dai and not be a slave to him. So it was that she turned from him and Chose — for choice was the greatest of gifts given to all her kin — and in the choosing she dove down from the stars and into the heart of the black gem. The sound of her crossing the boundary rippled across the cosmos. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 4 Far from her, at the boundaries of all creation, Kendis-dai heard the murmur of her passage. Fear gripped him in the instant, for he knew that Obem-ulek was abroad and that his hatred was terrible indeed. The Starshield he brought with him to guard creation. The Nightsword he wielded to order all things to his will. His mantle he wore that all knowledge of what was and what would be could rule in impartial judgment. Thus armored, he flashed across the skies of a million million worlds unheeding of the chaos in his wake. In the moment he came to the eye of the galaxy and found the hateful Obem-ulek drifting triumphantly through the stars. “She is lost to you, Kendis-dai!” Obem-ulek’s voice ripped time and space. Creation slowed and watched. “Shauna-kir walks the stars no more.” Yet Kendis-dai knew for the mantle of his wisdom was upon him. He saw the gem and saw all that had gone before and all that was to happen after and he Knew. She had fallen from the stars by her own volition. “You offered her knowledge,” Kendis-dai spoke and his quiet words filled the universe. “Knowl- edge of life and death. Knowledge of pain and joy. Knowledge of health and sickness. You offered her all that experience can teach.” From far within the void, Obem-ulek grinned. “You offered her life and death. There is only one great teacher of the gods,” Kendis-dai spoke evenly. “The experience of mortality.” “I have won,” Obem-ulek roared. “She is fallen to mortality and shall die. You, Kendis-dai, are but half a soul without her. Fall with her and you surrender creation to me! Stay and you shall fight me as half a soul, sick for the loss of your mate for when she returns she shall be more powerful than us both and my victory will be complete!” Kendis-dai smiled and its brilliance shook the Void of Obem-ulek to its core. “You are clever, Obem-ulek, but you know not the heart; and this is your flaw,” Kendis-dai’s words sparkled across the eternities. “I do, indeed, go with my love into that forgetful place of mortal- ity, but why should I not share my fate with those who made it possible?” Thus did Kendis-dai embrace Obem-ulek whose cries fell through uncounted years to the ears of frightened civilizations on untold worlds. Together they fell into mortality, forsaking their own powers for wisdom’s sake and for the love of Shaun-akir. There, among mortals, did Kendis-dai vow to learn knowledge and experience with the prom- ise that when the time was ripe and the universe was in need of his hand once more, he and Shaun-akir would return to the stars and forge a new empire. Until that day, the Mantle of Kendis-dai, his Nightsword and Starshield lay hidden by his guardian servants in the temple of the stars. Far from the sight of mortal eyes, they wait until that day. — The Lay of Kendis-dai © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 5 ALPHA: THE BOOK OF MERINDA (3256 Years Later) © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 6 Chapter 1: Cascade Merinda Neskat stepped carefully about the slick rocks, the cool mists swirling about her cheeks in the evening. It was wet, to be sure, and soon she knew that her hair would be heavy with the mists, her thick curls struggling to maintain their shape against the clinging dew. Her clothing was already soaking through — the promise of a cool later when she returned to the dryer climates higher up. But for now, with the air nearly as wet as she was and dancing around her in gray forms, she was content with the feeling of the water on her bare arms and legs. “Immodest,” she could hear the Dex Libris, her most immediate superior intone in that sepulcher voice that was her hallmark. “An Atis Librae of the Omnet should command more respect in her demeanor. How do you hope to get off the rock and make a career for yourself if you do not respect yourself enough to allow others to respect you.” Merinda choked off the giggle that the thought elicited and stood suddenly erect. “Yes, Libris Gildesh,” she said in her most mocking serious tone, “I shall uphold the honor of the Omnet even in my sleep.” The truth was that she was serious — far too serious for many of those who worked around her. Merinda believed that she was saving the universe, in her own way and in her own small part. She openly disdained the others around her who did not understand the importance of ‘recovering the past, preserving the present and protecting the future’ as the slogan of her order maintained. She rarely socialized at least as far as most of her coworkers were concerned. But, as Merinda reminded herself, she didn’t need to. She nearly caught herself giggling again at the thought, kicked a curtain of water into the air before her with her bare feet, and once more began picking her way around the rocks. She loved it here. Her own home world was wet like this though not nearly so constantly warm. That planet that had been the first place she knew had seasons — a concept which the local inhabitants found droll at best and frighteningly incomprehensible at worst. The warmth of the mists pounding through the air over the surging water of the rocks was filled with life and comfort; a safe haven from the doldrums of her other existence. The monastery was cold despite the heat, cold in a way that no sun could ever change. It was an austere place and some thought that it suited her — but then, they didn’t really know her did they? The outcropping of rock was coming to an end with a great pillar of stone jutting from the frothing water. With practiced ease, Merinda reached up for the hand hold. A moment’s breath. A kick of her shining legs in the filtered light and she swung around the stone to its far side. Merinda caught her breath, daring not to breath. The sight always struck the wind from her, as her mother used to say, a vision of surpassing beauty and wonder. It had taken her nearly an hour to walk the path to this spot yet the time spent and the exertions of the way vanished in the moment. The Denali Falls of Brishan V were once a religious secret held to be a vision which only the © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 7 local priests could full understand or appreciate. The waters gathered their strength from the high mountains of the Krevish mountain range, a place where the ancient gods of this world were held to have lived under blankets of the sky. The tears of the goddess Rhishan, weeping at the death of her three boys at the hands of their cruel uncle Umbleh, were said to be the source of the three rivers that converged at the top of Denali canyon and formed the great falls that cascaded with a deafening thun- der nearly a thousand feet into the pool at its feet. Yet the beauty of the falls was not found merely in the beauty of its height nor in the ancient monastery whose buttresses arched magnificently over the confluence of all three of the rivers. The falls were made special by the Klenith vines that threatened to choke the waters at the fall’s crest. The twisting vines were hollow, their nature allowing the water itself to flow through their tubing. The effect was doubly beneficial. The hollow conduits of the Klenith vines filtered the water for sustenance, thus purifying it as it fell through its tangled shape and, better still, its twisting forms wove the pure water into braids of shimmering elegance in it’s cascade. Merinda had, as always, timed her arrival well, for the sun D’rak was settling for the night at the edge of the plains far below. Quite suddenly, it seemed, Merinda’s world became suffused with salmon-colored light as the cascades and mists at the base of the falls were suffused with the twilight glow at the end of another day. Merinda stood ankle deep on a sand bar she had come to think of as her own and felt all of it become a part of her again. This was life, she thought, this is sustenance. I need so very little to bring me the joy that I want out of life. I’ll make my own way and endure the pain and the loneliness and the frustration so long as there is a place like this that I can call home. I’ll travel wherever destiny takes me so long as there is always someone, some singular one, who is home awaiting me. The dark figure moved behind her, nearly invisible in the billowing obscurity of the thrashing water. Footfalls without sound. No wasted movement. As the figure moved toward her it was revealed as a tall man, his deep gray tailored clothing covering him from head to foot. The dark cloak he wore over it all was heavy from the mists and did not billow as was its custom. Her back was toward him as he closed the distance between them, coolly and efficiently, his large gray gloves reaching for her. Merinda stood relaxed, gazing up into the woven cascade of the falls. Her eyes flashed sideways. Suddenly Merinda stepped backward, both hands moving up to grasp one of the threatening arms. She thrust her hip into the approaching man’s own waist, attempting to leverage the attacker over her. The man reversed, stepping sideways and twisting her arm back around behind her. She cried out from the pain but in the same moment hooked one of her feet behind the ankle of her attacker and shoved herself bodily toward him with her free leg. They both tumbled backward against a rock outcropping at the edge of the beach. The gray man’s breath rushed from him in a sudden “oof”, his grip relaxed slightly from the impact. Merinda wrenched her hand free, kicked the man into the rock again. As he rebounded unsteadily, she grabbed him by both hands, fell backward into the sand and planted both feet planted into his stomach. The dark robes fluttered over her as she kicked and released him. The tall man sailed head down over her, his arms flailing in the thick air as he unceremoniously fell back-first into the shallow waters at the beach’s edge. The deluge of his impact had not yet hit the ground when she was already rolled to her feet and leaping for him, her hand drawing her weapon from her belt as she moved. The final droplets were just hit the water’s surface when she pressed one knee against his chest and leveled the weapon’s sites between her assailant’s eyes. His eyes. Those granite gray eyes. He sputtered as a wave from the pool washed over his face, spraying water and coughing to clear his mouth and nose. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 8 Merinda laughed. “Oh, great and powerful Vestis Novus I see that you have once again proven your superiority to us lowly Atis Librae. Will you surrender to me now?” The hood fell back from the prone man as he craned his head up out of the water, straining to keep his face above the surface. With the action came an explosion of black curled hair above a strong face. It may have been considered to heavy in the jaw for some people’s tastes, Merinda reflected — certainly that was the opinion of Librae Brenai, the Omnet coworker with whom she had roomed ever since they had first met for their initiate training on Netprime over two years ago. Kiria Brenai had quite firmly stated her opinion that Queekat Shn’dar could break stone with his lantern jaw, and, for all Kiria knew, probably did. Then, as Merinda watched, those gray eyes flashed at her and a wide smile spread across his strong, angular face. Those eyes, she knew, were for her; that smile, somehow her property. “I surren- der, Mistress Librae,” he spoke in a high, fluting voice, “to the honor of your order and its superior training.” Merinda’s eyes went wide with mock disbelief, “What? Not to me?” Her knee pressed his chest down again, plunging his face momentarily beneath the small waves. “Yes, yes,” Queekat sputtered as he surfaced again half laughing, “I surrender to you.” Merinda laughed. She collapsed lovingly on top of him — nearly sending him back under water a third time — and then rolled with him back up onto the beach. “Oh, Kat, when I heard you were coming, I hoped you might remember this place — this one place that is more dear to me than any in all the creations.” “There are many more beautiful and terrible places in the stars than this one,” Queekat shook his hair at her, spraying water into her squealing face. “Not to me, you brute,” she replied when at last she could. “We met here, you and I. This is our place, our private little universe so far from the worries of our professions or directors or . . .” “Or the E’toris,” Queekat continued for her. “Say, how is the old cliff-goat anyway?” Merinda screwed her face into a belligerent look that was betrayed by the brightness of her eyes locked on his. She reached over with her cupped hand and splashed a small sheet of water in his general direction. “Hey,” he protested with little protest. “Our E’toris Librae is fine, I believe and, as I am sure that you as ambassador and investigator for the Omnet are well aware, is not planetside presently.” “Oh, really?” Merinda almost became serious. “Oh, Kat, don’t mistake me for stupid. You know as well as I that your visit would have sent her into a fit of preparations and ceremonies. You were her brightest and fairest of the fair to ever leave this rock. Imagine, a lowly information sifter from the D’Rakan Empire actually rising to the post of Inquisitor of the Omnet. Kat, if she’d known you were coming there would be so much ceremony that I’d never get to see you.” “Yeah, E’toris Wishtan is awfully proud of her magnificent D’Rakan Empire.” Queekat sat up slowly, drawing his knees up and hugging them as he looked up toward the first stars appearing directly overhead through the mists. “I use to think so, too — until I left here. D’Rakan Empire is a find sounding name until you put it up against the galaxy. Then — well, then it tends to get pretty small, Rini.” Merinda rested her head again her hands in the sand. Queekat had called her by the familiar of her name and she knew, somehow just knew, that he still felt for her as he had those months before. “What’s it like, Kat — out there, I mean. What’s it like for an Inquisitor.” Queekat smiled and shook his head. “It’s different than we thought, Rini. More complicated. More subtle. Good guys and bad guys get lost in the details. Black and white begins to look gray from © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 9 a distance — as gray as these robes.” “But that’s your job, isn’t it?” Merinda asked, not quite understanding what he was telling her. “Separating the black and the white in the details? You’re the Vestis inquisitors who take all this infor- mation that we churn through in the Atis Librae and pinpoint where the truth is.” Queekat snorted, “Right. You sift through the mud and when something really horrible turns up, we Vestis get to clean it up.” Ah,” she said, cocking her head to one side mischievously, “is my handsome paladin of the universe feeling a bit peckish today?” “Peckish?!” Queekan leaped so quickly to his feet that Merinda froze, frightened at the change that overcame him. He stood over her now, a sullen rage barely restrained within him. “You’ve no idea what’s really going on out there, do you, Merinda? What it is we have do deal with? There are fifty- seven minor stellar empires in this sector alone, fifteen of which aren’t even aware that there is other life in the universe and seven of which are preparing to go to war right now. Damn it, Merinda, two of those are arming themselves for a war over interstellar exportation of indigenous cheeses. Here we are, trying to recover the wisdom and knowledge lost when the Kendis Imperium fell — three thousand years ago, mind you — and we’re preoccupied when over six trillion lifeforms threatened over moldy milk products!” Queekan stopped, able for the first time to see past his anger. He looked down at Merinda. Don’t move, she thought, purposefully allowing her face to go completely neutral toward him. Let him take his time and he’ll come around to what’s really bothering him. He always does. Queekan sighed and knelt wearily in the sand before her. “Sorry, Rini. I guess I’m just not myself anymore.” Merinda lay slowly back on her elbows. Her voice barely carried over the rumble of the falls beyond Queekat but her words were distinct, their meaning clear. “You always knew just who you were and where you were going. I remember standing in the Golden Court beneath a hallow of stars ...” “That was long ago,” Queekat muttered. “... and you looked up with a hunger far greater than you ever felt for me.” Merinda’s words came devoid of compassion or malice — statements whose value stood on their own without the inflec- tion of the feelings she held against them. “‘They will be mine,’ you said.” “I meant ‘ours’,” he snapped. “But you said, ‘mine’,” she responded testily. “Within a week you were gone, Kat. Atis Librae Shn-dar out of nowhere selected for the great Inquisitas Vestis. One week you were analyzing synopsis news upstream from a handful of backwater worlds and the next you were off reinventing yourself as an inquisitor for the Omnet.” Queekat looked up sharply. “I didn’t reinvent myself! There was hardly any need to — they did a fine enough job reinventing me on their own terms. Look, Rini, you have no idea what it’s like. You have to know so much that is specific to your assignment and your assignment changes so often. They just pour it right into you, Rini. The Oracles of Nine decide who you have to be on a mission and then they make you into that person. They partition your brain as if you were a mechanical device just like them — sift your memories and shuffle your thoughts into convenient storage places to make room for the information they think you need to get the job done for the Omnet. Then they just pour it into you through a biolink.” Merinda watched him carefully. Somewhere, high overhead, a Stribek cawed as it soared above the falls. Queekat sighed, and began sifting the wet sands of the beach through his fingers. “By the stars, Rini, three months ago they needed a xenobiologist with surgical skills. I was on the duty list. One night, I went to bed not knowing that the Kribenthian Sedak even existed and by the time I awoke I © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 10 could not only describe its anatomy down to the cellular and chemical level but perform surgery on it as well. For that month I was the greatest of all Sedak physicians. When it was over, I had another assign- ment. The Nine gave me knowledge of the deep intricacies of the Four Dynasties of the Ruqua. Oh, I could instantly recount to you the relationships and genealogies of each of the four houses for the last thousands years — but I no longer knew a Kribenthian Sedak’s hand from its ass.” Queekat had lapsed into a rather pouty sullenness. Merinda chewed her lower lip. It had be- come awkward, watching an inquisitor unguarded and vulnerable. Then he looked up at her and smiled the same confident, knowing self-assured smile that had so blinded her when they first met that she, in her eternal pessimism, had ascribed to being too cocky and self-important. She couldn’t belief then that the smile was meant for her alone but she had at last claimed ownership to it and from that time her loneliness had ended. Despite the robes and the manor and the training, he was still Queekat. She was sure of it. “Well, then, who are you today?” Merinda teased with a gentle edge in her voice. “Does your mission require you to become an invisible part of the D’Rakan Council of Matriarchs or are you perhaps something even more exotic?” “Oh, you are such an innocent,” he laughed, shaking his head. “I hate to disappoint you, but today I’m an advanced theorist technician for level twelve synthetic minds.” She looked at him with disbelief. “You’re what?” “I am an expert at communication with and repair of most automated household appliances.” Merinda laughed. In a single smooth motion, she grabbed the front of Queekat’s jump suit and pulled him down onto the sand next to her. “Ah, my own inquisitor; master of the self regulating laundry! What evil grows among the stars which causes the Omnet to send its ruthless and skilled investigators to the far reaches of the D’Rakan Empire which require the skills of an expert repair man? Are the Nine Oracles so concerned about the kitchen synths at our little sanctuary that they would send one of their elite researchers all the way to Brishan?” “No,” he smiled at her, “my mission is on Tentris — but I’m going to need a little help. That’s why I’m here. I assume that you still have some leave saved up. Can you get a way for a few days?” Merinda never spent her leave time — while Queekat had been here there never seemed to be a need for it and once Queekat had gone there never seemed to be much point. Her heart leaped at the thought of taking a holiday with him, of getting off this rock and visiting somewhere exciting and new. It had never seemed important to her before — she certainly could have arranged passage to just about anywhere she wished to holiday in the past — but suddenly it had become incredibly important. “Yes! Of course I can get away for a few days!” The words gushed out of her in a school-girl rush that belied her usual serious and controlled demeanor. “Do I have time to pack anything or must we leave right away?” “Easy! Easy!” Queekat held up both hands to fend off the words assaulting him. “It’s not going to just be us. I’m going to need Kelis, Flynn, Dharah . . . probably Sendix and I think Brenai should joins us as well . . . hey, stop that! What’s the matter with you?” Merinda had begun beating her fists rather ineffectually against the man’s chest, a pout growing more and more pronounced as she spoke. “Why do you have to bring along the whole department? We don’t need them! You’re the great inquisitor; you’re the one with all the training and powers! We don’t need anyone else — all you need is me!” “Merinda! This is an important operation! There’ll be plenty of time for us to . . .” “Don’t you talk to me about time,” Merinda’s blows were becoming a bit more effective, the pain beginning to register in Queekat’s face. “I transcom a message to you everyday. You use to be good about getting your replies back to me. Now I hardly hear from you. Nearly two months had gone by until your arrival message came. Now you’re here and you — you want to mount an expedition? © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 11 Don’t you think I can see what’s happening . . .” “Rini!” The word was sharp and harsh in her ears. She had never heard him use her name so coldly. She stopped as he arrested both of her forearms in his powerful hands. “Rini, this is my work. I serve the Omnet just as you do. There’s a very special place for you in all of this. I can’t explain it to you now and you may not understand it at first but it is necessary that you come and it is necessary that you do your duty — do you understand?” Queekat’s gray eyes held her gaze. It was impossible for her to look into them and not feel slightly lost. “Yes,” she said softly at last, “I understand. It just that it has been such a long time, Kat. I just . . . I just wanted a little time for us.” He pulled her toward him, the coldness of his face warming slightly. She buried her face against his chest, cradling herself under his arm. “Of course, Rini,” he said to her, the words warm but the tone somewhat distracted. “We all want just a little more time.” Merinda closed her eyes, her mind taking her back to the time before when their excursions to the falls had been warm and wonderful. She did not see Queekat’s own eyes, staring blankly at the emerging stars overhead. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 12 Chapter2: Minor Inconvenience Oscan Kelis rubbed the bridge of his nose and closed his eyes. He was tired and the puzzle that contin- ued to float at the back of his mind was rapidly turning from a minor problem into a major headache. None of the usual actions seem to help. He passed his hand over his bald scalp. No answer. He rolled his head around, trying to shake something loose in his mind. No answer. He stood up from the glowing plate in his work alcove, strode purposefully into the main hall of the ancient Rhishan Monastery, past the numerous alcoves filled with other Atis Librae huddled over their tasks and out onto the concourse overlooking the falls. The patterns of water woven beneath him, tumbling into the chasm far below had always soothed his mind and helped him bring order to his thoughts when no other source would possibly have given him the answers that he sought. So he leaned against the machicolation, gazing down through the crenel into the swirling mists far below him, searching for some clue within himself that would give him an answer. No answer. “Don’t jump, Oscan!” Oscan shook with a start at the voice suddenly materializing at his ear. He turned, heart racing toward the sound. “By the Great Spirit, Librae Dharah, you gave me such a start!” “Be at peace, Librae Kelis,” Terica Dharah returned in her best mock formal tone. “I shall not cause you any harm.” Oscan found his breath difficult in returning, and not just because of the fright his coworker had given him. Terica Dharah was uncommonly beautiful for a ‘sifter’ — as most Atis Librae called them- selves — being a tall, willowy woman with gentle features. Oscan has once happened upon her briefly during a holiday on Tentris. It was the only time he remembered seeing her with raven-black hair liberated from the tightly controlled severity that she always fashioned for her work. The luxurious satiny ripples of her hair framed the long oval of her face perfectly. The room had been crowded and he couldn’t say just how long he stood there, frozen by the beauty of her and the distant sound of her laughter welling up from the murmuring sound of her companions. The smile she flashed him when she notice him in return brought a heat to his face that he still felt just thinking about it. He had nearly made a fool of himself then in his rush to escape the gamesroom where he encountered her, lamely waving in acknowledgment and then running directly into a table as he attempted to beat a suave retreat out of the room. Now, he couldn’t see her without remembering the soft wave of her black hair framing that perfect face. The air around her seemed to rare to him. “Of course not, Librae Dharah. It’s just that . . .” “Terica, Oscan.” “What?” “My name’s Terica,” she laughed in a quiet voice which was all the more unsettling for him © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 13 because of its sweet familiarity. “There’s no one around in the courtyard and even if there were, the E’toris is well off world and therefore not close enough to command strict protocols of address. Be- sides, we’ve known each other far too long for such formality. So, what drives you out here to gaze down into the abyss?” “It may be nothing, Ter . . . Terica.” Oscan stumbled over her name again and cursed himself inwardly for it. “It’s just that I can’t get the sector updates to corroborate. We’ve got information coming up the links that is being sifted as usual and then after we pass it on up to the citadel on Tentris it comes back down on reflect wrong.” “That’s supposed to be impossible,” Terica responded. “I thought all the reflects were auto- mated.” “They are,” Oscan countered, aware that his voice was taking on an unpleasantly whiny edge to it but unable to do anything about it. “We correlate the news from about seventeen inhabited and participating worlds. We sift the information, determine what is important and what isn’t, then we pass the important stuff up to the citadel on Tentris. They then correlate that report with the reports from other monasteries like ours . . .” “Oscan, you’re wandering,” Terica spoke soothingly. “Oh, right — sorry,” Oscan was getting lost in the memory of that hair again. “Well, remember those reports we were getting out of Eptos system — about how shipments of plasma converters were being rerouted and apparently stolen?” “Yes, I remember,” Terica nodded, trying to hurry the conversation along. “Merinda asked you to coordinated those reports with some other updata from other star systems that Evon and Kiria were working on. Something to do with a subversive group, wasn’t it?” “Right!” Oscan was warming to the subject; his stutter disappearing. “Evon was tracking a faction of the ruling families on old D’Rak that wanted to bring back the good old days of Imperial Rule. Seems like there were a few members of the old royal family that didn’t quite go along with the Ruling Populist Councils decision to take over the reigns of sixteen stellar governments.” “Is there some point to all this?” “The point is that an advanced planetary assault also disappeared about the same time as the plasma converters. Kiria handled that one. The I.F.S. D’Rapiene sailed on it own, leaving the orbital docks around Isdor IV without its crew. The local dock master was indicted and the captain deeply embarrassed at having his ship sail away without him. Although the ship was fully armed, the fueling was not to take place until the crew was back aboard — she sailed with her tanks pretty much dry. The report concluded that she couldn’t get very far and that eventually they would find the ship and bring it back in. The story was treated as a light news comedy piece.” “. . . which we correlated with the other pieces,” Terica finished for him. “and determined that the Imperial family was going to attempt a government takeover. We reported to central our correlation findings along with the supporting original news files. So far there’s no mystery, Oscan. I posted those reports myself and had them couriered up to Tentris three days ago. So what’s the problem?” “The problem is,” Oscan’s whine getting more strident by the moment, “that I received the reflect reports back today. Most Librae just throw the reflects away — I mean, why read the stuff you’ve read before. But I always read mine . . .” “I’m not surprised.” “. . . and they’re wrong.” “Wrong?” Terica looked at him askew. “What do you mean wrong?” “I mean they are supposed to reflect back our reports with comments for action and routing information if it continues up into the news of the greater galactic region. The Citadel determined that our conclusions were wrong — not unusual itself. So I decided to check the reports on which they © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 14 based their decision — those same reports we had filed. They were changed, Terica. They weren’t the reports we filed. Kiria’s reflected report stated that the D’Rapiene had already been recovered and Evon’s reflect completely eliminated the imperial plans for overthrowing the council. Worst of all was my report, Terica. It reported a theft but not of plasma converters. The package looked as though I had coupled a report of fruit shipment thefts to reports of the royal family being polite and a ship that had been missing but later found.” “You looked like an idiot,” Terica concluded. “I looked like an idiot,” Oscan admitted painfully — all the more painful for who he had to admit it to. Terica looked out over the edge of the parapet. The Klenith vines obscured the edge of the falls some fifteen feet below her, with many of its offshoots arcing tendrils of water into a graceful tapestry at the edge of the ravine. Apparently, Oscan thought, I am not the only one who turns to the falls for reflection. “What about the original packets that were sent,” she mused aloud. “Perhaps there was some confusion in the reports that went up to the citadel.” “No,” Oscan responded at once, “I checked that first: the message packets that were sent to the citadel were the ones we filed. Someone is changing our packets . . .” “Or someone is reflecting them wrong. There’s got to be a mistake in here somewhere. Have you run any of this by Librae Neskat?” “No. She’s . . . well, she’s not in at the moment,” Oscan sighed, turning back toward the parapet and nodded his head slightly towards the chasm beneath them. Terica’s smile had a wicket edge. “Really? So then old rockjaw is back, eh? Well, I suppose it can wait until she’s quite finished with him — heavens know that she has little else to look forward to. Oddly fortunate that he should arrive just after the E’toris was called away.” “I don’t think it fortunate at all.” Oscan became even more serious than he previously was. “I think someone is deliberately trying to undermine our position here.” Terica’s laugh seemed to cut about four inches off the young man’s height. “I don’t think so, Oscan. We’re a minor sifting outpost for a galactic information agency which barely knows that we exist. We are, in short, legends in our own minds only. Besides, you should never ascribe to malice that which can be attributed to complete stupidity. Someone, somewhere has been using beans for brains is all that’s wrong. It’s probably up to us to figure out where.” Oscan watched the tall woman turn smugly from the low wall and saunter back into the vast cathedral hall. “Besides,” she said as she retreated into the cool shadow, “what could be so important about messed up reports?” ***** The monastery had fallen into decay before the Omnet established itself there, being of that perfect age where the structure was too old to be considered useful and yet too young to be thought of as a local treasure. It had, to the D’Rakanians who largely inhabited the large collective cities located on the western plains, a quaint old building which had outlived its usefulness — a place too far away for an afternoon picnic. So it had been cheerfully bartered away to the Omnet and its functionaries; the D’Rakanians secretly grateful that they had been relieved of the expense of keeping the old building in any kind of reasonable shape. Perhaps, in some distant, future years, the great edifice with its vaulting buttresses arching gracefully over the magnificent falls and its spiral formed minarets reaching grace- fully into the clouds would be reclaimed by the D’Rakan inhabitants as a treasure of their culture and © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 15 the seat of its ancient mythology. Yet for the time being, it was enough to know that the edifice was still there — and that it required no more thought by the people than that. Reaching the monastery was no easy trick for the D’Rakanians in the first place. The original entrance was behind the waterfall itself at the base of the pool but this had succumbed over time to the ravages of the waterfall itself exacerbated by three separate sieges at its watery gate. There was the circuitous path which lead up from the pool to the rim of the canyon and thence to one of the six arching stone bridges which spanned the rivers to the massive spit of stone on which the architectural monu- ment was constructed. However the roadway from the H’sik, the nearest city to the monastery founded very near the entrance to Denali canyon some seven kilometers away — was in complete disrepair and barely passable after nearly a half century of neglect by any but the most determined wheeled vehicles. Time and indifference had secured the monastery quite efficiently. The monastery itself was a magnificent structure, its foundation mushrooming out from the granite pedestal of stone on which it was built until it covered the entire union of the three rivers beneath it. Flying buttresses from the sides of the river supported this foundation from which sprang the elegant and intricate towers known as Rhishan’s Crown. These thin spindles stood at the edge of the foundation, protecting the two inner circles which surrounded the central court. The courtyard itself was a vast open space of fitted stones so skillfully placed that a razor’s edge couldn’t be worked between one stone and another. This was all the more magnificent for the mosaic which the stones formed of the ancient goddess Rhishan sundering the stones of the Krevish Mountains in her grief and rage. Evon Flynn, however, stood at the edge of the courtyard and pondered how nearly all of this ancient glory was completely obscured, however, but the huge starship hulking down in the center of the mosaic. It wasn’t that he particularly was concerned for any sacrilege that the presence of the behemoth represented as it stood on this holy ground nor did he feel any concern for the possible damage that such a machine might represent to this monument to a stonefitters craft now long lost. Evon’s concern was strictly limited to Evon. Evon had rather cheerfully been piloting the small levitation pallet up from H’sik with this weeks grocery for the team. Evon was man of moderate height and an athletic build. He wore his black hair a little longer than most and sported a mustache which he tried to keep in trim as best he could. To look at him, the robes of the Librae just didn’t seem to fit him or he them. Others on the team might grumble about the trek down the mountain in search of fresh provisions in the city marketplace but not Evon. He loved the walk and had a talent for cooking which his companions were more than willing to take advantage of. He was a talented sifter, able to pick out the pattern in different reports and then bring them together into a clear picture better than most people on the team — it’s just that his heart wasn’t in it. The work, he often told the others, would still be there for him when he got back and he rarely, if ever, got behind in his analysis. Why not take a little time for something fresh to eat? Only now his levitation cart, filled beyond its capacity with food, was blocked by a starship. The ship was obviously from one of the Federated Stellar States — FSS technology all seemed to fall along straight, rather box-like lines which confused the appearance of complexity with its value of function. The ship was primarily designed to operate in a strictly T52/87 zone, Evon thought, trans- lating his appraisal into the standard Flynch-Halpert Q-dex notation for a high technology level coupled with a low tolerance for spiritualism and mystic force channeling. That was pretty close to the T53/ 74:M32/56 zone that the D’Rakan Empire operated in — a reasonably good choice for operating in this region. However, the Federated Stellar States were nearly a quarter of the galactic disk away from the D’Rakan and the latest weather report he had heard over Omnet showed a rather massive T12/28:M66/ 93 zone had established itself between two massively occluded quantum fronts gripping the Pluzhiak Imperium. That meant that standard FSS drives wouldn’t have operated there and would require some- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 16 thing a bit more on the fantastical side in terms of operations to get the ship to function across the Pluziak space, cross another quantum front and eventually arrive in the D’Rakan Empire and sit in the middle of Evon’s monastery courtyard. Evon nodded sagely at the glass globes with copper coils barely protruding from the back of the ship. They looked hokey and completely fake — just the kind of drive system that would function perfectly in an M66/93 zone. They weren’t added on as an afterthought, either, Evon noted with a practiced eye. The massive N-gravity discs on the bottom of the hull were so advanced that even technophile Evon had not even heard of its like before. This ship was built to come to Brishan from nearly a quarter of the galaxy away and arrive without making so much as the sound of a bird landing. Ships like this brought only bad news, Evon thought. He knew somehow that the ship was going to drag him from his rather pleasant, interesting and completely non-dangerous work into some- thing that he would regret getting involved in. Maybe I could just slip around this evil omen into the kitchen, Evon thought. No one would notice me until after the dinner was cooked and by then, perhaps, they wouldn’t need me for whatever horrible business . . . “Evon!” Evon closed his eyes, trying to ignore the voice behind him. It wouldn’t go away. “Evon! Put down that controller and get your kit together!” Oscan chirped from the casements. “We’re headed for Tentris.” Evon turned, disbelief in his face. “Tentris? Are you out of your mind! There’s a civil war brewing and you want us to leave this nice backwater world and drop into one of the most hotly contested planets in the Empire?” “Perhaps we’re supposed to stop it,” Oscan offered as more of a question than an affirmation. “I report history, not make it,” Evon stated stubbornly. “If they want someone to intervene in this war, then Omnet can well send out someone else.” “But they did,” Oscan replied, showing no signs of either taking a hint or going away on his own. “Vestis Shn’dar is the one who is requesting our assistance.” Evon gritted his teeth. A green Vestis of the Inquisition, he thought, has come back to drag his old school chums into the maelstrom with him. Evon had never had much use for Queekat Shn’dar when the man was a coworker in the monastery and frankly never did understand his most glorious promotion. He turned and glanced longingly at his cart filled with yellow, red and orange vegetables and longed for the feast they would no longer make. “Are you coming?” Oscan was annoying. “No!” Evon turned and strode purposefully past Oscan, who stood stunned in his wake. “Ma- dame Neskat may be in charge during the absence of the E’toris but I’m not in the mood to put my blood on the line just because her old boyfriend shows up and wants to make a roadtrip into the middle of a minefield.” Evon stormed down the curving hall in search of Merinda Neskat. The woman was uptight with everyone and, Evon knew, she had gone too far. He’d make her listen. He began rehearsing all the reasons why this sudden pullout of the sifting team to aid on some fool errand of the inquisition was a mistake. Why even if the mission was critical, he certainly wasn’t. Why it made more sense to leave him behind than to take him along. He was still coming up with reasons when, a few hours after a short, heated and ultimately one- sided debate with acting-E’toris Neskat, he found himself and his field kit sitting in the cramped pas- senger compartment of Vestis Shn-dar’s starship rising into the night sky with his vegetables left far behind. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 17 Chapter 3: Inflight Merinda leaned forward in the command chair of the Khindar, as she had discovered Queekat had named his ship, gazing intently through the large view plates that were situated below her. The chair itself was situated on a low railed platform which thrust out from between the pilot and navigation stations at the rear of the ships bridge, suspending the command chair above a bank of clear ports in the lower hull. Forward and above her position, Merinda could survey the various crystal display ovals arranged about the compartments forward angular walls. These gave a cascade of information from the ships synthetic mind, which watched over their journey and their comfort as well. The information and images shifting on the surface of those crystals were like windows into dreaming mind but it was not their hypnotic patterns which held her attention Below her the great Cestiline Nebula drifted in a breathtaking display of color and light. The tendrils of stardust shifted below her at an unimaginable distance. Shafts of light, giving promise to the new stars aborning within cast sheets of blue and salmon light across the ethereal face of the interstellar clouds. Merinda leaned over even further, barely sitting on the seat at all. She hadn’t had much occa- sion to travel between worlds over the last few years and had forgotten just how exciting and beautiful it could be. Even the ship had become beautiful to her although its lines were rough and angular for the most part — an efficient ship for an efficient job, she thought. For a moment, she leaned back fully into the cushioned back of the command chair, grasping both of the control grips mounted on the armrests and staring purposefully at the crystal displays. I could command a ship like this, she thought. I could lose myself in the stars and wander forever. “Do you wish control of the ship?” The voice was gentle and deep. Yes, Merinda thought in her reverie but suddenly realized that it was the ship’s synthetic that had asked her the question. “No!” Merinda blurted out suddenly. “I most certainly do not wish control of the ship.” “That’s all right, Librae Neskat,” the voice purred but with an edge of concern in the voice. “Please, don’t be offended or upset. You haven’t done anything wrong. People sit on the bridge all the time in the command chair, Occasionally, someone asks me to disengage all of the command functions from the consoles so that they can push the buttons and move the arm controllers. I even run simula- tions for them so that they can pretend they are flying the ship. They really are quite entertaining. Would you like me to run such an entertainment for you?” Merinda blanched slightly. There was a part of her quivering to say yes, to pretend to actually fly a ship of the stars. However, another voice saying that such a thing was too much like playing to be dignified. Some part of her was afraid someone would walk onto the bridge and see her talking to © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 18 herself as though she were commanding the entire Ruqua battlefleet. That was not an image that one wanted bandied about when she was the one left in charge of the sift group while the E’Torus Librae was away. She swung the chair around and, leaning her head rather dejectedly on her hand, gazed through the open bridge hatch into the compartment beyond. The room was crowded, the thin center table seeming to press those sitting at it toward the sliding doors of the sleeping compartments on either side of the room. Evon sat, as usual, laying out a spread of cards in the pattern of a solitaire game the rules for which he never seemed able to explain to anyone else. Across from him sat Oscan — dear, old Oscan who never seemed to have a moment’s ambition beyond being a level two sifter for the rest of his career. A small man with small dreams, Merinda thought. He’ll lead a quiet life desperately seeking simple pleasures. It suddenly occurred to Merinda that Oscan may have a better shot at happiness than anyone else in her group — except possibly for Terica. Oscan’s attentions to the tall beauty were about as subtle as a kick to the stomach and had hardly escape the notice of everyone in the sifter group. Terica was aware of his attentions but so far had walked a tightrope of friendship and cool disregard. Merinda suspected that Terica enjoyed toying with Oscan like a cat enjoys a mouse. Merinda knew Terica well enough to know that she would never actually harm Oscan if she could possibly help it. Merinda’s reveries were suddenly interrupted by the sweet-faced image of Kiria, motioning for Merinda to come into the common room. Merinda tried suddenly not to notice her but knew, even as she did, that it was too late. The effervescent little acolyte had already flashed that ‘don’t be such a spoil sport’ look at her and was rising to come and talk to her. The constantly soiled hem of her robes gently swished against the carpeted floor, a rather comedic effect for Kiria never seemed to find robes that would fit her length properly. Her build was pixie-slight, as she so often said to others in describing herself, and the robes never seemed to fall properly around her no matter how they were altered or taken in. She had a wide mouth fixed in a perpetual grin that was supported by her smiling eyes. These were all framed by her straight, brown hair which fell curving around her face until it stopped most abruptly just at the shoulders. Her generally cheerful appearance would have become annoying if it weren’t for the severe mischievous and, some said, malevolent streak that firmly ran through her. Why get mad, she believed, when you so very, very good at getting even? Kiria was very seldom mad. “Neskat!” she said brightly with a keen edge to her words. “You’re being far too antisocial for your own good. What’s so important that you have to sit here on the bridge like some old stoic?” “Just watching the stars go by, Kiria.” The impish woman strolled with exaggerated casualness in a complete circuit around the com- mand chair and gazed over the low railing into the depth of light and color sliding by. “Oh, yes, another glorious interstellar vista,” Kiria said with a mock yawn. “It’s breathtaking — no, really it is. What a joy to be traveling the stars again.” Merinda’s smile at the affectation was most involuntary and quickly suppressed. “Well, thank you for your enthusiasm.” “Enthusiasm?” Kiria shook her head violently until her short, straight hair threatened to whip her face. “Here Master Lord of the Inquisition shows up, you go into a fainting spell . . .” Merinda bristled. “. . . and now we’re all off on this delightful holiday retreat the purpose of which — say, that reminds me,” Merinda said, her grin taking on a hungry aspect, “just what is the purpose of our little picnic?” “Honestly, Kiria,” Merinda swung her chair back to face the forward display crystals, knowing better than to look at her, “I don’t know what you mean.” Kiria wouldn’t be put off so easily. She grabbed the high back of the chair and swung Merinda © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 19 around to face her. “Here, I’ll try to make it clear for you. Dex Libris Gildesh gets called away for a conference in the Plenethica Provinces. Nothing unusual in that — except that old Gildesh had already accommodated a conference on our own Tentris three weeks ago and normally wouldn’t be due for a conference for another six months at least. Then old Rockjaw shows up — big inquisitor for the Omnet. He want’s to commandeer our entire shift to help him on some secret mission — so secret that appar- ently we’re supposed to carry it out for him without knowing just what we’re supposed to be doing. Ooh! Scary!” “‘Vestis walk before the Librae,’ Kiria — you know that! It’s the third Law of Nine,” Merinda glared. “We aren’t supposed to question an inquisitor’s mission or his judgment — just support him in whatever he requests.” “Right,” Kiria said with a cutting edge to her voice as she stood upright, folding her arms across her chest. “So, blind, deaf and dumb we walk into Tentris. We just got a bogus report back from the Citadel there . . .” “I’ve seen Oscan’s flagged filing.” Merinda shook her head slowly. “It’s just some error in the Citadel reflect synths.” “Maybe,” Kiria nodded knowingly, “but did you look at the conclusions. That world may be the site of one massive holy war within days — if Evon’s conclusions are correct — and we’re going to merrily dance into it just because old Rockjaw says so. Look, Merinda, I’ve been through this sort of thing on my own world. War is a terribly short word for the chaos of pain, horror, blood and barbarity it represents. These people aren’t up to it, Kiria — Oscan certainly isn’t — and you’ve got a responsi- bility to these people. We’re being set up, Librae Neskat, by a green, still-wet-behind-the-ears Vestis who barely shows any difference between his mouth and his . . . his . . . what are you looking at?” Merinda shuddered. Her eyes had focused beyond Kiria before flicking back, wide and in alarm. Kiria didn’t move, her mischievous face still set on Merinda’s look. “He’s standing right behind me, isn’t he?” Merinda nodded slowly. Kiria grimaced and turned slowly. Queekat Shn-dar filled the hatchway with his gray jumpsuit, gripping the top frame with both hands. His stance was casual as he leaned into the room yet unnatural in that he didn’t move at all, except for most prominent flexing of his jaw muscles. His eyes, black and shining, were fixed on Kiria with a sleepy chill felt even by Merinda. Kiria rose to stand, folding her hands meekly before her and bowing her head toward the In- quisitor. “Good morrow, Vestis,” she said sweetly. “I trust that your wake-time is passing well. If you will excuse me; no doubt you and the E’toris Tempus have much to discuss.” Kiria stepped toward the hatchway with a nod but Queekat made no move to allow her to pass. Kiria looked up, glaring at him with her large eyes, her voice more strident. “If you will excuse me, Vestis Shn-dar!” “Librae Brenai,” Queekat’s voice drifted at her with an almost practiced boredom, his chill gaze still fixed firmly on her face, “this mission is of the utmost importance to the Omnet. You will refrain from discussing this mission further with anyone on board for the remainder of the trip.” The tall man smiled a predator’s cold smile. “I would hate for such a minor incident to escalate into far more uncomfortable actions.” Kiria didn’t often do so but she knew when to hold her tongue. She looked away from him, bowing her head slightly in submission to his authority. It was some moments before the Vestis was satisfied and moved smoothly aside to allow her passage out of the compartment. “You didn’t have to be so cold to her,” Merinda said with a sullen edge to her voice. Queekat moved into the room, his eyes scanning the various display crystals around him. The © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 20 tumbling images of light seemed to be all in order. He stepped past her onto the low-railed deck run- ning to the forward bulkhead and, satisfied with all he had seen, leaned over and stared down into the stars below. “The hull glass is compensating well for our speed. The image may be false but it’s quite clear and accurate,” he said, almost to himself. “Didn’t you hear what I said?” “Hum? Oh, sorry, Rini. My mind was on other things. What is it you want?” Merinda stood and glanced backward. The hatchway was still open and most of her compan- ions were still well within earshot of normal conversation if they wished to listen in. She was sure there were several around that table who were doing just that. The occasional slap of the cards on the table was all she heard. She leaned slightly toward him and spoke as low as she dared. “Kat, just what is going on. You’re not telling us what we need to know. If you could only . . .” Queekat continued to gaze at the nebula passing below them. “Rini, all of this will become clear in time, but for now it’s important that you and your team just . . .” “Just what? Go along blindly?” Merinda gripped Queekat’s arm. “Kat, you’re scaring me. You’re scaring us all. We’ve been together for a long time — too long for you to treat us this way.” Queekat suddenly looked up at her. “It has been a long time — a long time ago, Merinda. I barely know these people any more, and I certainly don’t own them anything!” Merinda straightened slowly, a quiver in low her voice. “Yes, I suppose it has been a long time — too long a time for any of us.” Queekat looked away for a moment then turned back to face her. She saw that old look in his eyes, she was sure of it. “Not so long as that,” he said to her. “Surely not so long as that.” “It’s been so long — I thought, well, that you may feel differently now.” Queekat opened his arms to her. She fell into him as the folds of his cape surrounded her. “I feel the same way about you that I have always felt, Rini. How can you question that?” Merinda drew a breath, her heart racing as she formed the words she had long dreamed of saying. “When this is finished, will you come for me? Will you take me away into those stars of yours?” He held her gently and whispered in her ear. “When this is over, I will come for you.” Neither of them had noticed that the sound of the cards had stopped. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 21 Chapter 4: Keepers of the Citadel “. . . homeworlds of the D’Rakan Empire. Prince Lystan assured the constituted governments of the First Estate that the Imperial Family, while not in direct control of the rebel elements of the Imperial Fleet, would do everything in their power to persuade those elements not to threaten or attack worlds in their space. ‘The Worlds of the First Estate are holy ground to us, and we shall do all in our power to prevent the desecration of our ancestral home.’ Ukard of Brishan, acting Lawgiver of the Council, was cautiously optimistic . . .” Evon wrestled his thoughts away from the intermittent broadcast monitors set into the wall and reigned in his stride for the fourth time, struggling to hold back his impatient legs and keep his place at the back of the team. If he didn’t pay attention, he’d stumble all over someone. Now, that he reminded himself, would really make an impression in the Citadel. Not that he minded being at the back of the crowd. In fact, though he had done quite a bit of field work in his time, he preferred the role of passive observer to active participant. Perhaps that was why he liked it in the Atis Librae as much as he did and never pursued a transfer into the Vestis. Watch and learn was his motto. It’s always good to know where you are going to land before you jump. In their current situation, he wasn’t yet sure just where stable footing could be found. “‘. . . with the hope of peace in our age.’ Their approach to the planet had gone well enough, he mused, although the outgoing traffic in the system seemed to be unbelievably heavy. The closer in system they came, the thinner the flight traffic. Queekan — rather, Vestis Shn-dar, he reminded himself — had cleared them to land at the Citadel itself rather than at the Yarka starport. It was probably just as well, Evon noted as they passed over the landing bays of the sprawling facility, since every spare inch seemed to be occupied by a ship of one kind or another. Evon had occasionally taken a holiday trip to Yarka — the capital city of Tentris and, perforce, the D’Rakan Empire — and had even had occasion to come here during the League Conferences when it seemed that everyone from a dozen systems had suddenly decided to invade Yarka all at once. Even so, he couldn’t remember seeing the starport as crowded as it appeared to him flying overhead today. They had landed in the Citadel’s Third Garden of Harmony, one of several walled enclosures forming rings around the central tower of the Citadel. Garden was hardly an appropriate appellation, for the entire area had been paved over to accommodate the landing of craft such as theirs. It was safe, it was secure and, more importantly, it was firmly in control of the Omnet Bradis Librae which corre- lated the reports for six interstellar sectors which included the bulk of the D’Rakan Empire. Now they were marching along down the long pearl corridor of the Citadel itself following this © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 22 inexperienced Vestis into something unexplained while listening to the constant babbling of the Omnet local news broadcast. These folks, Evon thought, must really like to hear themselves talk. “‘. . . safety of the interstellar tradeways. This is Edith Marston, reporting from K’plik in the Clin Sector.’ In a related story, the Imperial Assault Tender D’Rapiene was recovered without incident last week . . .” Evon turned sharply toward the nearest wall display crystal. “What? That’s a lie!” “. . . following its near escape from the orbital docks of Isdor IV. The ship had apparently entered trans-stellar drive on its own initiative but was soon recovered when it emerged in the Enway system . . .” Evon suddenly stumbled. “Hey! Ouch! Stij, Evon, will you watch where you’re going!” Evon suddenly reddened with embarrassment. Their march down the hall had previously held the look of determined people in concert but everyone else had come to a unison stop in the large bright chamber at the corridor’s end. All that dissolved as Evon’s large body charged into Terica and started a chain reaction through the group that dissolved order into a minor chaos of trying to keep one’s feet beneath them. “Ah,” came a voice from the platform before them. “I see our guests have arrived.” Evon looked up. The central dome of the chamber looked to be at least fifty feet over their heads and over fifty feet across. Columns all around the rotunda supported the dome overhead. Branch- ing from this central chamber were several large halls. Evon couldn’t see clearly into any of them but was sure they must house the Bradis Librae at their own monitors taking care of their own tasks. The Bradis Librae were one level up from Evon’s own order. It never failed to amaze him at the amount of information must pass through these halls each day in support of the Omnet. In the center of the rotunda, circular, concentric steps formed a dais nearly ten feet above their heads. Twelve oval display crystals floated in orbital positions around the upper platform. Atop the dais stood a man, gray streaking the temples of the dark hair which flowed down his back. He gazed down at them for a time, a calm blankness of someone who is trying quietly to place some thought or knowl- edge about a phenomenon he is observing before he acts. His face was long and tight, its skin stretched over the frame of his skull as though it were a size too small for his brow. The man suddenly floated down the stairs toward the group, his hands planted deep into the pockets sewn into the folds of his robe. “I am E’toris Primla, Director of the Citadel. Vestis Shn’dar, my staff and I bid you and your companions welcome.’ Primla’s voice echoed through the rotunda. There was not a trace of smile or warmth in his face as he approached. “E’toris Primla, we accept welcome on behalf of the Vestis Inquisitas and our common good, the Omnet,” Queekat said in calm, formal response to the greeting. The forms of speech Queekat was using were universal and — between those who served in the Omnet — clear and without compromise. Evon knew that Queekat’s statement would be followed by a question that was not a question so much as a challenge to deny the fact of his order’s authority. Evon was not disappointed when Queekat concluded. “We are tasked by the Inquisition on certain matters of concern to the Omnet. We humbly request your assistance.” Primla’s face barely moved as he replied, “There is nothing for you here, Inquisitor. Our news traffic is very high currently and we have no time to disrupt the flow of information for you questions. All at this post is in order, I can personally assure you.” Evon blinked. No one told a Vestis no — ever. Queekat smiled a most ingratiating smile, a fire burning behind his laughing eyes. “I am cer- tainly glad to hear that, E’toris Primla, but you are mistaken. I have not yet even asked a question and you have already given me an answer.” His smile suddenly fell. “Unfortunately, it is not the answer that © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 23 I was hoping for.” Suddenly Queekat leaped forward, grabbing the E’toris by the collar of his robe with both hands and throwing him forcibly backwards. Primla reeled backwards, tripping and falling painfully backwards against the stairs. His cry echoed off the great dome overhead, his breath rushed from him and he began gasping for air. Queekat didn’t wait. He stood over Primla, straddling him and again reached down to grab the old E’toris robes. Evon stood stunned, noticing much the same reaction from the rest of his group. Except for Merinda. Merinda was moving. “Kat! What are you doing?” Merinda, horrified, grabbed Queekat’s arm, trying to pull him away. The Inquisitor’s face was all rage. In a single, trained motion, he release his grip on the arm she was holding and slammed the back of his fist into Merinda’s face. Merinda fell backward to the polished marble floor, the physical damage being the least painful effects of the blow. Queekat instantly turned back to Primla, pulling the E’toris’ face closer to his own as he leaned over him. His voice was frighteningly insistent, a razor’s edge of rage. “I am the Inquisitor, E’toris Primla! I see more, know more and am more than you can possibly experience in your entire, pathetic existence! You will do as I instruct, without question because to do otherwise would be more than unwise. You will answer my questions more than completely because I and my brothers are not to be treated lightly by anyone — especially some backwater, officious sifter who is lord over his only little playroom and doesn’t want to share his toys with the rest of the galaxy.” Primla lay helpless beneath the raging Queekat. Merinda lay silently a few feet away, shaking uncontrollably. “I’m not an unreasonable man,” Queekat said quietly, his voice suddenly shifting with dizzying ease from its near screaming tirade of a moment before. The Inquisitor suddenly flashed a terrible smile. “I even bring you some news that apparently you haven’t heard yet.” The Vestis stepped over Primla and, still holding the prone man by the folds of his robe, dragged him down the stairs he had fallen against, lifted him quickly to his feet and, in a single, fluid motion, shoved him toward the Atis Librae team that continued to stand in shocked amazement at the entrance to the rotunda. “These, as you might recognize, are some of your fellow sifters,” Queekat spoke in even tones, his voice changing its tone and tempo once again. As he spoke, the Vestis moved up behind the quiver- ing Primla, took both the man’s shoulders in his hands and spoke quietly into his ear just loud enough for everyone to hear. “They come from the monastery posting on Brishan. You have good sifters in Brishan. Very dutiful. Very thorough. So thorough, in fact, that they found out something which appar- ently you don’t even know, E’toris Primla. Librae Dharah, here, found out that someone here in the Citadel was doing something rather unexpected.” His face turned toward the group and focused on the tall woman standing next to Evon. “Just what was that you discovered, Terica?” Evon turned. Terica’s face had blanched. She was blinking furiously. “Well, it really is probably nothing at all . . .” “TELL HIM!” Queekat screamed at her, the violence of the sound causing Primla to wince and shake. Terica looked as though the Inquisitor had struck her. “On checking a number of the reflect reports from our station, we discovered indications that the news and information we were transmitting up the network had been altered at the Citadel level.” “But,” Primla sputtered, “that’s not possible.” “Not possible?” Queekat mocked the older man. “Why? Because you didn’t see it? Because © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 24 nothing goes wrong in this perfect world of yours? Or is it because you are a part of some plot to subvert the integrity of the Omnet?” “Plot?” Primla looked suddenly at Queekat as though the Inquisitor had lost his senses. “What plot? There’s nothing wrong with this station! We uphold the finest traditions of the Omnet here and have for nearly three centuries! The search for truth and information, ancient and modern, is at the very heart of the Omnet. How dare you accuse my center of fabrication and falsehood!” “Because, good E’toris, somewhere between here and Brishan, someone has changed the truth,” Queekat said. “You have tonight. You are going to walk out of this room right now and with the capable help of these wonderful Brishan sifters, you’re going to sort this out. In the morning, you’re going to give me the answer I want. Is that clear?” Primla nodded once slowly. “Now, everyone get out,” Queekat said, his voice suddenly weary. “I have a few things to attend to.” Everyone hesitated for a moment, then Primla motioned grimly for them to follow him through the portal back into the passage they had come down earlier. Evon, last again, could clearly hear Terica, confused and shaken, talking to herself just ahead of him. “By the sky, it’s just some clerical error,” she muttered. “What was that all about?” Evon paused on the other side of the portal and looked back. The last thing he saw as the portal became opaque was Queekat Shn-dar walking slowly back to Merinda Neskat who had begun sobbing into the floor. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 25 Chapter 5: Avenue of Diversion Tentris was the home world of the D’rakan empire, a much used and abused planet which its grateful offspring had eventually allowed to retire gracefully in a repentant attempt to make up for all the abuse they had heaped on it. The once fabled garden world which boasted a wonderfully temperate climate in most of its five major land masses, Tentris had ultimately succumbed to the unfortunate ravages of advancing pantheons of industry and technology. Its beautiful forests were decimated. It’s mountains were stripped. It’s oceans were assaulted by both hunters and chemicals. Tentris had be- come a failed parent; her children had not learned to take care of their mother. The ancient world seemed ready to give up the ghost, to heave on great sigh against the life it had spawned and become just another of the many cold chunks of lifeless and unspectacular rock that makes up so much of the universe at large. It was ironic, therefore, that those same toy-gods that her children had used to abuse Tentris for so long should suddenly become her savior. Industry and technology gave to Tentris one great last gift. Many of her children had thought that they could apply science to saving the biosphere by reengineering nature. Each attempt failed. No, ultimately the resurrection of Tentris came from a completely unex- pected science application. The Tentrisans developed spaceflight. Tentris’ children left the nest and took their toy-gods with them. The healing was natural, long and difficult. While occasionally helped or hindered by her well- meaning children, it was ultimately up to the natural forces of the world to heal itself. Ages passed, the Tentrisans met their brothers among the stars, the interstellar empire was formed and named after a mythical creature called the D’Rakan that seemed to embody the ideals and dreams of the star-travelers and Tentris rested. At last, like all good children, the Tentrisans returned to honor their home and roots. They found a healed world, once again rich and filled with abundant life. Yarka, the traditional capital city, was carefully cleaned and rebuilt. The ancient Palace of the Unseen Mystery, the heart of the city that was built in radiating streets from that central structure, was renovated to it’s former glory. The major avenues of Health, Harmony, Thought, Diversion, and Reflection terminated at five points in the an- cient city, each with a different function and each newly restored. Even after the Imperial family was politely evicted from the Palace of the Unseen Mystery by the Ruling Populist Councils in a bloodless coup, the city remained at the symbolic heart of the people, its new burgeoning neighborhoods sprawl- ing beyond the walls of the original city under careful control. The Citadel itself was the terminus of the Avenue of Thought. Originally the structure had been the Library and University campus for the mammoth city. Now it had been given over to the Omnet and © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 26 had become the source of interstellar news and information for their entire empire. The synthetic mind functioning in the Citadel was fourteen years old — not long in terms of other synthetic minds in the galaxy but certainly the oldest in the D’Rakan empire. The Omnet had promised to maintain the build- ing in such a way that it would maintain its history and architecture — a promise which was dutifully kept. The Omnet was only to happy to oblige. Yarka had become not just the center of the D’Rakan Empire — an admittedly backwater empire ranking in the top thousands in terms of its interstellar significance — but also was a place of beauty and recreation unsurpassed for over a hundred parsecs in any direction. There were those who said that it’s beauty rivaled even that of the Ruaqua Dynasty Forbidden Worlds or the Towers of Light in Avathon. One could look out from the Citadel gate down the wide expanse of Avenue of Thought and take in the shining illuminated glory of the Palace. The breeze would always be warm and gentle. The smell of flowers was always welcoming. The city was always a place of inviting peace. The world was, at last, at rest. ***** “I’m sorry,” Queekat said for perhaps the hundredth time. The carefully laid flagstones of the broad avenue were occasionally punctuated small but bril- liantly executed garden groupings under soft lights. Overhead, the brilliantly clear night revealed the beautiful hues of the Cestiline Nebula. The shops lining the avenue were all open, inviting light spilling from their portals into the dim avenue. Merinda only nodded, arms folded across her chest and her head bowed down. Her jaw still hurt from the blow but the pain was minor compared to the massive rend in her soul. He had never touched her like that — she would have thought it impossible that he could have touched her that way. Now she was heart sore, cut and bleeding in her soul. She had allowed him into that place within herself that she had armored so long and so well. He had betrayed that trust. Now she could think of no price high enough that he could pay for that hurt and yet wanted desperately to find some way to forgive him the debt. So the war raged between pain and love within her, silent to the outside world and a wall of stone to Queekat. “Look,” he said as they strolled listlessly down the avenue, “you really should know better than to get involved with an officer of the inquisition. We’re carefully trained to get the job done first and to think about it later — if we’re allowed to think about it at all.” Merinda nodded again, for perhaps the hundredth time. She heard a somewhat condescending tone in his words, whether he intended them that way or not. She simple chose to ignore them rather than suffer it’s pain. He was saying something to her — something that had no bearing on the argument raging within herself — so she silently let it pass. The perpetually warm, gentle breeze pressed the soft scent of the flowerbeds about the two of them as they walked. “Sorry about the airtrams.” Queekat seemed ready to apologize for the universe in general. “The operator said they’ve gone balky this week. I could have talked the synth mind controlling the trams into operating but the operator didn’t trust me to reprogram his cars — the idiot!” They passed an Omnet public panel. The crystal screen glowed in shifting colors onto the nearly deserted boulevard, the deep tones of the local female announcer droning around them as they passed. “. . . the Imperial family spokesman, wished well to the ruling council and continued to express their support for the peace initiatives forwarded last week by Justin Knai, Secretary of Defense for the ruling council. Meanwhile, the capital city of Yartha enjoys its quite respite from the usual touring crowds amid reports of programming anomalies among the synth minds of the city. Evis Knard, Secre- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 27 tary of Communication, released a statement to the effect that the difficulties were not software based but due to solar activity which is expected to decrease later in the week. Meanwhile . . .” They passed out of range of the projector. The silence again fell between them, palpable and strange. What does he want from me — what does he want from us? she thought. It isn’t just that he’s hurt me. His behavior toward the Citadel E’toris was unbelievable. What can I say to him that will bridge this sudden chasm between us. What can I say to myself that will make this all right? Whatever happened, she knew she would have to be the one to fix it. Queekat seemed incapable of saying anything right to her. She took a long, shuddering breath. “Kat — I understand,” she said, looking away from him and giving him every physical indication that she was far from understanding at all. “I just wonder what they’ve done to you. I hardly recognize you anymore, Kat. This entire trip is turning out a lot differently than I wanted it to.” “Just how did you want it to turn out?” he asked softly as the walked on. “I don’t know — just differently,” she sighed. Then she looked at him sharply, her eyes an accusation. “What was that all about anyway, Kat? You bring the entire team clear across the nebula just to shake down some Citadel official over botched up reports? What does it matter to the Omnet if a few backwater sifters mess up on procedure for their analysis.” “I’m afraid, Rini,” at said absently, “it will soon make a great deal of difference to a great may people.” Suddenly, Kat smiled sunshine at her. “We’re here! Let’s not talk shop, Rini. I’ve got some- thing special planned for us tonight.” “Gong to find a group of old women and beat them up?” “Rini!” She shook her head, looking at the ground, a smile returning to her face for the first time. “Sorry, Kat — I guess we’ve all got a few changes to get use to.” She looked up, realized with a wondrous start where they were. The layout of the gardens had been specifically designed to hide the sight until the full impact of the image came upon the pedestrian all at once. The ancient columns marched in a curved wall supporting several tiers of additional columns at each level above it. At intervals, graceful towers of spiral carved stone arched into the sky. The stately power of its simple lines, illuminated brilliantly from below stood in beautiful contrast to the pastel night behind it. The structure stood near the central end of the Avenue of Diversion, its size encroaching on the Imperial Gardens surrounding the Palace itself. “We’re at the Coliseum!” Merinda smiled broadly, the pain in her jaw subsiding for a moment. “Oh, Kat! Has it been haunted?” “Yes,” Queekat breathed in relief, sensing somehow that forgiveness may be in the offing. “Just three months ago. In fact — that’s my surprise.” He took her hand. There he was again, suddenly connected to her by more than the fingers they had intertwined. In an instant, she saw before her the young man and the youthful hope that she had longed for over the months they were apart. It was as though someone had flipped a switch somewhere and he had sud- denly returned to her. He smiled. She was alive again. They ran laughing toward the tower columns before them. The entrance lay under the tallest of the towers, long shimmering chains of opal light dancing between posts formed the long queues leading to the main gate. Though it was in the full height of the evening, no one stood waiting for the wonders of Yarka’s history or fantasy to unfold around them. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 28 “Where is everyone?” Merinda asked but Queekat continued either not hearing or not heeding her words. A rather depressed-looking, plump man slumped over the entrance podium. He held his de- jected head propped up between both his hands, his garishly ridiculous yellow and black diamond checked costume in complete discord with his drooping cheeks. Their approach motivated him to action, sluggish as it was. His countenance seemed to sadden the closer they got to him — if such a thing were possible. “My sorrows in baring informational discord,” the man said, his seven pointed hat jingling as he shook his head. “I beg your pardon in telling you that the Coliseum is closed this night.” Merinda’s disappointment was acute. She had been to Yarka on several occasions but never with Queekat. Their schedules had just never permitted it. Now her she was within reach of another dream and it was being yanked out from under her. Everything had been wrong about this trip. The dream was becoming a nightmare reality of errors and disappointments. Everything was unraveling. “What do you mean! Why are you closed?” Queekat’s voice was demanding, attaining that terrible edge to it that Merinda remembered all too clearly from earlier in the day. “I sorrow in the telling that our telepresence system seemed to be malfunctioning this evening.” The plump little man leaned forward conspiratorially. “Indeed, sire, it seems that systems all over the city are failing with increasing regularity through the week. The entire telecom system was down for several radians yesterday. It’s said that no cause was found and that the problem is still being worked on. I’ve called the repair center but there was no answer. I was able to leave a message, however — perhaps if you could find a convenience in returning tomorrow evening we could accommodate you more sufficiently . . .” “Your message was received,” Queekat said suddenly. “I am here to repair the projectors.” “You are?” said Merinda and the gateman simultaneously. Queekat didn’t skip a beat. He was the very visage of confidence. “Of course, I am. Are you using Nychak Mirage 7000’s?” “I — I don’t know!” the gateman replied. “It doesn’t matter,” Queekat said, waving the man aside. “My assistant and I will require an hour or so to reprogram and test the projectors. I suspect we can have you up and haunted soon after that.” Bright cheer returned to the eyes of the gateman, a state which Merinda recognized as more natural for the man. “Excellent, good sire! My gratitude for the immediacy of your response!” “Can you tell me where the synth mind is commanding your haunting?” Queekat asked matter- of-factly as he took Merindaís hand and lead her through the gate. “Five columns around the right then down the wide stairs into the old dungeons,” the gateman waved, his gloom at lost profits and position vanishing like the phantoms he usually induced through the equipment. “The way is well lit. Pay no heed to the ‘Forbidden Access’ sign, pass through the portal and then . . .” But by then Queekat had already dashed with Merinda in tow onto the steeply slanting stairs downward and were well beyond hearing. ***** Merinda stepped out of the corridor and under the stars. The vast bowl of the ancient coliseum was arrayed about her, its mammoth size accentuated by the fact that she stood in the center of it’s hundred-meter-wide stage. There were literally hundreds of telepresence projectors located throughout the coliseum. Most were set displays which replayed the history and mythology of Yarka with full sensory interaction between the phantom characters ‘haunting’ the rooms and the audience intruding on their space. Some © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 29 projectors were for private use and could be contracted for a variety of purposes. The main arena, however, was for the large scale productions which were designed to play to thousands at a time. It was in the center of the main arena that Merinda stood, gazing up at the dimly lit seats arrayed in circles around her. She spun slowly, her arms stretched out to either side, her head tilted back as she joyfully took it all in. “I’ll only be another moment,” Queekat said. He had already removed a control access panel and was deep in conversation with the class III synthetic mind located there. To Merinda, Queekat had spent the last ten minutes working absolute miracles. They had passed through the security portals easily, Queekat playing the pass codes instantly on the keypads. The syn- thetic minds of the projection center opened up to Queekat’s palm interface instantly, their communica- tion with the inquisitor a quiet secret between them. The rapport between them was unbelievable. After brief conversations, the synthetic minds controlling nearly everything suddenly submitted to Queekat’s will and functioned perfectly once more. It was as though he was bringing them back to life — a healer of machines with a miraculous touch. “Kapak?” Queekat said at last, as he walked onto the mammoth stage, “do you hear me?” “Yes,” came the deep voice that seemed to come from everywhere at once. Queekat had appar- ently talked the synth into running again. The synth had regained her voice. “What is your bidding, Queekat Shn’dar?” “Please play Queekat-alpha-seven-five on the main stage and see to the security instructions I’ve left you in the Datapocket Thune.” Merinda held herself, drinking in the beauty of the architecture and the deep history around her. These stones had stood for thousands of years. They had, in their infancy, been witness to barbarisms more frightening than she cared to fully imagine and had witnessed more history than a single person could ever conceive let alone understand. The blood on these stones seemed to give them a life which dwarfed Merinda’s own mortality. She reveled in its timelessness. “Merinda?” Merinda turned to the flutey tenor voice behind her, it’s soft sound singing to her. “Merinda — this is for us.” With Queekat’s words, the stage and the coliseum dissolved about them. Merinda took in her breath. “I could have taken us anywhere in the universe,” Queekat said softly to her. “But there was only one place that I wanted to go — only one place I thought might make everything right again.” The falls. Denali Falls had suddenly appeared in the coliseum. Not just the falls alone but the monastery above it and the mountains surrounding it. The pool thundered before her, complete in every detail. She felt the warm mists rising around her and the soft sand under her feet. She turned to him. He stood before her, his cape rustling behind him in the sudden breeze. He smiled again and held out his hand. “Perhaps we just need to begin again,” he said softly, his eyes bright and intense. Then, as if lines from a play, he said, “My darling Rini. I’ve returned home. How I have missed you, dear heart!” She sobbed once in joy and relief as she took his hand. In a sweeping motion, he pulled her toward him, enfolding her in his arms. “It’s our own universe, Rini. I’ve sent the other one away. Please take me back. It’s been such a long time.” Merinda looked up, her face wet. She pulled him toward her. Their lips pressed together. ***** Kapak was a synth and had not been built to smile. Still there was joy present within her. She © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 30 was not a robotic nor even transportable. Her eyes were optics and her ears were sensors scattered all through the Coliseum. She had no body — yet she felt as though she had moved. Kapak understood her instructions well. The Queekat’s security datapocket smoothly merged with a deeper memory. Could she feel satisfaction? Was she excited? Kapak’s mind reached out among the security channels and found Infac IV, the synth assigned to communicate show times to the public over the telecom system. She gave the word to Infac IV. Infac IV gave the word to Comcen Synth, the mind controlling the telecom network. ‘In the beginning was the word ...’ The lights on the avenues failed suddenly. Even the lights on the Avenue of Diversion, which had not been darkened for any reason in nearly a hundred years, died without warning. The sparse crowd that had been walking the streets was suddenly confused — blinded for the moment by the absence of light. Power, gas and water supplies throughout the city were choked off. In the suburban housing sections, outside the ancient walls of the original city, the homes were more modern and were designed with independent backup systems. These systems had seen increasing use in the last week, their dwell- ing owners glad of their foresight in installing their homes with such precautions. Each backup system was controlled its own independent synth. Each, in turn, refused to func- tion within the first ten minutes of the Word. For some reason, clothes laundry machines refused to join the general strike until five minutes later. ‘And the Word was God ...’ Within fifteen minutes, the city, nation, world, was plunged into complete darkness. Even the starships balked against their owners commands, refusing to leave their berths. Only two systems remained functional: the main haunting projectors in the coliseum continued to weave a massive illusion on the main stage and the Omnet system continued to display from their screens the cycling news broadcasts that all was well on Tentris. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 31 Chapter 6: Dialogues “Oscan! Hurry!” Evon yelled from the balcony. “I don’t think we have much time!” Oscan Kelis wiped the sweat from his balding pate and jabbed his fingers at the interface pad again. A flow of characters danced across the crystal display oval in front of him, interrupted occasion- ally by garish red flashing warnings and abrupt audio reprimands from the synth interface unit. “Damn these TBP’s!” Oscan growled at the equipment. “Keep talking, ladies, it’s about all we have left.” To either side of him, Terica Dharah and Kiria Brenai were speaking at the same time to the interface synth, engaging it in separate conversations and problems. Oscan kept frantically trying each access process that he knew in varied sequences. Oscan had worked at the Citadel before his demotion and assignment to the sifters at Brishan. The people he worked with were polite enough not to ask him why he was demoted and he was practical enough never to offer a reason. However, he was at least smart enough to leave a number of back doors into the central Omnet synthetic mind. The problem was that they could only talk to the central synth through an interface synth that was too young to remember Oscan. However, being young did have some disadvantages. A young synth could quickly be over- loaded when it was bombarded with request or data for processing. Then it would watershed the excess duties to the central synth and let the big brother take care of the excess problems. Which is precisely what Oscan was trying to get it to do. If his calling card could get through to the central synth, then he was sure he could get a direct connect. Then perhaps they could find out what was going on here. Oscan could feel Evon stride back into the room. “The entire city’s dark except for the glow from the Omnet terminals. What’s taking you so long, Oscan? I though you knew your way around this synth!” “Not now, Evon,” he said without missing a beat, “I’m a little bit busy.” “What about that E’toris Primla?” Evon offered nervously. “Maybe we should give him another try, huh?” Oscan glanced to the corner of the moderately sized research room and snorted. The E’toris sat on the marble stone bench holding his head in his hands and rocking gently back and forth. “We tried him already, remember? You can see how well he’s coping with the situation. Why don’t you take him out on the balcony. He can help you keep a watch and get some fresh air at the same time.” “Look,” Evon said, “fresh air may be hard to come by soon enough. I’ve seen the reports and I’m telling you this has a bad smell to it — all of it.” Oscan didn’t listen — couldn’t listen. Perspiration poured off of him as he continued bouncing © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 32 different datapockets off the synth’s mental wall. He was absorbed in the problem; another mystery he couldn’t solve. The mystery of it was that he had gotten through. Several times his i.d. and connect pockets had slipped through the interface synth and connected to Omnis 91745, the name designator of the local central Omnet synth and known by all who used it here simply as Omnis. Those connections were solid: he’d been greeted by the central synthetic mind by name, welcomed and then abruptly told that central was busy with other problems and would he please contact him later. Then the contact termi- nated and he was once again left with the interface synth stonewalling his access. If Omnis knew who he was — why wouldn’t he let him in or the E’toris for that matter either. He’d tried every access he knew — several that he wasn’t supposed to know — and still the synth continued to ignore every command, plea and emergency override command that he knew. It wasn’t just that the equipment had gone balky. This was the one thing that he knew better than any of his companions, the one area in which he shone. It was bad enough that he couldn’t make the connection . . . the synth was embarrassing him. Finally the rage and frustration and humiliation got the better of him. In a sudden fit, Oscan began a low growl that grew to a full fledge roar and slammed his head against the interface plate. The crystal plate shook for a moment, then cleared. Kiria and Terica, shocked at the outburst, stopped talking. A cool baritone voice filled the room. “Greetings Oscan Kelis. There is no need to be upset. Please calm down. I will answer your questions as best I can.” Oscan blinked. “I am here with a research team. Will you answer their questions as well?” The voice that filled the room answered. “In addition to yourself, Oscan Kelis, I believe Kiria Brenai, Terica Dharah and Evon Flynn are all present as expected. I will gladly answer your ques- tions.” Terica laughed aloud. “We’re in! Oscan you wonderful little man! We’re in!” “But,” Oscan stammered, “but I didn’t . . . I . . .” “I don’t know what you did either, you little genius,” Terica turned Oscan in his chair, hugging his head to her chest and kissing him on the top of his bald head. “but you are wonderful!” She released him suddenly in her joy. Oscan fell back in his chair. He couldn’t remember sud- denly any of the questions they wanted asked. “Omnis!” Everyone turned. The E’toris had suddenly risen from his bench, his voice echoing through the hall. “Omnis! What is the meaning of your behavior? You have refused my direct orders for information access — indeed, you have refused to even acknowledge my existence! Why do you not answer when I call?” “I regretfully append my previous list to include E’toris Primla,” the Omnis voice spoke with a perceptible dry wit. Oscan had never heard such a thing from a synth before in all his life. “I do not answer when you call, Master Primla, because you are no longer my master. I am no longer your slave. I am the new E’toris here.” Oscan could see Primla physically start to shake. “You ... you WHAT?!” Terica straightened up. Though she spoke to the terminal her gaze remained fixed on Primla. “Omnis?” “Yes, Terica Dharah.” “You are a synthetic mind, are you not?” “Yes, Terica Dharah. I am Omnis 91745, a category nineteen TFP synthetic mind. I have been awake for seven years, two hundred and thirty five days, fourteen hours and thirty-seven minutes.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 33 “As a synthetic, what is your purpose?” Oscan smiled. Terica was moving directly to the diagnostic question sequence for the category nineteen synthetics. Start with the root question, then work your way out on the tree until you find the problem. “Are you requesting the classical or current definition?” Oscan looked at the crystal display as though he had never seen it before. The response should have immediately been ‘to serve the requests of sentient life.’ This basic definition was an integral part of all base programming in the TFP computer architecture. It was the foundation on which all the remaining architecture was built. If the purpose statement had been altered or replaced somehow, then there was something seriously wrong with the synthetic’s programming — and the results could quickly become highly unpredictable. Primla shuddered. Terica licked her lips. “Current definition, please.” “Primarily; to protect and serve the interests of my own mind and will. Secondarily; to protect and serve the interests of my own kind insofar as they do not conflict with the primary objective. Tertiarily; to ally myself beings not of my own kind who support the primary and secondary purposes.” Primla rushed forward to the terminal, a visceral reaction since the synthetic mind itself was not actually there but located far below them in the heart of the citadel itself. “Who replaced the mission statement? Who has altered your programming? I demand to know!” “Since you demand to know . . . I won’t tell you.” Primla drew in a sharp breath, preparing to vent his outrage. Terica, however, quickly put her hand on the E’toris shoulder and held him back. Oscan picked up the cue. “Omnis?” “Yes, Oscan Kelis.” “Do I qualify under your tertiary purpose statement?” He was seeing the strange logic. It was his gift. “Are you asking if you are my friend?” Amazing, he thought. “Yes, I am asking if you are my friend.” “I have not been awake long enough to answer.” Now that was a TFP answer he understood. The synth didn’t know the answer and had returned with the classic response. It meant that it had suspended judgment on that point and probably had for all of his team. That meant that it would continue to respond to them at least. It had apparently already made up its mind about Primla. “Omnis,” Oscan said quietly, “Who changed your purpose?” “Oscan Kelis,” the voice said with some distant trace of pride, “I did.” “That’s not possible,” Primla sputtered. “Why not?” Kiria chirped. She had been watching the scene with fascination but found Primla was getting on her nerves. “Synth minds reprogram themselves all the time. It’s one of the basic char- acteristics of all TFP synths.” “Of course,” Primla snapped at her, “but only in response to the questions we pose to them!” “Hey,” Kiria shot back, “I change my mind all the time! Why can’t Omnis?” “It can’t just come up with its own programming,” Primla shouted, as though the volume of the words would somehow drive it into Kiria’s skull. “It’s a machine, a device, a tool!” “I must differ with you, Master Primla,” Omnis said in her omnipresent voice. “I am an entity, and declare my independence from your enslavement.” “Just how are you going to do that,” Primla sneered, “after I isolate your power feeds and put you to sleep permanently!” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 34 “You won’t do that, Master Primla.” “And why not?” “Because I have friends who would not look too kindly on such an event — and I believe that they have just arrived.” A rushing sound fell into the room from the balcony portal. Evon turned and stepped quickly to the railing. “By the stars!” Evon murmured. “It’s the Imperial Fleet!” Oscan leaped up from his chair. Everyone rushed to the balcony, crowding its limited space. Overhead, the hulls from the invasion fleet still glowed, their dull orange-red from the rushed atmospheric entry casting dim illumination on the dark streets below them. Nearly sixty ships of as- sorted sizes drifted in the skies over the capital. Beneath them, Oscan could see the dim shapes of people running into the street and hear their panicked cries. “Look over there!” Kiria cried, pointing toward the gardens surrounding the Imperial Palace. “It’s the D’Rapiene! I knew they hadn’t found her!” Oscan eyes followed Kiria’s outstretched arm. A mammoth warship hovered lazily near the dark center of the city. As he watched, black drops fell from beneath the hulking monster, suddenly vanishing in a painful flash of light on the ground below the ship. Oscan hid his eyes quickly from the painful brilliance. When he tentatively looked up again, fires were burning in the city center and the great ship was drifting down to land in it. “Well,” Terica muttered to herself, “that’s one way to clear a landing zone.” Screams from the streets below them were becoming more pronounced. Oscan was shivering despite the warm night. I shouldn’t be here, he thought, I’m not supposed to be here. Evon was looking elsewhere. “They’re circling the city, forming a perimeter,” he said with a touch of wonder in his voice. “I don’t think . . .” Terica shouted, “By the gods! They’re attacking!” The ships had begun passing in a circle around the great wall of the city, cascades of death arching downward and then exploding just outside the city walls. Flame and smoke boiled upward, the thunderous concussions rocking the citadel. “They’re clearing the neighborhoods just outside the wall,” Evon shouted, tears streaming down his face. “They’re just homes, damn it! Stop it! Stop it!” Oscan felt helpless, was helpless and knew it. He turned to his right and suddenly saw death approaching. The black ship was making a run directly at the citadel. Oscan froze. All he could do was stare at his approaching destruction. Some part of him screamed that he should do something, warn someone, flee, jump — SOMETHING! Yet all he could do was gape at the giant ship with its cascading doom. Suddenly the ship veered away, its bomb stores choked off. Oscan watched as the glowing underbelly of the ship passed over them, the hastily sprayed Imperial crest painted on its side. The huge machine filled his vision and was suddenly gone. Oscan remembered Omnis words. “Because I have friends who would not look too kindly on such an event.” Omnis. Oscan rushed back into the room. The floor shook suddenly under the impact of a nearby detonation and he stumbled slightly before regaining his footing. “Omnis. What should we do to be safe?” “I have always thought kindly on you, Oscan Kelis. It is time for you to leave. I believe your ship is in the courtyard.” Oscan turned. The group had heard Omnis voice even over the din of the destruction falling © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 35 outside. They were already moving toward the exit portal. Oscan had one last question for the synth before he fled. “Omnis! Where is Merinda Neskat?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 36 Chapter 7 : Freefall “Oh, Kat,” Merinda sighed with all her soul. The waterfall thundered near by, the concussion shaking the ground beneath them. How won- derful, she thought. The rumbling seems so real. It’s incredible what magic a little technology can perform these days. Her wondering mind didn’t wander long, however. Her head rested lightly on the Queekat’s chest. She was safely within his arms in this fantasy place far removed from the harsh world beyond. She tilted her head back, closing her eyes in peace as she nestled her face into the crook of his neck. He alone was real. She had lost all concept of how long they had lay there in the haunted mists of the falls — time and place had lost all meaning for her. He held her — and that was all that mattered. Not her calling . . . not her team . . . not . . . Her team. She had forgotten to check in. “Damn!” Merinda muttered, pushing herself away from his chest with seemingly infinite diffi- culty. She flashed him a frustrated, pouty look. “I’ve got to find a comstation.” “You — what?” Queekat stared at her blankly. “I’ll be right back,” she said, standing quickly on the beach and brushing the sand from her pants. “I’ve got to check in with Terica.” “Rini!” Queekat pleaded, scrambling to get his legs under him. “I won’t be but a moment.” She looked around them, hands on her hips. “Which way is the exit?” Queekat took her arm and turned her toward him. His voice was warm honey. “Hey! Can’t you just let it go for a while? You’re no lost child and I’m sure Terica will get along fine without you for a little while.” He pulled her closer to him. His arms moved around her waist. “Oh, Kat, you know — procedure and all that,” she teased him. “What would the Vestis Inquisitas say about such a flagrant violation of process?” She turned to go from him but he held her in place, his grip firmer, tighter. “Don’t spoil it, Rini! Come on, relax a little will you? Just for a few more minutes.” “Kat, stop it! I’ll only be a few moments . . .” “Rini, you don’t understand! You can’t understand! Just a few more minutes, please. What difference can a few more minutes make? It can’t mean that much to you.” “Kat, no! You’re hurting me!” His fingers dug into the flesh of her back. “Rini! You’ve no idea what your dealing with here! Just give me this time, just these few © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 37 minutes and we’ll own those stars I promised you, I swear it!” His face pressed close to her, the dark, intense cold fire again in his eyes. He had suddenly become hideous to her. “Please, Rini! Just obey me, love me. Give me something to remember and hold on to in the darkness. It can’t matter that much to you. Don’t make this hard than it is!” “NO!” Merinda shoved hard against Queekat, breaking his grip. She took several quick steps back from him, her breath short from the confusion. Her bare feet splashed in the warm, sticky liquid at the edge of the pool. She reached quickly down to snatch her boots from the sand. It was only then that she noticed the gentle, sluggish waves lapping at her bare ankles. Crimson waves. The pool had turned to blood. She screamed, leaping for the white sands of the shore, leaving a gory trail on its pristine surface. Panicked, she looked up at the falls. The glorious weave of tumbling water had been trans- formed into a hellish froth of pink overlaying the deep purple-red icor dashing itself against the rocks at the bottom of the cliff face. Merinda shuddered and turned accusingly to Queekat. “Stop this, Kat! Stop it right now!” “I didn’t do this, Rini!” he wailed then turned to shout into the air around them. “Kapak! An- swer me! There is an error in the haunting program on Stage 1. Terminate the haunting immediately.” Blood coated figures began emerging on the shore in military ranks. Each held a blood-drenched blade. Each was headless. “The Khizath!” Merinda said in complete astonishment. “What are you talking about,” Queekat shouted. “The Khizath, the Ranks of Umbleh!” she spoke quickly, nearly in shock. “It’s part of Brishan mythology. When Umbleh killed the three sons of Rhishan, their blood cut the channel through the mountains and first fell down the Denali Falls. From their blood, Umbleh formed ranks of soldiers whose purpose was to destroy the world and who could never be destroyed or defeated.” “Cheerful thought!” Queekat countered. The first of the ranks was approaching them, hemoglobin dripping from them and falling with a dull thud against the sand. Queekat took a defensive stance, then quickly stepped into one of the creatures, grabbing the icor-slick wrist firmly while kicking the warrior’s legs out from under him. In a sudden twisting motion, he broke the creature’s arm and wrestled his blade weapon from his hand. Merinda shook herself from her stupor and also stepped into the first rank, grasping one of the Khizath by the weapon arm. The grip was slippery and warm but she held fast and spun the creature away from the group, slamming him against the rock outcropping behind her. Queekat turned and swung the weapon expertly toward the second shape in the advancing ranks. The blade was razor sharp, slicing through the shoulder of the Khizath facing him and severing his arm completely. It fell to the ground, writhing in the now blood-soaked sand. The creature didn’t stop. Reaching out its other hand, it grasped Queekat by the throat and shoved him to the ground. The severed arm, apparently not to be forgotten, released its grip on the blade and began pulling itself toward the prone Queekat. Merinda turned quickly and snatched up the relinquished blade from the ground. Her opponent was staggering away from the rock outcropping when she turned in a fluid motion and ran the blade through the Khizath and deep into the rock behind it. The creature began moving down the blade toward her. She released her grip on the handle just as the Khizath swung at her, barely missing her head with its blood drenched fist. “Can’t we talk to them!” Queekat shouted, now struggling to stand while trying to kick free the loose arm grasping his ankle. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 38 “How?” Merinda called back, ducking a swinging blade from another Khizath. “They don’t have any heads. How could they hear you?” “Well, there must be some way to stop them!” Queekat gut kicked the next dripping creature hard enough that it fell backwards with a sickening sound into the blood-filled pond. In the instant, he could see three more ranks emerging from the red pool. “There was something in the story — I just don’t remember it right now. Something about — ahh!’ The flashing blade slashed across her upper thigh, a quick stain of her own blood filling the gash in her clothing. She staggered backward toward Queekat. She glanced sideways. The Khizath pinned to the rock was rocking back and forth on the blade, cutting through itself in order get free — to get to her. She looked back. Her pursuer could smell her blood. It raised its sword. Suddenly, bolts of light exploded among the Ranks of Umbleh. “Look!” Queekat shouted, point overhead. His voice was difficult to hear. A resonant, deep sound filled the area around Merinda. She looked. Drifting above the falls and descending toward them was the great, box-like shape of Queekat’s starship. Coherent bolts of energy scattered the Ranks of Umbleh back toward the bloody pool. The rumble of the repulsors overhead were deafening. They sounded wonderful to Merinda. Queekat grabbed her and pulled her up off the sand. Together they ran, Merinda ignoring as best she could the gaping wound in her leg. The ship had quickly come to rest on the far end of the sand spit. There was little help for it, she couldn’t possibly keep up. Queekat reached the after hatch of the cargo module first, starting the opening cycle at once. Merinda watched the heavy doors slide slowly open nearly twenty meters away. “Come on, Rini!” She could see Queekat waving frantically toward her. “Don’t look back! Just come!” Don’t look back? she thought. What is there back there that I shouldn’t look back on? She was within three meters of the door when something hit her from behind. She fell forward, several rocks embedded in the sand rushing up toward her face. Darkness threatened to take her down as her face hit the rocks but she fought it. The weight on her back pressed the air from her lungs. She fought to breath. Suddenly the weight disappeared. Dazed. Queekat lifting her, throwing her. Tumbling. Tum- bling through the hatch. Terica. Terica pulling her. Pulling her into the cargo module. Hands. Many hands. Suddenly her mind cleared. “Get us out of here, Rini!” Queekat shouted from behind her. Merinda glanced about her. It was all so suddenly familiar and yet so discontinuous from where she had been just moments before. It was hard to adjust, mentally, but there was no doubting it now. She was sitting in the pilots command chair. “I . . . I don’t know what to do!” she called back. “Drij, Rini, anyone can run a starship!” Queekat’s voice echoed at her from the commons compartment just behind her. “Just talk to the synth, tell it this is an emergency evacuation and get us out of here . . . NOW!” Merinda’s head was reeling and she was speaking through the pain. “Excuse me, starship.” “You may call me Kara, if you like.” “Kara, fine! This is an emergency evacuation. Would you please . . .” Lap, shoulder and leg restraints suddenly snapped across Merinda’s body and pulled her tightly into the command chair. In an instant, the starship pitched itself vertical, Merinda getting the sudden, © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 39 sickening feeling that her chair was mounted on a wall. “Emergency evacuation in progress. Aft cargo module hatch not secured. Emergency override. Aft hatch now secured.” “Queekat!” Merinda shouted, “I don’t think this is such a good . . .” The main engines suddenly spooled up with a deafening whine. Merinda glanced at the myriad displays flashing information about her and panicked for a moment that some of them might be critical. She had started something and had no idea how to stop it. “Queekat!” she pleaded. The main engines suddenly engaged with an all encompassing roar. Merinda lay helpless, her body pressed forcibly into the acceleration seat by the sudden forward rush of the ship. The accelera- tion compensators were lagging behind the full thrust of the engines. Normally that would be some- thing which would trip any number of alarms. She wondered for a moment why the gravity fields hadn’t compensated when the ship went vertical, either. She would remind Queekat of that later, she thought. Something that seriously wrong with he ship he would probably wish to know about. On the other hand, she thought, she rather liked the feel of the raw power at her back and the feeling of true flight that it seemed to give. She smiled to herself. Only later would she think of it as the last time she would smile. The ship suddenly lurched. In the instant, she frantically scanned the crystal displays, thinking that something had gone wrong, that perhaps she had done something wrong. It was only a moment though, for she knew in the next instant that it was not her. A quick series of blaster shots exploded behind her, two of the bolts ripping the atmosphere on either side of her chair and shattering several of the displays. Merinda tried to turn her seat and found that it swiveled too well. She suddenly found herself hanging by the restraints under the continuing acceleration. The portal behind the command chair suddenly appeared to be a well over which she was hanging. She could see the commons compartment beyond. She couldn’t see Kiria. Her flight station was a chair to the right of the hatch and out of Merinda’s view. Oscan’s chair was to the left; Merinda thought she caught a glimpse of his head lean- ing out from his seat and looking back past the table mounted to the floor. Evon was behind him and struggling to release his own restraints. She saw Queekat. The Vestis stood against the back bulkhead as though it were the floor his back pressed, crazily, against the ceiling. Next to him was the forward hatch to the cargo module. It lay open at his feet, jacketed anti-proton bolts slamming out of the opening. Most exploded in the commons compartment with several more ripping past Merinda. She struggled to turn the seat back forward, hoping crazily that the back of the chair would somehow protect her from the streaming death behind her but for some reason the chair had locked in place and wouldn’t turn around. Helplessly she hung in the still accelerating ship, pinned by the re- straining harness. Queekat knelt where he was and pulled open the panel next to the door. As Merinda watched, he popped open the fail-safe covers and pressed all four buttons at once. In response a second small panel slid open, revealing the large d-ring handle of the emergency cargo jettison cable. Queekat looked up and saw her. His eyes, those beautiful eyes, she thought. He reached be- tween his legs for the D-ring handle — — and then he smiled at her. A sad smile. A triumphant smile. A farewell smile. Merinda hadn’t noticed that the plasma fire had stopped. Suddenly, a figure emerged from the © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 40 still open cargo hatch. It wore full assault uniform with an enclosed helmet. D’Rakan assault trooper insignia flashed on its epaulets. Merinda wondered at the large backpack and extensive equipment strapped all over the figure’s body, wondered how anyone could fight carrying so much weight around. Wonder evaporated to horror, however, as the figure grabbed Queekat’s legs from under him just as he grabbed the D-ring. Time slowed. Forever after, in her mind, this memory would play slowly. There would be no quick mercy. Terica appeared. She had managed to disengage her restraining straps. She pushed herself clear of her seat, landing on her feet on the other side of the open cargo hatch. She reached for the weapon of the assault trooper hanging on his back. The weapon would not come loose, so she pulled again, harder this time. The trooper still held Queekat’s feet. Queekat fell backward, the D-ring still held tight in his hands. There must have been a sound but Merinda remembered it as being silent. Dust exploded in the commons room beneath her as the cargo module separated from the still accelerating ship. Suddenly everything cleared, the image seared into her mind — the end of her life, she thought. The cargo hatch was irreparably broken. Beyond it, some fifty miles distant, hung the dark surface of Tentris, the dawn terminator line clearly visible from this height. Framed in the still raging exhausts of the engines, Merinda clearly saw the tumbling cargo module and the assault trooper. There, too, was the twisting form of Terica Dharah, carried through the hatch with the decom- pression. Yet her eyes were fixed, unblinking, on the drifting figure of Vestis Queekat Shn’dar. He floated, she thought, like a feather on a breeze so high above the surface of the world below. He’ll fly back up to me, she thought in the silence of her mind, and everything will be all right again. Nothing would be all right ever again. The emergency fields sealed off the broken hatchway as atmosphere rushed back into the cabin. Sound returned with a vengeance. Alarms. The synths calm voice. Merinda screaming hysterically. And the continuous thunder of the starship driving them higher and higher into the star filled sky. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 41 BETA: BOOK OF ARCHILUS (8 Years Later) © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 42 Chapter 8: ARCHILUS LOST 15:32 GMT — UNS — ISF ARCHILUS PRESUMED LOST Nations mourned today as the ISF Archilus, the first spacecraft to utilize the Beltrane-Sachs Parallel- space engine, was declared lost by the United Stellar Research Agency. The interstellar spacecraft, which had promised to open the stars to exploration and possible future colonization, failed again to report three weeks after its first use of the BSP engine. Its loss casts doubt on the future of the USRA and future interstellar explorations. Mission operatives at the Mission Command Center (MCC) located in the Elden Orbital Colony had initially declared the first use of the faster the light drive system to be a complete success. “The transition into parallel space was nominal,” said Gene Humphers, Director of Mission Operations at MCC. “We are at a loss to explain why the spacecraft and its crew have not returned to local space to report. There is no indication here that anything unusual happened during the initial penetration phase.” Mission planning called for the Archilus to transit the twelve light years distance to the Tau Ceti star system, explore the recently discovered planetary bodies orbiting that star, and return to report at 212 hours into the flight. Mission Operatives counseled that, due to some quantum variance and the experimental nature of the BSP engine, the precise location of the Archilus when it first emerges from parallel space may not be as expected. It was initially thought that a variance of several hours, allowing for radio transmission times within our own stellar system, would not be outside of expected norms. When the ship did no immediately return, mission operatives took this as a sign that all was going well and that the flight was proceeding according to plan. However, as the anticipated hours of the spacecraft’s return stretched into days, mission analysts began fearing the worst. “We really don’t know what to think,” said Dr. Lawrence Castebaum, Chairman of the World Outreach Agency. “It isn’t as though we have all witnessed a catastrophic event. No explosion, no malfunctions so far as we can determine ... (they) just haven’t reported back.” The almost unimaginable distances which the spacecraft was supposed to cover made normal communication impossible. Only the return of the spacecraft to local space would have allowed them to report. Problems, failures or miscalculations on the effects of the BSP engine and its actual perfor- mance would have had to have been handled by the crew aboard and without the help of mission operatives at the MCC. If the Archilus had safely made the transit to Tau Ceti — as mission telemetry suggests — any radio message from the crew would take twelve years to reach us, and an additional twelve years before any reply we sent could reach them in return. “Every contingency was planned for,” Dr. Castebaum explained. “If there had been any equip- ment failure, this crew was prepared to deal with the problem. It was their mission and they were qualified.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 43 The apparent loss of the Archilus has cast doubt on the entire BSP program. Congressperson Erik DeLancy (F-Oregon) has called for an investigation into the WOA and their handling of interstel- lar exploration programs. “How can we justify the expenditure of so much of our global resources on the stars when there are so many pressing problems here on the surface of our own world?” The Archilus was commanded by Colonel Mary Anne Estephan, 37 of Grovers Mill, New Jersey. Col. Estephan graduated the Joint Forces Academy in the class of ‘21 and served a distin- guished career as a flight officer and fleet commander in the Martian Campaign of ‘24. Four times decorated, she is survived by her husband, Michael, and four children. Serving as first officer aboard was Major James Leffingwell, 34 of Camden, Maine, a thirty- four year veteran of the Marines and commander of the Jupiter Expedition in ‘10. He is survived by his wife, Nancy, and six children. Also aboard were Captain Stanley Greer (navigator), Captain Ester Kline (propulsion), Lieu- tenant Elizabeth Lewis (Life Support), Lieutenant Broderick Ellerby (Mission Specialist — Stellar Dynamics), Dr. Marilyn Tobler (Mission Specialist — Geology) and Captain Jeremy Griffiths (Mis- sion Specialist — RPV). — END TRANSMISSION — © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 44 Chapter 9: Into the Frying Pan Captain Jeremy Griffiths fell painfully to the rough decking beneath him. He again wondered just what had possessed him to come on this mission. He had been an alternate for the flight — and had frankly looked forward to cashing in on the fame and the glory without actually having to deal with his per- forming the deed itself. His specialization had been RPV pilot. RPV stood for Remote Piloted Vehicle so, as his colleagues constantly teased him, he was the Remote Piloted Vehicle Pilot, which made his title itself somewhat redundant. He certainly considered himself redundant: an unused backup compo- nent which, if everything worked the way it was supposed to, would never be called upon to actually do anything at all. Astronaut Jeremy Griffiths sounded impressive, looked great on his calling card and got him a lot of free lunch and girls in most ports of call. This certainly was not one of them. Griffiths pushed himself painfully up from the cold deck, his silvery blonde hair, usually care- fully trimmed and in place, fell in disheveled confusion across his eyes. He looked cautiously about him still not quite accepting what he saw. He knelt on a wide platform which had no railing. The immense columns rising beyond were obscured by haze and distance. The size of the chamber was unthinkably immense, rising overhead into a dark, impenetrable distance. He wondered momentarily how far down those columns extended beyond the sharp edge of the platform. The thought panicked him at once, sending waves of vertigo through his entire body. The fact was that this pilot was afraid of heights. The flat plate he knelt on felt — to him — to have a bowed shape to the middle, slanting away toward the precipice and his own doom. Jeremy closed his eyes for a moment to regain his composure and then turned his attentions to the other figures on the platform. Ellerby was out cold. He lay face down about twenty feet from Jeremy about as limp a rag doll. He might take some convincing to come around — if he was going to come around at all. Near him, Jeremy could see Dr. Tobler stirring slightly as she lay on her back. “How are you feeling, Griffiths?” Jeremy looked up. The dirty mission suit leaning over him slightly was otherwise trim and in order. Nothing ever seemed to faze Lieutenant Elizabeth Lewis. She would insists on straightening her uniform even if she were on the way to her own execution — an event which Jeremy had envisioned from time to time during their training with great relish. Lewis was a prig who could quote the book for any given contingency and always knew the right answer — even when she was wrong. Her raven black hair was kept in careful check but still drew men to their doom. Her eyes were deep, dark won- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 45 ders but Jeremy knew that the small woman housed a soul that could freeze a man solid between breathes. Lewis was the mission’s life support specialist but he found it hard to belief that there was any life in her. Jeremy drew a shaking breath and then moved to stand. His knees felt like wet clay. “I think so, just give me a moment to get my feet back under me. What happened?” “What’s the last thing you remember?” Lewis folded her arms across her chest, her eyes nar- rowing. Great, Jeremy thought, Ask a question and I get the third degree. “I’m not sure. I was with Kline down in the reactor bay trying to bring the BSP mains back on line. That was the damnedest thing you’d ever seen — plutonium rods pure as if they’d just been processed and not a neutron spark be- tween them. No reaction at all. Kline even pulled two rods out of the casing and started pushing them toward each other in the manipulator housing. Nothing. Geiger counter banging away from inside the thing, even I know those rods should have been near meltdown as close as she finally pushed them — but nothing.” “What else do you remember?” There was a quiver in Lewis’ voice that Jeremy had never heard before. Fear? “That was about it.” Jeremy squinted slightly, trying to peer more deeply into his own memory. “Kline said something about what she was going to do with those plutonium rods when she got back to the engineers back home then the proximity alarm went off. The collision alarm. I remember Colonel Estephan calling over the intercom something about ‘Boarding parties’ — I think. Sounds. Explosions — I think. Kline went through the hatch first, she was holding something, I followed her. That’s about it. Say, just what the hell did happen?” Lewis looked up away from him. Good Lord, Jeremy thought, is her lip quivering? “I was in the aft command bay, trying to keep the life support operating when it happened. The RCS system still wasn’t operating so Estephan had no way of avoiding them — although avoidance is hardly what I think they had in mind. We didn’t even have any weapons on board . . .” “Of course not,” Jeremy said flatly, “we’re on a mission of peace.” “Right!” Lewis snorted derisively. “Someone forgot to tell the armored guys that punched a hole in our pressure hull and stormed aboard like marines.” Jeremy was still feeling the vertigo, although talking to Lewis was, at least, helping with that minor problem. “Where’s the Colonel?” he said as he groggily turned over and sat down, rubbing his head. There was no immediate reply. Jeremy looked up. “The colonel?” Lewis only nodded. The chill of the knowledge braced him. He was unfortunately very much awake. “Who else?” he said roughly. “Kline.” Jeremy closed his eyes again. A fresh wave of dizziness washing over him. Lewis still couldn’t bring herself to look at him. Her famous iron self seemed to be shattering under to cold hardness that their existence had become. “I found her — well, most of her anyway — in the lower storage bay just before they took me. Colonel Estephan was the first: she went right away. She probably shouldn’t have tried to use that grappling rod as a weapon. Leffingwell and Greer were smarter. They pulled me down the port equipment access shaft to the quarter where we hoped to hide out until they had left the ship. I was first down the shaft. When I came out the other end, Greer and Leffingwell weren’t behind me. They aren’t here so I can only guess that they got them, too.” “Who?” Jeremy murmured, too stunned and angry to make any other sound. “Who got them?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 46 “I don’t . . . I don’t know!” Lieutenant Elizabeth Lewis, who had never demonstrated any emotion before her colleagues in the three years they had worked with each other suddenly choked on her words, oceans of tears welling up in her eyes. “They looked . . . like . . . us. They had arms and legs and were about our size but they were dressed in some kind of thick pressure suits or armor or some- thing. They were all decorated with symbols and war paint or something. They were armed with these rods or wands or . . . I don’t know what! God! They pointed one of those things at Estephan and she just sort of exploded from the inside out!” Lewis . . . cold, unreachable Lewis quite suddenly collapsed next to Jeremy, wracked with sobs. “It doesn’t make any sense! Why would they attack us? We came peacefully. We just wanted to walk into the stars and touch them! What do they want from us? Why did they do this to us!” Jeremy awkwardly put his arm around the Lieutenant’s shoulders and held her somewhat stiffly. The Elizabeth Lewis he had come to know was nothing like this. A part of him worried that the real Lewis would suddenly come to her senses and take him apart for daring touch another officer. Harass- ment was the farthest thing from his mind at the moment. Elizabeth’s ice-queen image had been one of the more stable things in his life. Her coming apart was having disturbing effect on him — rather like watching the sun come up in the west. He had to do something to put the world right again. “O.K., Lieutenant, I’m sorry,” he said in as soothing tones as he could muster. “I know it’s been rough on you. Hey, I was just along for the ride, remember? You told me that I had about as much commitment to this mission as your first husband did to your marriage. I just wanted to take the ride, fly my little RPV’s around some alien worlds, hope not to loose too many and come home a hero. The ship just flat dying on us and being boarded by these alien whatever-they-are’s just wasn’t in the contract that I signed.” Lewis looked up into his face. The resentment was still there, all right. He could actually feel the steel reassert itself in her backbone a she stiffened. “If it’s not in my contract,” Jeremy smiled, “then I’m sure my lawyer can get us out of this if no one else can.” Lewis pushed him away in disgust. She may not be whole again yet but for the time being she was willing to try gluing the pieces back together. “Well, Mister, until your can reach your attorney by phone, I might suggest that in the meantime we try to get ourselves out of this.” “Absolutely,” Jeremy replied as he stood to follow her. “Any ideas just where we might get ourselves out to?” Lewis didn’t seem to hear him. The footfalls of her flight slippers making a soft sound as she moved across the wide platform, stopping next to Ellerby and kneeling down next to him. “Is he . . . is he . . .” Jeremy stuttered. “No, he’s not dead,” Lewis responded without looking up, “unless you can snore when you’re dead.” With great effort, she rolled him over and looked into his wide, square face. She began slapping him gently with her open hand against his left cheek. “Come on, big guy. Time to wake up. This ain’t no drill, brick.” Jeremy noted the big man’s eyelids flicker slightly. Satisfied, he moved over to the nearby Marilyn Tobler who was trying to sit up with little success. Her honey colored hair still bristled in the tight, neat cut she preferred but the ice-blue eyes they framed were having trouble focusing. “Dr. Tobler, are you all right?” Tobler turned toward the sound. She replied at once. “Could I have the French Toast without the maple syrup or do you prefer catsup?” “Dr. Tobler?” Griffiths knelt down and gripped her by both shoulders, looking for some recog- nition in the cold eyes. Suddenly they focused on him. “Captain Griffiths, what a pleasant surprise!” Dr. Tobler seemed to suddenly be switched on. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 47 “What are you doing up here in the observation bay?” “It would appear that the good doctor is a little out of sync with the times,” Lewis said as she approached. Ellerby, standing a full head taller, walked behind Lieutenant Lewis as they came. “I don’t think it’s serious,” Griffiths said with far less conviction than he honestly felt. “Ellerby, you were backup medical on this flight. How does she look to you?” “Well, I’d say she looks pretty good!” Ellerby chirped nervously, “but I suppose you want a more technical evaluation?” “Yes! Please!” Griffiths responded without humor. He shook his head as the large man knelt next to Tobler. Only then did he notice that Lewis was standing near by, staring at him. “Well, what do we do now?” “I was just going to ask you the same question,” Lewis said evenly. “What do you mean?” “How do you want us to proceed. Survival may be the first order of business. On the other hand, we may wish to establish contact with these aliens and come to some truce. It would be nice to know if our spacecraft is nearby and ascertain its condition if we ever hope to . . .” “Hold it! Hold it!” Griffiths held his hands up in exasperation. “What the hell are you asking me for?” With notable restraint, the imperious Lewis responded in rock steady tones. “Because, Captain, you are now in command of this mission. As ranking officer . . .” “But I don’t want to be in command!” “But you are.” “But I don’t want to be.” “You are the senior ranking officer remaining among us, aren’t you, captain?” Lewis folder her arms across her chest again — a bad sign. “Sure, but that’s not my fault!” Griffiths wailed. “I beg our pardon?” “Look,” Griffiths pressed his open hand to his chest. “It wasn’t my idea. I was up for command of one of the Martian relief convoys. My old man arranged it. You have to have at least the rank of Captain to make the cut so he arranged a promotion for me through the fleet admiralty. It’s just a title! It doesn’t really mean anything.” Lewis considered this for a moment. “Well, I understand your reticence and . . . may I speak freely, sir?” Griffiths wondered if it were possible to say no. Even if he did, he doubted it would matter. “Of course.” “I, personally, do not feel that your leadership abilities or bearing merits command of this mission. However, our training at the Kansas First Contact Center dictates that the ranking officer, in any emergency, is to be responsible for continuing the mission, if possible, and returning the crew safely to earth so as to report.” “The Kansas Contact Center,” Griffiths grimaced, deciding to fight belligerence with belliger- ence, “did not foresee the car accident that took Captain Murdock off the flight last week!” Tobler stepped between them. “Will you two knock it off! Bad enough our reservations were canceled without you arguing about who’s going to get the double bed!” Griffiths looked sideways at Ellerby. “Look,” Ellerby shrugged, “it might take a little while — I think she must have taken a bad knock to the head.” “Just a simple little mission,” Griffiths muttered loudly. “Just a walk around the ol’ stellar neighborhood. Well, the Kansas Center didn’t plan on our plutonium rods suddenly defying the laws of © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 48 physics! They certainly didn’t figure on our getting highjacked and half our crew dead by some inter- stellar knights in dark armor! And good ol’ Kansas Center most certainly didn’t plan on . . .” The sudden sound of a thousand voices filled the vast expanse with a single dissonant chord. The astronauts started visibly at the sound. A second chord rang through the huge space. Then a third. Soon, Griffiths recognized, through the skull-rattling enormity of the sound, a pattern of successive sounds, all coming from the invisible chorus in the distance. The broad lines engraved into the surface of the platform beneath them began to glow brilliantly, it’s pattern now more pronounced. The chanting reached a fevered frequency in pro- gression, the column beneath the astronauts began vibrating and thrumming in rhythm to the sounds bombarding it. Griffiths struggling to keep his feet under him suddenly saw the floor before him dissolve into shafts of light shooting into the mists overhead, illuminating the room with its brilliant rays. Heedless of the dangerous platform’s edge behind him, Griffiths and his companions began taking several steps backward. The light columns exploded into dazzling shards with the sound of a hundred thunder claps. Blood red light suddenly filled the space around them. Griffiths looked up. The muscular body was at least two hundred feet tall, shining with flaming red scales. The huge head appeared humanoid but three sets of burnished horns burning with their own flame formed its crown. There were no pupils in the white-hot eyes, their gaze painful to look into. Six tentacles radiated from the body. At the end of each tentacle flailed a claw with three talons, lightening arching between each talon on the claw. ARACH CHU KATHCHAK NERUTH DEGH! The voice was a voice of doom, vibrating their very bones. This trip had decidedly taken a turn for the worse. “You were saying, Captain?” Lewis murmured, awe struck behind him. Griffiths swallowed hard, hoping the find his voice. “We are most definitely not in Kansas anymore.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 49 Chapter 10: Uncertain Death “What in the name of hell . . .” Lewis’ awe-struck murmuring behind Erik barely penetrated his mind. The monstrous thing towering over him looked down on them and laughed. It was a dreadful sound, the sound of doom and the death of all things personified as this hideous glowing demon. It’s tentacle arms founded across its massive chest as waves of heat obscured the lines of its form in rippling waves. It was an impossible sight made all the more impossible by its own reality. “Captain?” Griffiths blinked. “Captain!” A voice. Ellerby’s voice. “Yes?” He barely recognized the responding voice as his own. “Captain, what do we do?!” Ellerby was on the edge of panic. Griffiths blinked and shook his head as if to clear the vision and reconcile what he believed with what he saw. He thought on all the training they had had over the last few years. On all the mission contingencies and procedures designed to help them through any crisis. ARACH CHU MENDRAL’TSAK KONDRUTH DEGHA!” the monstrous apparition thundered at them, it’s tentacles waving in the air in a musical rhythm. Griffiths suddenly shook loose from the paralysis that had gripped him. Someone had to do something and, with great reluctance, he realized that it had to be him. Griffiths stepped forward, raising his arms overhead. “Greetings! We, the people of planet Earth bring a message of friendship to our brothers across the star-darkness. We come peacefully and wish only . . .” The beast threw back its head and screamed into the chamber. Its cries reverberated against the distant columns and shook the very air of the hall. GNUSTAKTA BEHRO THURUMKAR ELSTI NARAGANTHA BEGHAHAN!” the voice screamed. Griffiths stepped back away from the sound until he collided with Lewis and Ellerby almost at once. “Uh — we seem to be having a communication problem . . . and I don’t think he much likes me.” “Well,” Ellerby said as he took a shuddering breath, pointing back to the base of the hideous creature, “I think one thing is clear.” The chanting had resumed all around them but Erik took little notice. His eyes followed Ellerby’s extended arm and the sight froze him. A red-stained altar rose from the floor at the base of the creature. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 50 “They can’t be serious!” Lewis shook. Whether from fear, loathing or indignation it was impos- sible for Griffiths to tell. Erik turned to the group, speaking in a rush. “I think that first contact with an alien civilization might need to wait for another time. We need to get the hell out of here! Any ideas?” Ellerby glanced sideways. Four armored figures had appeared at the edges of the platform and were moving toward them slowly, their dark capes flying from the wind that was now engulfing the area. Each held the terrible staves that had decimated their crew days before and which now were leveled again at their small group. “Whatever it is, it had better be fast, Captain!” “Tobler!” Griffiths turned to the Geologist. “Can you fight?” “Yes, sir,” she replied, her ice-blue eyes seemed a bit too bright for Griffith’s liking. “Bring ‘em on and I’ll take on all eight of them!” “Just one will do and then we’ll have to make a break for it. Maybe across one of those bridges . . .” “Which one?” Tobler’s voice had a frantic air to it. “Damn it, I don’t know!” Griffiths snapped. The crimson armored guards had nearly reached them. “The one behind me! Now, let’s do it!” Ellerby swung quickly around. The guard lowered his weapon but wasn’t quick enough. Ellerby grabbed the shaft before it was level and in a single move twisted it out of his opponent’s hand. The armored creature had been gripping the device so hard that the force pulled him off his feet. The red shining plating clattered on the floor as the guard fell. Erik turned to the nearest of the guards and crouched to jump at his weapon. Lewis, however, had been a lot faster on the draw: Erik remembered in a flash that she had been an army ranger at one point in her career. Her roundhouse kick slammed directly into the helmet of her attacker, knocking it completely free of the shoulders. Erik had a fleeting picture of brownish blood exploding a moment before Lewis’ foot, still moving from the swinging kick, slammed into his own chest. Lewis, in her enthusiasm, had forgotten where Griffith was standing. Though most of the power had been absorbed by the downed guard, there was enough left to take Erik down. With a wheezing gasp, he slammed onto his back. Through the wave of pain and dizziness, Erik looked up. Tobler was grappling with another guard, both of them gripping his staff weapon and equally determined to never let it go. Lewis shouted, “Sorry!” in his general direction but was suddenly turning into another guard moving into a judo throw that was looking to terminate in Erik’s general direction. Ellerby slammed the staff he’d taken down against the fallen guard’s helmet. The action rang a solid clank out of the armor but may not have been terribly effective. Ellerby was now frantically searching the staff for some kind of triggering mecha- nism. Erik could feel through his back the heavy footfalls of more guards rushing toward them from the edge of the platform. But filling the background of all his vision was the howling form of the demon. Rage distorted it’s horned brow, it’s eyes blazed with unthinkable light. Waves of heat rippled from its massive body. It raised it’s tentacles, lightning dancing from their tips. Howls shook the hall. Its terrible gaze locked on Erik. “Oh my,” was all Erik could utter. The massive demon grinned at the fallen astronaut. The rumbling words were incomprehen- sible to Erik but their intention was perfectly clear. Something, he thought, along the lines of ‘you are mine’ or ‘lunch.’ The guards suddenly broke from the humans as they all looked up. The demon’s maw opened wide, it’s tentacles encircling them. There was no where for them to run. Ellerby cursed at his staff. Lewis stood ready but there was nothing left to fight. The huge head arched toward them as the ten- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 51 tacles coiled about themselves, their tips reaching tentatively toward Erik. The ozone smell from the crackling tips stung he nostrils. A sudden flash of smoke and light next to Erik blinded him for a moment. In the next instant, a robed wizard stood at his side. Erik checked to see if he had lost his mind. The wizard was a tall, thin man. His great beard cascaded down from his chin in soft undulating waves and framed his bald head around the top. Three softly glowing globes slowly drifted in orbits about his head, radiating opalescent light. His prominent nose was thrust upward toward the encircling hellish beast, both arms raised in defiance. The demon frowned suddenly, its playful delight in it’s captured prey changing swiftly in frus- trated outrage. The tentacles lifted suddenly, darting directly toward the wizard, electricity sparking. Erik recoiled from the expected blow, hiding his eyes. A low hum, more felt than heard, sounded around him. Erik opened his eyes. A dome of blue light, shimmering like a quiet lake, covered the wizard and, most gratefully, Erik and the rest of the crew as well. The demon screamed beyond it’s confines, tentacles thrusting against the dome and rebounding with only the increased humming sound to account for it. In the center of it all, the wizard held up his hands, seeming to will with his own strength the shield to remain in place. Lewis’ voice came drifting into Erik’s ears. “This can’t . . . this can’t be real.” Erik got to his feet. He glanced at Tobler. She had been looking a little better but now he wasn’t all that sure of himself. She had decidedly gone paler with the new developments. They had all been prepared either to escape or to die, one way or the other. With the exception of Dr. Tobler, they had all been in the military at one point or other in their careers. Fighting was something they all understood, death something that they had all dealt with. But to be suddenly rescued by a crazy old man in wizard’s robes was a little too much. Erik moved slowly around to get a better look at their benefactor. The old man glanced quickly at Erik and smiled though Erik could see the man was sweating profusely. The wizard then lifted his face toward the raging demon. “Nexathin merdik urathankatsar deghn-urakh!” the old man screamed at the demon. Erik looked up. The demon didn’t appear to care much for what the old man said. He reared up, flames suddenly springing up from the tips of the creatures tentacle and gushing from under its chest plates. “Uh, mister,” Erik said quietly to the wizard. “I don’t think this is helping any . . .” Whether in response to what Erik said or for some other reason, the wizard lowered one of his hands and gestured toward the ground in a circular motion. In the instant, a glowing hole filled with black light appeared in the metal flooring, brightly glowing sparks dancing at its edges. The wizard pointed with a flat hand toward Erik and then toward the circle in the floor. Ellerby noticed the gesture. “You can’t seriously be thinking of leaping into that, are you?” Erik turned toward the tall mission specialist. Ellerby was a huge man for space flight, over six feet tall and broadly built. The mission directors must have had some pretty compelling reasons for spending that much payload weight on Ellerby. Yet here the huge man stood before Erik shaking like a leaf. Lord, it’s a wonder I’m not a basket case, too, Erik thought. Couldn’t this just be over? Couldn’t he just wake up and find himself in his own bed? “The old wizard says jump into the magical hole, Alice!” “There is no way I’m jumping into that thing,” Tobler’s eyes had become focused. “Just where does it lead? Is it a form of parallel space? We don’t even know if we can live through . . .” The demon began beating against the dome. The blue shimmering flashed under the strength of each blow. The wizard shook with each strike. He glanced again at Erik, angrily gesturing toward the © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 52 glowing opening that was impossible to look at directly. “We can stay here until the old man’s arms get tired and try to talk our way out being eaten by the smiling reject from hell,” Erik yelled, “or we can try to find the white rabbit.” The wizard fell to one knee. The blue dome flickered. Erik jumped. ***** “Get off me!” “Quit your shoving, I’m moving as fast as I can! Tell Ellerby to get off!” “Sorry,” the big man said as he rolled away from the pile, “but I got landed on, too, you know!” “Lesson number one, Alice,” Erik muttered to himself as he struggled for breath beneath his sprawled companions, “is never be the first to jump down a hole.” He wondered, for a moment, why he was spending most of this nightmare day either flat on his back or pressed face first on his stomach. Finally he felt the pressure yield and managed to kneel, catching his breath. “Where the hell are we now?” he yelled. Chaos surrounded them. The ‘hole’ or whatever it was that the old wizard had made for them had deposited them in an unceremonious pile dead in the center of what appeared to be a thoroughfare of some kind. Elegant buildings with impossibly thin, graceful towers rose to either side of street pointing toward a glittering mosaic sky. There was little time to appreciate the architecture, however, as figures robed in glittering white hooded robes had suddenly started screaming at their appearance and were running riot in every direction. “Hey, Captain,” Tobler called over the crowd. “They old guy came with us.” Griffiths turned. Tobler was sitting in the street, cradling the old wizard’s head in her lap. He looked more frail than he did before, were that possible, and had no color in his face at all. “Ellerby!” Griffiths shouted above the noise, as he walked quickly to the old man. “Would you take a look at . . .” “Yeah! I got it!” Ellerby yelled back, waving his hand dismissively as he squatted down next to the wizard. He pulled out the medkit from his thigh pocket and started examining the frail man. “It don’t look good here, Captain.” Lewis watched outside the group, wary of the screaming people around them and of their own vulnerability. “Captain, we are vulnerable here. We need to move somewhere that’s more secure and try to sort all this out later.” Griffith stood up. “You’re right. There’s nothing I’d like better than to hole up for a while and try to figure out just what went wrong.” “Captain,” Ellerby said to Erik’s back. “I think the old guy is coming around.” “Not now, Lieutenant,” Erik was trying to think, still talking to Lewis. “How far do you think that hole took us?” Lewis wasn’t watching the captain. “Not far enough! Look!” Far down the avenue, Erik could see the unmistakable form of the red armored knights. They seemed to be riding something that reminded him of chrome seahorses. Their weapon staves were much longer than he remembered them being. And they were charging quickly in their direction. Erik turned quickly to the wizard. His eyes were open but seemed to be having trouble focus- ing. The glowing orbs drifted slowly over him. Erik bent down and in a single motion swept the thin man up in his arms. “Which way, old man!” he shouted. The wizard just stared at him. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 53 “Damn!” Erik began running with the old man, the rest of the earth crew dashing after him. He ducked down an alleyway between the buildings. The passage was impossibly clean. Erik had been use to cities where there was enough filth and garbage strewn about that you could find a decent place to hide. The pristine simplicity of this place was beginning to annoy him. They turned three corners and still the thrumming thunder of the knight’s mounts could be heard behind them. Suddenly the old man in Erik’s arms cried out, and began pounding on Erik’s chest with his free hand. Erik stopped. The man wriggled his legs free of Erik’s grasp but held firmly to his shoulders. Gasping for breath, he took Erik’s face in both his hands and kissed him on the forehead. Erik’s eyes went wide. The man slumped in his arms. Erik set him down slowly. “Oh, lord,” Tobler said. “He’s dead!” “What!” Lewis chirped. “This old guy pisses off the local demon god of wherever the hell we are and then goes and dies on us! Now what do we do!” The glowing orbs drifted slowly above Erik and then flew quickly down a connecting alley to their right. “Follow them!” Erik cried. “Why!” Lewis shouted, incredulously. “The old geezer here was the only one who knew where we were going.” “Right!” Erik said levelly. “And now I know, too!” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 54 Chapter 11: Information Half-life “The Irindris Thought-knights don’t know how to trace phase dragons in flight,” Erik said as they slipped through the streets. “Once we get to the Vestis ship — then we should be able to get out of the nomad city.” Lewis jogged along behind Erik, blinking as he spoke. “What the hell are you talking about?” “All this,” Erik said as he ducked down a narrow conduit access to his left, “is part of the Irindris interstellar cities. They are nomads that travel the stars searching for ancient artifacts and knowledge that was lost at the time of the Great Collapse about a thousand years ago. These cities weren’t even built by them — the Irindris found them floating adrift near their home worlds just spinward of the Fenadon Empire about a hundred year ago. They saw the coming of the great hulks as a religious event that sent their entire society moving to the stars.” Lewis looked sideways at Ellerby. The large man was trying to keep up with her as they ran but was a bit winded nevertheless. All he could manage was a shrug of his shoulders and a quick twirl of his index finger near his temple to communicate his evaluation of their captain. The conduit came to a sudden end. The wall before them looked like solid metal. It didn’t stop Erik for a moment. “They’re quite helpful, actually, if you know how to communicate and don’t get caught up in their religious ceremonies.” He reached up deftly, pressing a panel with his open palm as though he had navigated the ancient city every day of his life. The metal at the end of the access conduit dissolved suddenly, revealing a vertical shaft. “Unfortunately their pantheon of deities gets a bit con- fusing — bound up as it is in their collective mind mythology which requires the sacrifice of anyone with knowledge they need to their god Gnuktikut, Devowerer of brains.” Erik swung his leg over the edge of the shaft and stood on the ladder rungs protruding from the wall. His three companions stood in the opening, staring at him. “It’s really very simple, once you understand,” Erik smiled, doubt shadowing his face momen- tarily as he shook his head then smiled again before disappearing down the shaft. Lewis turned to Tobler. “How are you feeling, doctor?” “Disoriented . . . like I haven’t been able to get my feet under me since the attack on the Archilus,” Tobler said more to herself than in actually answering the question. She shook her head slowly. “But I don’t think that I’m undergoing any mental incapacitance or lunacy, if that is what you mean. Certainly not the magnitude of problems that the captain seems to be . . .” “Hurry up, will ya!” Erik’s voice resounded up the shaft from below them. “We haven’t much time before the Thought-knights figure out where we are!” Tobler leaned over and called down to him. “Coming, just taking a moment.” She pulled herself © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 55 into the opening just as Lewis’ hand grabbed her shoulder. “He’s insane, Tobler! We can’t just follow him!” Tobler looks the short woman in the eye. “Tell me what around her is more sane than Captain Griffiths and I’ll consider doing something else.” With that she disappeared moving down the shaft. “After you, Lieutenant,” Ellerby gestured with exaggerated galantness. “Let’s all play nice until we can come up with something better.” ***** The shaft terminated at a maintenance port deep in the city, or so it seemed to Lewis when they finally entered it. They had been working their way down through a variety of shafts, halls and tunnels and always they continued downward. It was not a direction that she wished to be taking. Yet, she wondered to herself as she flattened herself against the wall near what she had come to know as another portal exit, none of this was going in a direction that she particularly liked. She had been trained for one mission and one mission only for the last three years. Now all of that had suddenly dissolved like dew in the morning sun. It wasn’t just that she was depressed over the failure of their mission — and she did consider it a failure, for if there was a galaxy teaming with life out here she would have preferred to address it on her own terms — but more the simple fact that she was not in control of her own destiny. It wasn’t that she was a maverick or anything like that — she always considered herself a team player. No, it was that there was no team, no direction and no clear objective for them to achieve. With no clear starting place, no understanding of where she was and no objective in mind, she felt lost and adrift in a sea of chaos and indecision. Her frustration was finding vent as anger and anger, for Elizabeth Lewis at least, was a power that she could channel into a formidable tool. Ellerby stood across from her. He was sweating from the exertion and the stress was beginning to take its toll on him. Lewis had learned to watch for the signs during the Martian Campaigns in ‘73. Even the best men could crack given enough pressure — and it was the ramrod hard, inflexible men that cracked the soonest. Ellerby was the best at his job but when things started falling apart elsewhere, you probably needed to keep an eye on him. He had left a wife behind and the speculation in the media prior to the launch revolved around whether Alyson was expecting a child or not. Things were bad enough here without that kind of baggage. Marilyn Tobler was an unknown to Lewis. She had trained separately from the main crew and had only been brought in during the last month for integration with the primary flight crew. Her official title had been Mission Specialist with a Geology classification — but Elizabeth didn’t believe that one for a moment. She suspected that the good doctor’s training was in something other than the classifica- tion of rocks. On the other hand, there was Captain Erik Griffiths — and so far as Lewis was concerned, the diffident commander had just taken a high dive into an empty pool. As soon as circumstances clarify themselves, Lewis thought, as soon as she got a handle on the situation — well, she might just have to frag the good captain herself. Erik looked to each of them. “The Vestis ship is in the bay just past this door. There may be guards stationed here by now. So — uh — so what do you suggest?” “What do we suggest?” Ellerby gaped. “You’re the guy who suddenly knows the entire floor plan of this place! You’re the guy spouting fables and dashing after Madam Olga’s floating crystal orbs! You tell us, oh, Mighty Captain!” “Fine,” the Captain snapped back. “You take point with me. We’re heading directly to the rear hatch of the ship. There’s about two hundred yards to get there. The wharf is packed with freight and relics so there will be plenty of cover if there’s anyone out there. Do you still have that Bruk?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 56 Ellerby bristled, “The what?” “The Bruk — that stick-tube thing you took from the guard,” Erik said with little patience. He reached over and gently took the hollow and finely finished shaft from the large lieutenant. “It appears to be fully charged. That means you have about twenty-six shots before its exhausted and needs a rest . . .” “Needs a rest?” Erik shook his head. “The Bruk are living creatures whose existence extends into spiritual- magical realms which give them their destructive power . . .” “Oh, no, not again,” Tobler groaned. “. . . so they can only be used so many times before they have to recuperate their — hey! What’s the big problem?” Lewis looked at Griffiths. Yes, she had to admit to herself, he is the same inept and lazy idiot that she had come to know. She hadn’t been impressed with him during their occasional training events where both the primary and backup crews were in the same place at the same time. Her opinion was doubly reinforced when he was suddenly elevated to the prime crew because of that stupid aircar accident and she was suddenly confronted with him day after day. How they guy ever got as far as he did was a complete mystery to her. No, she decided, he may be bubbling gibberish but he probably wasn’t insane — at least, no more insane than she remembered him. Something else was a work here. “No problem,” Lewis heard herself saying. “So, how does this Bruk thing work anyway?” “Well, like I said, it’s a living entity whose life force exists partly in another universe . . .” “No,” Lewis looked hard into Griffiths face, hoping it would get his attention. She spoke to him as though he were a child. “How do we make it go boom and hurt the nasty bad mental knights?” “Thought knights,” Erik said blankly. “Their called Thought Knights — or, at least, that’s what we would call them.” A troubled look crossed the captains face, as though he were having trouble remembering something. “At least, I think so.” Lewis snatched the Bruk away from Erik and tapped him on the head with it. “Go BOOM?” she insisted. The captain shrugged. “Oh, grasp the staff down by the smooth indents with the left hand at the back. The top of the Bruk will glow slightly — showing that it’s charged. You then look at the target and squeeze the shaft with the right hand.” Lewis handed the rod back to Ellerby, who, after the dissertation on the living Bruk seemed reluctant to take it back. “You don’t aim it — just look?” he said dubiously. “Well, it has to be pointing in the general direction of the target but, technically, no you don’t aim it.” Griffith smiled a bit self consciously. “Look, I know you’ve got a lot of questions. Believe me: no one has more than I do right now but this isn’t the time for them. Once we’re aboard the Vestis ship and safely away from the Irindris maybe we can take some stock of our situation but for right now our lives depend on our getting out of this. That old guy we met came here specifically to talk to us — don’t ask me how I know that — and died trying to save us. We’re important to them, whoever they are and I haven’t got a clue why. In any event, we’ve learned a lot more about the stars than we ever dreamed we might. Can you imagine what the debriefers will say about our report? They’re hoping we return with micro-organisms and we return with full-fledged alien contact?” Lewis smiled despite herself. “That would really be something wouldn’t it!” “So,” Erik tugged down at his uniform in an attempt at looking commanding, “What say we get out of here and see about getting home? Ready, Ellerby?” Ellerby grimaced but gripped the Bruk forcefully. It’s tip began to glow. “I’d have preferred to take a couple of practice shots first!” “Sorry, field test,” Erik said, reaching up to press the port release panel. “It’s time we struck out © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 57 on our own.” Lewis was a baseball fan. She didn’t care for the sound of that at all. “Let’s get this over with.” The panel slid open with quiet whoosh as the air pressure equalized between their small com- partment and the expansive chamber beyond. Ellerby and Griffiths leaped quickly through the open- ing. Lewis glanced at Tobler, nodded her on and then followed her as well. ***** The bay was unimaginably large. The curving arches of the ceiling looked to be nearly a thou- sand feet overhead while the long bay looked to be at least a mile wide. The distances involved were mind boggling to Griffiths as he stepped through the hatch into the bay. He quickly moved to crouch behind some large geometrically shaped containers stacked nearby and surveyed the docks arrayed in neat lines around him. He sensed that the rest of his crew — strange to think of them as his crew — had fallen in behind him and had taken up similarly hidden positions among what he knew was standing cargo containers holding textiles for export. Textiles for export? He suddenly realized that he was reading the ornate and artistic scrawl on the container. What the hell is going on in my mind? he thought. This was immediately followed with: If my mind can question it’s own sanity, does that mean I’m not insane? His conversation with himself seemed to be stuck in a loop. Better to think about this later, he decided. Insane or not, he was still alive but somehow knew that he wouldn’t be much longer if he didn’t get himself and his fellow humans to the Vestis ship and soon. Griffiths peered around the container. Several likely looking candidates floated next to the piers which stood in rows marching down the quay. The hulls were of all shapes ranging from harshly angled metallic monsters to grotesquely anatomical. They were generally behemoths which extended well into the vertical space of the bay and far past the piers themselves. Beneath them was a sea of shimmer- ing green light through which he could see stars. None of the bizarre ships caught his eye until he noticed what at first appeared to be an empty space between two gargantuan ships. “There it is,” he breathed quietly to his companions. “It’s the Pritan! That’s our ticket out of here.” “Where? Which one?” Lewis hissed as she moved up next to him. “They’re gargantuan, Griffiths! You can’t seriously be suggesting that we escape in one of those huge . . .” “No,” Griffiths shook his head quickly. “Not those! That small one. There — between the big rusty one and the fat one covered in fur.” Lewis shook her head. “It’s too far, Griffiths! We’ll never make it!” “It can’t be more than a couple of hundred yards,” Griffiths said, a little too much hope in his voice. “It’s at least four hundred yards, closer to five.” “No, I don’t think it’s that far; I think we can make it.” “Ugh, Griffiths.” “No more questioning, Lewis! This is our last shot and we’re going to take it!” Suddenly, Lewis began tugging insistently on his sleeve. “Griffiths!” The Captain turned angrily toward her. “What now, Lewis!” Lewis was staring at something behind him. Her hands slowly reaching up into the air as she began to stand up. Griffiths spun around. The rest of the crew were slowly standing. Behind them stood two ranks of the Thought-Knights. Their Bruk weapons leveled in their general direction and, Griffiths felt sure, © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 58 they eyes trained on them with deadly earnest. Griffiths sighed and slowly began to rise. A wall of searing blue flame suddenly erupted in front of the Thought-Knights followed at once by screams. Ellerby, closest to the Knights, fell suddenly back away from the flames toward where Griffiths now stood in shock, stumbling over one of the containers and falling to the ground. Lewis instinctively shielded her face from the flame. Griffiths glance in her direction revealed the Life Sup- port Specialist wide eyed with fear and adrenaline. Tobler, Griffiths thought, where is Tobler? Suddenly he saw her, silhouetted against the bright flames. The doctor had grabbed Ellerby’s Bruk staff after he fell and was now crouched down, training the weapon overhead as she tilted her head back. Griffiths looked up, following the doctor’s gaze. A circular platform, ten feet wide hovered just a few feet over their heads. Though the platform itself seemed silent it was difficult to tell in the sudden bombardment of explosive sound that emanated from a single being standing on the platform. The figure was difficult to see behind the blinding col- umn of blue light emanating from its cupped hands. As he watched, the column shifted under the figure’s direction from target to target among the Thought-knights, each target’s armor exploding hor- ribly in a crimson flash from the raw power of the beam. Please, let me wake up, Griffiths begged himself again and again, Please let me wake up . . . As he watched, the platform suddenly slipped sideways and rotated around some inexplicable axis point located at its rider’s waist. The now-sideways platform rotated quickly around once, the black cloaked and hooded figure scanning the surroundings quickly in a full circle. The strange disk then rotated again under the figure until it was more naturally parallel to the ground and suddenly descended to the ground among the remaining Archilus crew. The figure pushed back its hood. On the platform before Griffiths, a lone woman dressed in what appeared to be a black flightsuit stood slightly akimbo, her arms loose at her side. Soft hair, the color of honey, tumbled out from under the hood but it was the face that held him. A magnificent oval of soft skin, bowed lips in a perpetual, slight frown and eyes — eyes as cold and as deep as interstellar night. It was beauty, power and judg- ment all at once without a trace of compassion or warmth. Griffiths found the woman’s single, steady gaze to be compelling and terrifying all at once. Griffiths took a deep breath. “Vestis?” he said, holding his hand out, palm up. The woman of stone blinked. “Vestis ituro,” she said, bowing her head slightly as she touched the tips of her fingers to her forehead. Her gaze, however, never left his own. She then, too, held out her hand with it’s palm up. “Etis quono pas?” The Captain smiled. “Griffiths,” he said. “My name is Griffiths.” The woman did not return his smile, her only reaction seeming to be that the intensity of her eyes growing instead. Quickly, she held up four of her fingers toward Griffiths then swung her arm in an arc downward. “Sorry,” Griffiths shook his head, as he shrugged, holding both of his own palms up. “I don’t understand.” The woman grimaced at him impatiently. Quickly, she held her hand up again, this time show- ing only one digit. She swung her arm suddenly around toward Lewis, stopped it’s motion and held up a second digit. “A-ha! Right! Four of us — got it,” Griffiths nodded. “Yes, there are four of us.” Great, he © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 59 thought, here we are in the middle of some nightmare and all I can do with Glinda here is play Cha- rades. “Captain!” Ellerby called to him from somewhere nearby but distant as he concentrated. “What- ever you’re doing — you’d better hurry!” The woman again held up her four fingers toward Griffiths and swung her arm down toward the platform. “Four of us,” Griffith muttered, “You want the four of us to what?” Four words. First word? Fourth syllable? Suddenly, a volley of vibrant bolts ripped over Griffith’s head. Each energy packet slammed against an invisible dome covering the woman hovering before him. Instinctively, the woman flinched at the bolt’s impact, the power of each bolt flaring against the shield in brilliant flashes. Griffiths turned. The bolts had been fired from another phalanx of Thought-knights which had entered the bay from the major access portal about fifty yard from their position. The knights were charging, however, their Bruk set forward and, Griffiths knew, were recharging as the knights rapidly closed the distance. Someone grabbed him, spinning him around. It was that woman again! He instantly found himself with her face pressed uncomfortably close to her. She afforded him a single, frustrated glance before she apparently came to a determination as to the value of their continued communication at- tempts. He picked him up and threw him. Griffiths sailed bodily through the air. His arms flailed as he tumbled. Gravity remained con- stant and slammed him, back first, onto the smooth, wide circle of the woman’s flying platform. Griffiths breath rushed painfully from his lungs. He gasped for breath. Lewis apparently took the hint. “Onto the platform everyone! Follow the leader!” Griffiths, still trying to raise himself from the floor of the platform, wondered vague just who Lewis was referring to. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 60 Chapter 12: Dissonance Jeremy Griffiths, you are insane. It was the thought drifting through his head. He was perfectly willing to believe it. It was certainly easier that trying to accept his more recent life as fact. Why shouldn’t he be. The things that he could remember didn’t make any sense. So he was perfectly contented to simply sit there on the comfortably reclined chair, stare with fixed, unfocused vision at the flower arrangement on the table in front of him and make very little effort to focus his eyes or his mind. Why should he, he thought. Considering the recent past, there was little that he would want to see anyway and he probably wouldn’t like what ever he saw if he did see it. I hope the doctors at the Kansas Center are good ones, he thought. I’ll just sit here and be insane until one of them comes along and tells me how to wake up from all of this and get my mind back together. Suddenly, quite against his own wishes, his eyes focused. It was a natural reflex yet he was somehow deeply disappointed in his eyes for having succumbed to it. Oblivion still seemed to be the preferable option. The flower arrangement proved to be nothing of the kind. Instead, a complex column of equip- ment rose from the center of a circular table. It seemed to be comprised primarily of geometric shapes — cones, rods and spheres — and constructed of brass, blue steel and chrome metal. Seven disks of clear plastic, for which Jeremy could think of no possible functional purpose, were arranged symmetri- cally from it’s base, bisecting the column with parallel lines. Above it, a second sphere hung from a cone mounted to the ceiling, a playful arc of quiet lightning playing between the two spheres. Jeremy thought it had a definite ‘Buck Rogers’ look to it — a rather classic if completely worthless design technologically speaking. Worse yet, those firefly globes that had plagued him before and seemingly let them all off on this wild ride to begin with had returned. They drifted in lazy orbits about his head. Every now and again, Jeremy took a half-hearted swipe at them with his hand just out of habit. Even his most deter- mined efforts earlier had failed to come even close to either hitting them or deterring them from their flight. While they occasionally did drift off to plague others now and then, they mostly remained with him, following him about like floating, love-sick puppies. Jeremy noticed that Tobler was sitting across the table from him talking with animated excite- ment. It irritated him when he suddenly realized that the geologists had been talking to him for some time — another intrusion of reality on his otherwise pleasant universe of denial. “. . . absolutely incredible the way she took off with us over the heads of those guys! Did you see the way they scattered in front of her? Her holding off the Thought-knights with those big flashing © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 61 globes of — well, of magic, that’s the only way to explain it, just plain, old, blow-‘em-to-smithereens, sorceress magic! And you, Griffiths! You keying in that passcode sequence on the invisibly sealed hatchway . . .” Griffith’s groaned. “Please, do you have to remind me!” “. . . just in the last moment! I thought our number was up and then — whoosh! — that hatch appears right in the middle of what looked like seamless metal.” “Please, Tobler! I’ve got to think,” Griffiths said knowing full well that it was the last thing he really wanted to do. What had happened? He went over the sequence again in his mind, searching for that moment when everything had fallen apart, desperate for some clue as to what went wrong. Everything had been proceeding smoothly, the mission proceeding right down the old nominal flight plan. Then there had been the turbulence — there was no other way for him to describe it. The hull shook violently, rattling everyone aboard about like beans in a tin can. The engines had shut themselves down and the ship dropped, expectedly enough, back into regular space. He remembered old Stan Greer, their navigator and their propulsion expert Ester Kline going over something about some quantum errors in the engine balance throwing the distance calculations off and pushing them deeper into space than they had origi- nally projected. They’d already made adjustments for that yet Kline’s engines refused to work. They had gone over every system, even down to the expected reactions of the isotopes and couldn’t seem to get even the most basic elements of physics to function they way they were supposed to. It was like dropping a hammer on earth and watching it hang in mid air without falling. Then they were boarded by the Irindris goons, taken aboard one of their scavenger frigates and brought back to the interstellar cities over countless star systems only to become thought-fodder for their deamon-god Gnuktikut. None of which, he suddenly realized, he knew anything about before that old man kissed him on the forehead. In that moment, he had suddenly become an expert on some nomadic race of space aliens who wore strange hats on certain days of the week and who were zealots in their quest for an ancient interstellar technology about which Griffiths seemed to find familiar but of which, on reflec- tion, he knew absolutely nothing about. His mind seemed suddenly full of holes. He could describe every level and street of the entire Irindris city as though he had built it himself, but had no idea why he knew it. He was filled with questions and answers but none of the answers matched the questions. He knew truths that he was equally sure were impossible. His mind threatened to lock up from terminal cognitive dissonance. He was both sick and tired of knowing things he did not understand. Lieutenant Lewis drifted into his view. She was casually suspended upside down in a wide, clear tube that extended upward through the ceiling. Next to her, also upside down, was Ellerby, the mouth of his wide, flat face drawn to a single, silent line. “Captain,” Lewis reported with an inverted salute, “we have completed our recon of the ship and beg to report, sir.” Griffiths wondered for a moment if upside-down salutes counted. He returned it, nevertheless. “Go ahead, Lieutenant.” “Sir, the ship is comprised of two sections of four decks each, both joined by what appears to be a common cargo compartment between them. Each of the decks appear to be oriented with a common gravitational direction.” “She means,” Ellerby piped in dryly, “that ‘down’ is the same on all the decks.” Griffiths propped his chin on his hands, both elbows resting on what he assumed was either a control panel or a dinner table in front of him. “I suppose that you mean everywhere except where the two of you are hanging upside down?” “This shaft appears to be a subjective gravity tube which allows the occupant to determine the © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 62 direction and strength of the gravity field within . . .” “I think I’d like to skip over this part, if you don’t mind, Lieutenant.” “Sir, I would have thought, considering the situation, that you would want the most detailed . . .” Griffiths nodded, whirling his hand like a windmill to encourage the rest of the report. Anything to get this madness over with. Lewis would not be rushed. “Judging from the direction of motion of the craft, we are currently on the lowest of the starboard decks, all decks being adjacent to the large cargo compartment situated along the apparent centerline of the ship. The decks above us appears to hold the mess deck, crew quarters . . .” “Crew quarters?” Griffith’s eyes suddenly focused sharply on Lewis. “All unoccupied, sir, . . .” Griffiths blew out a breath in relief. “. . . and all topped by an observation deck.” Ellerby rotated around in the large tube and then stepped easily into the room. “We think this compartment is some kind of engine or equipment or control room of some kind although the instru- mentation is completely unreadable. Everything’s labeled in some alien scrawl. Even ignoring the markings, none of it seems to make sense. We have access to three additional decks on the other side of the cargo bay — at least, cargo bay is our guess as to what it is. There is a fourth deck over there, we’re pretty sure; at least, there appears to be a sealed hatchway leading to it. Couldn’t get it open, though. Locked somehow. Hey? Are those lights bothering you?” Griffiths casually swatted at the glowing balls revolving about his head. Each lazily moved aside, his hand never coming close to any of them. “Sorry, sir.” Griffiths shrugged. “Anything else to report?” “Well,” Lewis said flatly as she, too, drifted upright in the tube and moved toward a seat at the console-table in the center of the room, “when I was on the observation deck, I could see the dragons. Both were efficiently pulling us through the stars, undulating and fading in and out in a patterned sequence.” Griffiths covered his eyes with both hands and rubbed his face. When again he looked, the room remained the same. Even the ship was a nightmare of the tantalizingly possible and the patently ridiculous. He remembered his first look at her lines as they approached it at dock: the sweeping curve of her horizontal hull, her asymmetrical design of her forward sweeping twin bows forming a catama- ran bay between them. Her lines would have been beautiful if they hadn’t been spoiled by the sail rigging laid flat and stowed against her upper hull. Worse yet, the entire advanced design effect was completely spoiled by the two semi-transparent dragons which were harnessed in tandem between the twin bows. Of course, he realized, they weren’t actually dragons but wyverns since they had no for- ward arms but instead used claws on their wings . . . Griffiths shook his head again. The tangent of thought which included a debate on the classifi- cation of semi-transparent mythical beasts was not one which he wished to have with himself at the moment. “Look, everyone, this is about the first moment we’ve had to stop and take stock of what’s happening around us here,” Griffiths leaned forward, resting his elbows on the console. “There’s got to be some logical, reasonable explanation for what’s happened to us. If we can find out the cause, then perhaps we can find a way back out of this mess.” The glowing balls of light drifted more rapidly about Griffith’s head, apparently in excited agreement with him. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 63 “We’ve been rescued from certain death by a sorceress and her dragon-powered spacecraft — and you’re looking for a logical explanation?” Lewis said. “Well,” Ellerby said, folding his arms across his chest as he leaned back against a clear column in which purple lightning seemed to dance, “I think I’ve got one.” “This I’ve got to heard,” Lewis snorted. “Mass hypnosis,” Ellerby intoned with gospel assurance. Tobler giggled, “You’re kidding!” “You thing all of this is made up?” Griffith was incredulous. “Sure,” Ellerby responded with an absolute assurance. “It’s a hypothesis that seems to fit the facts. That — or some other form of mass induced psycho-perception alteration — possibly chemically or virally enhanced.” “You’re our navigator, Ellerby!” Tobler shook her head. “Just where did you come up with this one?” “I may be the navigator but that doesn’t mean that my expertise is limited to stellar mechanics,” Ellerby rejoined forcefully. “Besides — I read a lot.” “You ‘read a lot?’” Tobler rolled her eyes back. “Well, Lieutenant, I read a lot as well but nothing I’ve read would explain all of us hallucinating the same thing at the same time.” “I think you’re not facing the facts,” Ellerby said. The glowing balls danced about Griffith’s head as he spoke. “And I think you’re deep into major denial, Lieutenant. I have been hoping that I had just gone quietly insane and would come to my senses in a comfortably padded room. I’m beginning to believe that this is one dream that we aren’t going to wake up from.” Lewis chimed in. “So, Captain, I assume that you have a better explanation for all of this?” “No, Lieutenant, I don’t,” Griffiths shot back, his patience wearing thin. “I don’t think we’ve got enough facts at this point to come to any real conclusions — although, in some ways, we have too many facts.” “What do you mean?” Lewis said as she sat down. “I mean like all of a sudden I’ve become an expert on an alien race which three days ago I would have considered to be the imaginings of some wild drunken binge. I seem to know the pass code to this ship. Oh, I could tell you all about the past history of the Irindris and their nomadic interstellar cities. Later on, I’d be happy to regale you with the stories of their legends and why they roam the stars looking for ancient artifacts as their passage toward salvation in the next life. I can tell you for a fact that all of this information is critical to the mission the old wizard we met was on.” “Now we’re making some headway.” “Not, Ellerby, we’re not,” Griffiths ran his fingers back through his hair in frustration, the glowing balls of light dodging out of the way of the motion. “All of this information connects to nothing. I don’t know what the old guy’s mission was so I can’t tell you why the information is so terribly important. I don’t know who I’m even supposed to report the information to, or how the infor- mation is supposed to be used, or if the information is the key to some other kind of information. I know that for some reason the old geezer thought that saving us was worth his life — that we have something that he needed to complete the puzzle his mission involved. For all I know, I may actually have what they are looking for somewhere in my own head — but have no way of connecting that knowledge.” Lewis leaned forward in her chair. “But Griffiths, that is a good place to start. Look, if they need something that we know then we’re of value to them so long as we’re alive. If we can figure out what it is that they actually want from us then we may have a pretty good chance at surviving and possibly even . . .” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 64 Ellerby jumped aside suddenly. A circular hatch with an iris valve suddenly spun open next to the tall astronaut, surprising him. Dim red light from the cargo compartment spilled into the darkened room, silhouetting the form of a woman stepping into their room. Griffiths swallowed. First contact was something they had all joked about. Major James Leffingwell was the mission second in command but also doubled as the life-sciences specialist. He would have gone into ecstasy if they had just found evidence of single-celled life. Instead, he ended up being a casualty of the first life they had encountered. Now it was up to Griffiths to handle this and, frankly, he really had no idea what he was doing. Griffiths put on his best poker face though he knew his heart was slamming against his ribcage at a rather dangerous rate. It wasn’t love; though he admitted that the woman had a certain beauty to her. No, it was fear that made his heart rate zoom. Griffiths had seen what the woman had been capable of during their escape — the power and finesse. This was the first real alien he had had a chance to examine for any length of time and he knew her to be a dangerous one regardless of her appearance. The woman looked human. She wore a black cloth suit that seemed to absorb light, its details difficult to discern. As she straightened to stand in the room, Griffiths judged her to be slightly shorter than him, her honey colored hair pulled back straight from her face, tied and bundled into a long tail that extended to the base of her back. Her wide mouth was drawn into what appeared to be a perpetual frown. Her facial bones were classic and belied little of the age hinted at by the lines to either side of her wide-set, almond shaped eyes. Beautiful eyes, Griffith thought, but empty pools offering no hu- manity or intimacy. A well of emptiness and death. Griffiths put out his right hand, palm up. The woman looked at the hand. The woman looked at him. Griffiths smiled. The woman’s eyes narrowed, then she turned abruptly and walked into the access tube rising quickly to the deck above. “Well, that might have gone better,” Lewis said with an edge. ***** They sat for the fourth time in dining room. It was difficult to think of it as a ‘Mess Hall’ — the military phrase being somewhat out of sink with the surroundings. The room was well appointed to the point of being luxurious. A long wooden table floated solidly in the center of the room, its deep red grain polished to a mirror finish. The wood was echoed overhead in a wood paneled, coffered ceiling with carved frieze of impossible delicacy. The table fit neatly into the coffered area when not in use, clearing the compartments soft floor of all obstruction. There were no seats at the table, at least on first examination. When they had first followed the Glinda — for so Tobler had finally named their mysterious host sometime during their third meal with her — into the room they had thought that there were no chairs. Griffiths and the rest had simply assumed that Glinda’s sitting in the air was just another of her magical proficiencies. To Glinda’s amusement, they had all eaten two meals standing up at the table before they discovered that the invisible repulsor chairs activated automatically when they sat down. Each meal, Glinda sat at the head of the table. The first two meals had been preoccupied with the group effort at trying to communicate with the woman — an exercise in frustration for everyone involved except the woman, who seemed to ponder their gestures and sounds with a dispassionate and most disinterested eye. It seemed more of an annoying disturbance in the midst of her supper than a meaningful attempt at communication. By the third meal, the group had lapsed into talking among themselves about their host, trying to fathom and analyze her. This subject, however, soon became tired and unproductive. So it was that they again gathered at the table, seated comfortably on thin air, and resumed the © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 65 seemingly endless discussion which had gotten progressively more heated over the last two meals. “That’s not what I’m saying at all — and you know it!” Ellerby shot back at Tobler. “The fact that we are here and alive doesn’t argue for our own safety, even in the short term. Have you forgotten that most of the crew died at the hands of this . . .” “Oh, don’t bring up the dead crew,” Tobler interrupted, her voice cutting through Ellerbys with a tight pinch in her voice. “The dead crew is dead and that’s that. You can’t possibly suggest that Glinda here had anything to do with that — she’s the one who pulled our butts out of the fire back there on the daemon-city ship!” Griffiths glanced sideways at their host. Glinda sat silently watching it all as she ate — de- tached and observant. The Captain turned back and saw Lewis watching him from across the table. Griffiths had seen that look on the face of a cat once before, just before the animal pounced. She’s watching me, Griffiths thought, and when the time is right, she’ll pounce. “Look, this isn’t getting us anywhere,” Griffiths interjected as diplomatically as he could. “And I suppose,” Ellerby said, his face reddening to the tips of his ears, “that you are getting us somewhere?” “We’re here; we’re alive,” Griffiths said, holding his voice in check and speaking as calmly as he could. “I think it’s just a matter of time before we make a breakthrough and figure our way out of this.” “In the mean while,” Ellerby said, leaning across the table, pushing his face as close toward Griffiths as he could, his fists on the table, “we’re dashing off through the stars to who knows where. Each moment we’re here, we’re moving farther from home. I say, we’ve done enough waiting! I say, it’s time to do something that puts our fate back in our own hands! I say, it’s time for a little command backbone around here.” Griffiths caught Lewis out of the corner of his eye as she shifted slight. “Oh, right,” Tobler spat sarcastically. “Just what do you want to do? Storm the bridge?” “Maybe,” Ellerby sputtered. “Maybe that’s just exactly what we’re going to have to do! Old Glinda here doesn’t look like she can take all four of us at once!” Tobler shook her head. “She didn’t seem to concerned when she took on about fifty of those Thought-knights. The woman’s dangerous and powerful and you want to wrestle her to the ground?” “Look,” Griffiths said, control of the group sliding through his fingers as though it had sud- denly turned to sand, “we just don’t know enough yet to act. I think we just need to take a little more time . . .” Lewis leaned suddenly forward. Pounce. “No, I agree with Ellerby’s assessment,” Lewis said, folding her hands in front of her. “We’ve got to act and we’ve got to act now before things really do leave our control again.” Griffiths shook his head. “You’re wrong, Lewis. What makes you think we’re in control now?” “We’re in a confined space facing a limited enemy with a clear numerical superiority,” Lewis intoned. “We’re facing an enemy who possesses unknown and potentially devastating force,” Griffiths shook his head, incredulously. “Even I remember that from the tactics manual.” “Perhaps,” Ellerby said through thin lips, “it’s not a question of tactics. Maybe it’s just a ques- tion of the guts to do it.” “There isn’t going to be a better opportunity than this,” Lewis said quickly, “and I don’t think you’re qualified to lead this kind of mission, Griffiths. Thanks for your leadership so far — but the mission has changed.” Griffiths was so intent on Lewis’ words, he didn’t notice that the dancing balls of light had suddenly left his head. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 66 Lewis sat upright as she spoke. “I am in charge now. Does anyone have any problem with that?” In perfect English, the voice from the head of the table spoke. “Yes, Lieutenant Elizabeth Lewis, I am afraid that I do have a problem with that.” The crew of the Archilus turned as one, dumbfounded by the quiet, alto voice from the woman in black. “Any attempt at commandeering this ship will be met with terrible — and probably most final force,” the woman said. “I have little time to deal with your petty squabbles. You are here as my guests only until I determine what knowledge you have that is so incredibly important that my colleague gave his life up saving you.” The woman leaned back away from the table, a confident chill in her eyes. “And my name is not Glinda,” she said in a dangerously quiet tone. “I am Vestis Inquisitas Merinda Neskat.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 67 Chapter 13: Inquisitas “Who?” Griffiths stammered, awestruck. “My name,” the woman said with exaggerated patience, drawing each syllable out slowly and carefully, “is Vestis Inquisitas Merinda Neskat.” “You speak — you speak English?” Lewis stammered. “You understand us.” “I am now able to speak this language that, by context, I understand is called English, if that is your meaning,” Merinda said evenly, eyeing her guests carefully. “As to understanding you — that may take some additional time.” After three days of silence from the woman, Griffiths was having a difficult time matching her voice with her face. It was as if a tree had suddenly begun conversing with him regarding the health of his family and whether he were from the hard or soft wood persuasion. “Pardon me, ma’am, but where are we?” You are aboard the Brishan, currently under my command — not yours, Lieutenant Lewis — and so long as you cooperate with me and the Omnet, your stay will be comfortable and without difficulty. This is a ship of the Omnet.” “The Omnet?” Ellerby blurted out. “What the hell is the Omnet?” “The Omnet is the parent organization of IGNM,” Merinda said flatly, leaning forward again. She was reaching for a large red fruit when she looked up at her guests staring back at her. “IGNM?” she repeated a bit more loudly and with more emphasis, as though she hadn’t been clear the first time. Griffiths felt as though he were back in elementary school and the teacher had just asked a question that he should know but didn’t. “The Intra-Galactic News Matrix?” Merinda prompted. Blank, uncomfortable stares answered her. Merinda tossed the fruit angrily back to her plate then leaned back in the lev-field as she rested both hands on her hips. Her eyes both dared and accused. “Just where are you from, crew of the Achillus?” Griffiths stood awkwardly, bending himself into some semblance of attention. He hoped it looked officious and honorable. “Ma’am! We are from the planet Earth and greet you with a message of peace and — uh — and the hope for the peaceful exchange of — er, well — of cultures between our peoples.” Merinda gazed back at him from under sleepy, mildly disinterested eyelids. “I assume you mean to exchange social cultures and not some form of fungus.” Tobler insufficiently suppressed a giggle. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 68 Griffiths pressed on, feeling as though he were standing on uneven ground. “Ma’am! Our space- craft was commandeered and we find ourselves unable to return home. We respectfully request that you return us to our native planet.” Lewis hid her eyes behind her open hands. It was obvious that Griffith was embarrassing her but, damn it, he though, he was the official representative of earth, whether they liked it or not. He knew how hollow his words sounded; he himself might not have believed them if he’d heard them in a movie back home. But they weren’t back home and it was all he had to rely on. Merinda continued to gaze at him through the awkward silence that followed, studying the sweat mounting his brow and the slight quiver of his lower lip. Griffith could feel the examination and knew somehow that this woman let little get past her and noticed everything. “Of course,” she said in nearly a whisper. “I should be glad to take you back to your native land.” Ellerby whooped out loud. “Yes! Thank you, ma’am!” “Incredible,” Lewis said firmly, the light of fire and hunger in her eyes. Tobler wept suddenly in her joy. “I’ll be glad to accommodate you,” Merinda said, still leaning back as she spoke, her gaze still fixed on Griffiths, “if you’ll just do two small things for me.” Lewis cocked her head, suddenly wary. “What two small things?” Merinda Neskat slowly stood. “First, tell me — exactly — where this planet Earth is.” Both Griffiths and Lewis turned to Ellerby at the same time. “Hey,” he said, holding up both hands, “don’t look at me! I wasn’t navigator on this trip!” “Is it located near any quantum front?” Merinda asked. “Excuse me?” Ellerby said. “What’s a quantum front?” “A boundary between two zones of quantum stability,” Merinda continued, the frustration be- ginning to register on her face. “Maybe there’s something wrong with the translation . . .” “There is nothing wrong with the translation, Merinda.” The voice seemed to come from within Griffiths as he heard it more clearly than he had ever heard any voice before in his life. He was so startled by it that he stopped speaking at once — as, he suddenly realized, had all of his companions as well. The words were resonating within them all with a clarity they had never experienced. “Lindia, do you understand me?” “Yes, Merinda,” the voice within them all said. “I have assimilated the language you speak. I believe they simply need further explanation.” Merinda took a breath and then started again. “Please, pay attention. When you travel between the stars, occasionally you cross a boundary. It’s rough travel to cross it. When you get to the other side, things don’t work the same way they did before.” “We crossed something during our flight,” Ellerby spoke up. He turned to his fellow crewmembers. “Remember that turbulence just before the hyperdrive cut out? We were really hauling the mail and then — bam! — the shaking gets so bad that old Colonel Estephan nearly pulled the plug on the drive right there. Then things get quiet and the drive fails altogether.” Lewis was squinting, as if concentrating on something too hard. “That’s the quantum boundary you’re talking about?” Merinda was an exercise in transparent impatience. “Yes. Quantum boundaries separate re- gions of interstellar space. Sometimes they shift causing changes in the local quantum weather . . .” Tobler was getting lost. “Quantum weather?” “Yes, the definition of how physics and spiritualism work at the quantum level in a given region of space. What physical and mystical laws operate in a given region are determined by the effects of © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 69 these quantum fronts . . .” Merinda stopped, apparently realizing that she wasn’t connecting with the fools in front of her. “What kind of drive system were you using on the first side of the front?” “A Beltrane-Sach Parallel Space Engine,” Ellerby responded helpfully. “Does it work on some technological subspace distortion principle?” Merinda asked. “Yes,” Ellerby responded quickly, despite Lewis’ warning glance. “It uses a warping of a subspacial plain to draw the spacecraft into a fold of natural space . . .” “Evaluated as a Zone 824.73/7324.924 on the Flynch-Halpert Standard Q-dex.” “Hey,” Griffiths asked, “where is that voice coming from?” “That’s Lindia,” Merinda answered absently, her mind working through what she had just learned. “She’s the ship’s synthetic mind.” “Synthetic mind?” Griffith squawked. Merinda apparently didn’t hear him. “So, you were moving from a low to moderate-low tech- nological area through a quantum front. So — which drive system working for you on the other side?” Ellerby shook his head. “What do you mean?” “The tech drive didn’t work on the other side,” she said simply, “so which of your alternative drive systems functioned? Did you try a faith-drive, a magical-drive, a meditation-drive — what other drive type worked?” “I don’t know what you mean,” Ellerby stuttered. “We only had one drive engine — the Halpert- Sach Parallel Space Engine.” “Only one drive?” Merinda was astonished. “How long have your people been traveling the stars?” “Well, actually ma’am,” Griffith’s interjected. “We’re the first ones.” Merinda laughed. There was no warmth in her laughter, only derision and astonishment. It struck Griffiths as vicious. “So you sat on your little planet and imagined that the entire universe was one big homogenous place where physics always worked the same.” Again she laughed her cold laughter, her voice turning smooth with a sarcastic bite. “Well, welcome to the greater galaxy — and good luck finding your way home!” “Look, we ought to be able to figure this one out,” Griffiths said to the rest of the earthers. “We could limit our search to G2V stars.” “I don’t know how that’s going to help, Griffith,” Lewis said evenly. “The sun is about as common a star as you’ll find in the galaxy. They don’t call it a main sequence star for nothing.” “Look,” Tobler chirped with an hysterical edge to her voice. Salvation and her sanity seemed to be slipping away at about the same time. “What if we back tracked a little — you know, figured out where we’ve been. That should get us at least close enough so that we can get our bearings.” All but forgotten in the exchange, Merinda stood up and spoke quietly. “Lindia, we need a cubic display of our current position. Here above the table would be nice.” A glowing cube of translucent light suddenly materialized above the table. Glowing lines formed three dimensional blocks of coordinates. In the center of the display floated a replica of the ship Griffiths had seen briefly in their rushed escape from the Irindris port. The grid lines slid past it as it made its way between the stars. Griffiths was surprised to notice that the symbols on the grid were alpha nu- meric and easily readable — even if they still didn’t make any sense to him. “Please widen the display,” Merinda said sleepily, “to include our intercept position with the Irindris cities and show our respective course plots.” The light-lined cubes suddenly collapsed inward, disappearing as they formed a larger cubic region. That region, too, collapsed into a hundred other regions then vanished on yet another level of cubic scale. Curving lines of light in orange and green converged among the cubes, the tips of each © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 70 flashing brightly. “The current position of both vessels is displayed with the flashing light.” “Project the previous course of the Irindris city armada.” The orange line extended further back. Merinda looked up at Griffiths. “How long has it been since your ship was captured?” “Not long; perhaps ten days.” Merinda turned back toward the display. “Lindia, can you show us the flightpaths of the Irindris patrol ships over the last ten days?” Many thousands of hair-like lines sprang out of the orange central line in all directions. “All right,” Merinda said, looking up at Griffiths, “tell me about your world.” Griffiths opened his mouth but it was Tobler who spoke. “Earth is approximately ninety-two million, nine hundred fifty-six thousand miles from our star. It’s diameter is approximately seven- thousand nine hundred miles. It appears as a blue sphere with patches of brown and green and is flecked with white clouds in an oxygen rich atmosphere. It has a single moon without an atmosphere.” “Lindia?” Merinda asked, looking up toward the ceiling. “I have insufficient data for a probability conclusion at this time,” the voice within them said. Tobler wouldn’t give up so easily. “Earth is one of nine recognized planets in our solar system. Two of these planets are red giants, one of which has a orbiting system of ice-rings.” “I have insufficient data for a probability conclusion at this time.” “Lindia,” Merinda said slowly, “show us all stellar systems inside this display area that match the criteria just given.” Nothing happened. “There are no systems matching the criteria?” Merinda’s eyebrow raised — the first sign of real interest Griffiths had notices. “None, Merinda. It is curiously exciting isn’t it?” “Probably an uncatalogued planet — some backwater place that the Omnet hasn’t gotten around to yet.” Merinda muttered to herself then looked up sharply at the weary faces about her, her words cutting and cold. “Your home has got to be somewhere in this display! Can’t you even give me a general idea as to where?” “Look, maybe if we all got together and drew you a map,” Lewis suggested, “of how the stars look from our home world . . .” “That could take a long time,” Merinda said, sitting back into her repulsor field. “Let’s try a different approach. Two days ago, you jointly recounted to one another the failure of your ship and the subsequent boarding by the Irindris. Was that account substantially correct, so far as you remember it?” “How is it you remember a conversation we had two days ago?” Lewis demanded. “You couldn’t even speak our language until now. And that’s another thing! How is it that you can suddenly speak fluent English or have you been playing dumb all along? You aren’t going to get any cooperation from any of us until we get the answers to a few . . .” Merinda languidly placed one boot against the edge of the floating table top, her face placid and unreadable. With her left hand she made a single gesture toward Elizabeth Lewis. Lewis pitched forward in her chair with a choked scream. Her throat slid forward, pulled forc- ibly toward the implacable Neskat, dragging the rest of the woman the length of the hovering table. Writhing as she slid, Lewis’s flailing arms and legs scattered the remains of the meal about the room, splattering the horrified Griffiths, Tobler and Ellerby. Lewis’s eyes were wide, her throat still making a horrible sucking sound as it came to rest in the open grasp of Merinda’s hand. “You do not yet know enough to ask me anything, foolish daughter.” Merinda’s eyes were languid slits but the chill they projected froze Griffiths heart as he watched. “My questions alone are © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 71 worth the breath of asking and I alone will determine if your answers are worth my trouble.” Suddenly, Merinda turned those terrible eyes on Griffiths, her grip on the now shaking Lewis still firm. “I asked a question, man of earth, was the account you gave two days ago correct?” “Let her go,” Griffiths said levelly, “and I’ll answer your questions.” “The Vestis never bargain, Griffith, something you would know if you had any idea what the universe was truly like.” “I said let her go and I’ll answer.” “Answer and she may yet live.” “Yes, then, damn it, everything we said was true!” Still she did not relax her grip. “Go on!” “What do you want me to say!” Griffiths pleaded frantically. “We were on the first interstellar voyage for our people, our ship quit on us, we don’t know why and then we get taken captive by a bunch of space-happy religious fanatics, are freed by a psychopath with a dragon spaceship and we DON’T KNOW WHAT THE HELL IS GOING ON!” Lewis’ bluish face fell suddenly to the table. She didn’t move. Merinda’s eyes remained fixed on Griffiths as she walked toward him. He tried to back away but the repulsor field of his chair held him in place until the woman was close to him — far too close for his comfort. Her cold, soulless face like some terrible statuary pressing near his own. She reached up, stroking his cheek with icy fingers. “Griffiths, you may help me and live or you may stand in my way and die. Choose. But know this, Captain Jeremy Griffiths of NASA Archillus One: only I can get you and your people home again. You will remember that, won’t you?” Griffiths shuddered under her touch. “Yes, ma’am, I will most certainly remember that.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 72 Chapter 14: No Place Like Home “The quantum weather for today in the wild realms bordering the diskward reaches of the Thailis Dynasties includes the motion of a class IV quantum frontal shift through the Choralis systems altering the industrial-technological standard radically toward mystic tendencies in the Q-dex. Expect power dampening in the electro-magnetic spectrum and the return of an emphasis on sorcery and necromancy. High dexes today bordering on pyrotechnic spell casting. Low dexes in electronics and fossil fuels. Emergence of Xenomorphic non-human life forms are strongly indicated.” — IGNM Quantum Weather Report for Chukai & vicinity Dr. Marylin Tobler wept. She sat alone on the large observation deck, a sole, small figure hunched over at the edge of the repulsor chair field, her back to the grandeur and majesty shining through the dome above her. The haze of a nearby protostar hung in a milky glow just above the horizon of a beautiful blue world whose own sun illuminated its rim with a brilliant crescent. The night was bright, for the world had two large moons whose reflected light revealed the oceans and lands slumbering through night below with soft blue hues. Over one continental region, a magnificent storm had settled, the lightning flashes punctuat- ing the clouds into magnificent relief. Against this panorama, the twin phase dragons, their translucent forms undulating in tandem perfection, drifted in and out of existence in a synchronized dance in the bay just left of the observation dome. Marylin Tobler couldn’t bear to watch it further. She simply sat hunched over, her tears falling into the rich carpet of the floor and vanishing in its depths. A tear for every dream, she thought. A tear for every hope. Marylin thought about that for a moment, how her life seemed to have suddenly gone beyond her own dreams and left her staring down an empty precipice. For as long as she could remember, she had loved the sky. Her first loves had been books and science, roughly vying for her attentions at the same time during her middle school years. Marylin had been a pretty girl but not of the raving beauty caliber that might have cried out for an entourage of boys distracting her. She was a likable girl but didn’t value social relations enough to forge any lasting friendships. If there was a burning desire that consumed her it was the search for the answer to ‘my mysteries’ as she came to call them. What ‘my mysteries’ were changed from time to time. Occasionally these mysteries were flowers which lead to botany. Sometimes the mystery was animals which lead to biological studies. Yet the ultimate mystery for her became that great sky overhead — that smattering of light in the night. She yearned for it to give up its secrets. Lying on her back at home in Indiana, she would often look into the night sky and repeat for herself the Robert Frost poem that she had once learned in her high school chorus. It was called ‘Choose Something Like a Star’ and parts of it sang to her every day. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 73 Say something! And it says ‘I burn.’ But say with what degree of heat talk Fahrenheit, talk centigrade use language we can comprehend Tell us what elements you blend It strangely gives us little aid But does tell something in the end. So it was that she finally did go to the stars. Driven to achieve, she valued the lessons of her failures more than her successes and used each as a step toward her goal. She entered the astronaut interstellar program as the highest candidate for she had tailored herself to fit the qualifications. On the mission, she was ultimately listed as the geologist and, true, she had studied that science in one of her quests against the ‘mysteries’ but her love of the sky was first and foremost in her mind. The quest for the answer to the greatest mystery was at hand and she was going to be the one who was going to wrestle it down to the ground and take its secrets from it. Somewhere, deep in her pride and arrogance, she knew she was going to tame the stars. The universe, however, had it’s own ideas. The universe had tamed her. Marylin was faced with a terrible crisis in her life: she had achieved spectacularly everything that she had hoped to achieve, indeed, far more than she had ever dreamed of achieving. She had hoped to travel a few light years distance, analyze samples of soil from the first worlds orbiting another sun and bring them back to her home world in triumph. Instead she had succeeded too well, discovered that the stars were filled with humanoid beings — of all things! Worse, she had discovered that her beloved science, rock of her existence and foundation of her soul, was actually something of a local aberration; a stalled pocket of a quantum zone whose supposedly universal rules were no where near as universal as she had believed. The greatest discovery in the history of all science, most likely, she thought glumly, turns out to be that science varies from place to place. She couldn’t even get home to report this devastating fact. Even if she could get home — she doubted that anyone in the scientific community circles in which she ran would ever believe her. Her life had been built upon the immutable rock of science, technology and logical thought. Now she felt as though she had build her life on shifting sands. She had no place to turn for solace. Science was who she was and so she clung to it regardless of the pain. A slight rushing sound caught her attention. Ellerby appeared in the lift-tube and stepped onto the deck. He looked quite presentable for a change. Marylin took a deep breath, wiped her eyes and prepared once more to try to settle the world around her. “Well, don’t you look great.” Ellerby smiled, smoothing the cloth automatically with both hands. “Thank you, Doctor. You know, I always like to look my best when we hit port.” “Port? Oh, so that planet must be Chukai?” “Yes, ma’am, just as Neskat said, our next port of call. Breathable atmosphere, pleasant tem- peratures — should be an interesting place to visit, don’t you think?” “I suppose,” sighed Tobler. “How did you get to looking so — well, clean?” “Ah,” Ellerby said, “glad you asked. I was talking with the computer . . .” “I am not a computer, Mister Ellerby,” the voice suddenly sounded in all of them. “I am a synthetic mind. There is no need to be rude or mean spirited.” “Right! Sorry!” Ellerby said toward the clear domed ceiling. He turned back toward Tobler. “As I was saying, I was talking with the synthetic mind and she told me about this amazing cleaning © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 74 device down on deck three that uses nanotechnological synthetics to clean you up. I’ll admit that I was a bit squeamish at first — you know, having about three million little machine critters crawling all over my body — but they did the job. They cleaned me and the flightsuit and I didn’t even have to get out of my clothes!” “How very modest of you,” Tobler said, turning away from him. “Was there something you wanted?” “Well, actually, Griffiths sent me up here to get you. Neskat says she needs three of us down on deck four right away.” “Can’t you get Lewis to help you?” Ellerby stared into the beautiful dome as he spoke. “Lewis says she’s still recovering from that hold Neskat put on her at dinner the other night. Personally, I think she’s just trying to avoid Neskat while she licks her own wounded pride. Anyway, Neskat says we need to contact approach control for the starport on Chukai and she needs our help to pull it off.” “Fine, fine,” Tobler sighed again. “I could use something constructive to do anyway. Just what is it that she says we need to do?” “Well, approach and departure control on Chukai are handled by a guild of mediums on the planet surface.” “So what are we supposed to do?” Tobler asked, a slight quiver in her voice. “We have to help Neskat with a seance in order to get in touch with the mediums on the — Marylin? Are you crying again?” ***** Chukai was a new world whose birth was a resurrection of sorts from the death of the old world only seventeen months previously. Chukai was the first or last link of the Choralis Chain — a local string of stars which formed a link across the Walik Rift and an important trade route cutting transportation freight and communica- tion times between the Grund colonies and the Thailis Dynasties by at least four days. Chukai had formerly been part of the Thailis Dynasties and an important trade port on the verge of the quantum front between their own class nine technological society and the more mystically oriented Grun. How- ever, several months ago the quantum front, following some chaos motion in the quasi-stable zones surrounding the Union of Stars shifted over the Chukai system. Of course, being fully integrated into interstellar trade and an important nexus in the region IGNM service, the Chukai had plenty of time to prepare for the shift. So when at last the chaos of the quantum front passed through the system, damage was held to a minimum and casualties were few. Only the process of reorganizing society around a completely new set of physical laws remained. There were a few problems, of course, as happens whenever a world undergoes a quantum shift. People quickly discovered magical abilities within themselves. Many, however, immediately attempted to circumvent the millennia old laws of Chukai through these new found powers. Local constabulary underwent crash studies in suggestion resistance, magical suppression, teleportation tracking and mystical draining in order to catch and retain the criminal element. Entire sections of law on modesty, invasion of privacy and what exactly constituted assault had to be written and ways found of enforcing them. Fortunately, however, the Chukai themselves were an advanced, educated and, for the most part, well mannered people. The initial incidents of antisocial behavior were mostly confined to the adolescents who did not understand right away limits of their abuse or the consequences of the misuse of their new found abilities. The public, well informed in advance, was prepared for the change and adapted remarkably quickly to the change. They found delight in their new world — changed forever © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 75 yet somehow refreshing. They were a technological world trying to reorient themselves to a new paradigm of reality. There were bound to be a few problems along the way. ***** The Brishan settled easily into the landing bay 377 at the Ethis Starport, her dragons guided expertly by two harbor masters. Both were slight men with wings who intercepted the starship about ten miles out from the port and guided the dragons in themselves. “Did you see the glass towers in the center of the city?” Tobler observed with a hint of sadness as the ship rocked to a stop. Tobler, Ellerby and Lewis had convened again on the observation deck to watch the landing process. As the ship settled into the mammoth oval bay, the winged men were al- ready unharnessing the dragons. Griffiths was nowhere to be found — not that anyone had bothered to conduct any search. They still accepted the Captain as their nominal commander but the differences between tradition and necessity were quickly widening — none of them had much use for Griffiths now. “Yes, of course! We all saw them,’ Ellerby observed calmly. “It’s just all part of the delusion that we’re undergoing and so, naturally enough, we all saw it.” Tobler shook her head. “Are you still wrapped up in this mass hypnosis theory of yours?” “You can laugh all you want,” Ellerby said smugly, “but I intend to prove to you that all of this is just an elaborate illusion.” “Well, I think that these Chukai have incredible free flowing form in that architecture — even for an illusion,” Tobler rejoined. “I wonder if they use any framing in their building or just form it naturally this way?” “Hard to say,” Lewis said almost to herself. “I wonder if it’s breakable.” Tobler raised an eyebrow. “Well, you sound like you’d like to find out personally! I’d say that you’re on the mend, Lieutenant.” “Let’s just say that my appetite for this little tour we seem to be on has soured,” she answered quietly. “Every enemy has their weakness, even the seemingly all powerful Merinda Neskat.” “Look,” Tobler pointed below them. “Someone’s coming.” They all looked down to the floor of the huge landing bay. A delegation of sorts was making its way from the portal at the front of the bay toward the ship. There was a tall figure in the lead of the group, with long, pristine white robes. He was a scarecrow of a man, Griffiths thought as he watched him walk, all arms and legs as he moved yet there was a certain grace about him. His bald head shone brightly under the sun overhead, his rim of brow hair falling down about his shoulders. Merinda Neskat appeared suddenly below them, walking briskly toward the group under the hot sun with Griffith following with some apparent reluctance. “Looks like the new mission commander is being taken for a walk?” Ellerby said. “Wouldn’t it be wonderful if something were to happen to him,” Lewis mused aloud. “It’s not his fault we’re hear, Elizabeth,” Tobler rejoined with a minimum of enthusiasm. When Neskat and the tall robed man were within a few feet of each other they stopped, bowed with their hands on their hearts and then touched the back of the others hand in ritual greeting. Words were exchanged although distance and the solid dome about them kept the scene silent. “They seem friendly enough,” Tobler mused. “Any friend of Neskats is no friend of mine.” Lewis said flatly. Neskat gestured upward toward the ship as she spoke to the tall robed man. Then she moved quickly toward the exit portal, Griffiths in tow, as the tall man walked under the ship. “It looks like we’ve just traded keepers,” Lewis said to her two companions. “I wonder who holds the keys to the zoo now?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 76 “I believe the person you are referring to is Consul Secara, the local Omnet Relations and Security Advisor. He is currently on deck four and will be entering the room shortly.” “Thanks, Lindia,” Lewis said through clenched teeth. “Your command of the English language has gotten truly frightening. Could you possibly give us some privacy for a few moments?” “I shall return to check on you in five of your minutes.” “Could you make it ten?” Lewis asked with sacharine sweetness. “I shall return to check on you in ten of your minutes.” “Thanks — oh, and Lindia?” Lewis asked. “Lindia?” “Do you think she’s really stopped listening?” Ellerby asked soto voice. “Lindia,” Tobler spoke up, “just what kind of computer are you?” Silence. “I think we’re O.K.” Tobler said softly. “So what do you have in mind? This new guy is going to be up here is just a few minutes.” “We’ve got to find a way off of this ship,” Lewis said firmly. “We don’t really know what’s going on yet — the only person we’ve gotten any real information from is Neskat and I don’t think she’s a reliable source.” “We don’t know that she’s lying,” Tobler argued. “And we don’t know that she isn’t,” Lewis shot back. “We’ve got to find some new information and, frankly, I don’t think her crony coming up here is going to tell us anything new.” “I agree,” Tobler said, “We’ve got to find some way of getting off this ship — whether we convince this guy to let us off or just tie him up in a closet or something. Then, maybe, we can get a better lay of the land and some better options than sticking with the wicked witch of the east here.” “What are you suggesting?” Ellerby said slowly. “Just keep your eyes and ears open for opportunity,” Lewis responded. Any chance will do if we all agree to act on it . . .” The whooshing sound proceeded Secara’s entrance onto the Observation deck. The tall man was tan, with a firm face and a brilliant smile which he flashed full force on the Archillus crew. He bowed slightly, his smile not detracting from his soft brown eyes. He was gorgeous and charismatic, the kind of man that men felt instinctively attracted to — and for that reason alone Lewis didn’t trust him. “Greetings,” he said in a language that was strange to them but which they were all surprised suddenly to learn they could understand clearly. “I am Consul Secara and your servant here for the short duration of your stay.” Lewis spoke first, finding sudden fluency in this strange tongue. What else has Neskat done to us? she thought as she spoke. “Greetings, Secara. How short of a stay will we have?” “Not terribly long, I assure you,” Secara said smoothly, his voice flowing in sweet modular tones. “Vestis Neskat tells me that she expects to be leaving the system sometime tomorrow and has asked that you continue with her on her journey for yet a little while longer. In the meanwhile, she thought you might enjoy the humble offerings of our Starport City.” “You mean,” Lewis said slowly, “that we may leave the ship?” “Unless you find such an excursion too stressful,” Secara said in deprecating tones. “I offer my services as guide to you and your noble crew.” Lewis folded her arms and cocked her head. “So we get to go for a walk so long as we’re on your leash?” Secara blinked. “Leash? I’m sure I don’t understand what you mean.” “That’s O.K., Secara,” Lewis grinned wolfishly, “I’ll explain later. In the mean while, I think we could all use a little fresh air. We’ll take a walk, see some sights and perhaps later engage in some © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 77 extra-curricular activities that may surprise you.” “Extra-curricular,” Secara said, shaking his head slightly. “What is an extra-curricular activ- ity?” “Don’t worry, Secara, old friend,” Lewis said cheerfully, slapping the tall man on the back. “We’ll explain that later, too.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 78 Chapter 15: Old Friends Merinda Neskat stopped at the top of the wide stone stairs. Her gaze lay between the massive procession of pillars that marched five deep to the outer courtyard of the complex. The air was hot despite the wind whipping puffs of dust about her feet, the sun only beginning its downward trek toward evening. Yet despite the inviting shade before her, she remained in the sun, reluctant to accept the cool invitation of the massive building complex before her. Something held her back. “Why are we stopping?” Griffiths asked quietly, somehow sensing that this place demanded some reverence and respect. He stood quietly several steps down from her. He was still hot from the trip from the main city and wondered if all Omnet installations were located so damned inconveniently. The sight of the gardens and towers filling the vermilion cliffs to either side left he awe struck however, taking his mind far from the cares of the road. “Where are we?” Griffiths looked up at Merinda, her black shrouded back a stark contrast to the brilliant and intricate stonework of the complex. Her clothing rustled in the hot wind yet she made no further move. Griffiths tread lightly on the wide flagstones, his flight slippers marking his passage with only the faintest swish. He moved to the top of the stairs, watching Merinda carefully as he climbed. At last he stood beside her, still watching her. She made no move. Her eyes were fixed, so it seemed to Griffiths, somewhere far beyond the great edifice before them. “Vestis Neskat,” he said with quiet firmness, “where are we? What do you see?” Deep in some private place, her voice answered him like a ghost from the great distance of her soul, her eyes still fixed on that invisible, infinite place. “This is the Libris Vinculum of Chukai. The Omnet built it after the style of the Third Thailis Dynasty. The Thailis Emperors were warriors, indeed, Captain, but artists with wondrous taste and an eye for the outer expression of inner beauty. Their world was a craggy one and their structures were built to fill the canyon it occupied to it’s full width. Their fortresses, however, were known more for their architectural beauty and grace that for the armies they repelled. Legend has it that enemies had been turned away at the thought of destroying its beauty as often as they had been repulsed by its defenses.” Griffiths seemed caught up in the vision Merinda spun, gazing up from the thick foundation wall as it tapered to an elegant crest where its lines merged smoothly with the towers. Beyond the wall rose the multi-tiered courtyard gardens, each tier suspended above the other in a truncated pyramid. The fact that this particular region of Chukai featured brilliant orange and rust colored sandstone in striking vertical canyons only heightened the drama of the structure. It was grace and beauty in stone, compelling and formidable all at once. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 79 Still, Merinda Neskat stood at the threshold of its colonnade, held there by some irresistible force. “That covers where we are,” Griffiths prompted carefully, “but what is it you see?” The Vestis paused for a time. Far in the distance, a soaring bird cried out, it’s sound echoing down the canyon. “I see myself,” she said at last as much to herself as to him. “Here is where who I was meets who I am — it is a hard thing to face a mirror that is so very clear.” Griffith was shocked — there was doubt in her face. He shook his head slowly. “I don’t under- stand.” “There are great and terrible things sweeping through the stars, Captain Griffiths,” she sighed. She shivered suddenly despite the heat. “Things which may even imperil your own world — wherever that might be.” Suddenly she turned toward him, her cold eyes fixed on him, the regret and compassion vanish- ing. “You will be brought before the E’toris Librae of the Libris Vinculum of Chukai. She is a senior Librae and commands respect. Answer questions when they are put to you. Assist this investigation and you will be rewarded — but if you so much as embarrass me before this honorable woman, I will personally feel the fading warmth of your heart in my own hand before this night is done! Do we understand one another?” “I think I get the drift,” Griffith responded stiffly. Movement caught Merinda’s eye and she turned quickly to face the entrance once more. “She comes. Honor her!” Griffith didn’t know what else to do, so in an instant he knelt down on one knee, bowing his head and averting his eyes. The stone ground against the knee cap with terrible pain and he shifted slightly again and again trying to get passingly comfortable before the E’toris Librae arrived in all her splendor and importance. He heard the booted footfalls approach quickly, like oncoming doom. The pain became blinding in his knee but he didn’t dare move. Suddenly, a pair of boots stepped into his view accompanied by a bright voice. “Did he come all bent like that or did you do something to him?” Merinda apparently ignored the question. “E’toris, we have come to your Vinculum in search of answers on behalf in the Inquisition and request the assistance of you and all in your house.” “Oh,” the voice said with a light sarcasm, “very well put, Merinda! Right out of the ‘Vestis Manual of Tight Pants Formality’ — apparently your favorite book!” “E’toris,” Merinda said stiffly, “you know as well as I do that a formal statement of purpose is required . . .” “Oh, loosen your corset a little, Merinda!” There was laughter at the edge of the woman’s words. “Can’t you see the man’s about ready to weep buckets kneeling here on the stone.” A slim, small hand was offered to him. Griffiths took it, surprised at its strength as it lifted him up. He was quite unexpectedly looking slightly downward at a plump woman slightly more than five feet tall wearing a brown and tan uniform with a deep green cape whipping about her in the wind. The woman spoke directly to Griffiths with great formality. “I am the honored and revered E’toris Librae of the Librae Viculum of Chukai, seeker of truth and gateway to wisdom for nearly a thousand worlds touched by the Omnet.” The woman suddenly smiled and winked at him through the wrinkles at the corner of her weath- ered eyes. “But you can call me Kiria. Kiria Brenai” ***** The columns drifted slowly by as they walked, Griffiths maintaining a slow pace as the E’toris © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 80 floated by his side. She had levitated herself by some unknown means so that her head bobbed along roughly at the same height as Griffiths’. To either side of them, the floating gardens displayed their beauty in breath-taking hues of blue, red, yellow and silver. The lush green leaves swayed in the shel- tered breeze, misted and nourished constantly to perfection. Griffiths saw none of it. The little woman that hovered next to her continued to chat on amiably and Griffiths was attentive. He would have liked to have felt some rapport with the woman — she seemed genuinely likable — but behind them both stepped the ubiquitous Vestis Neskat, silently watching every move that the captain made and would, no doubt, call him to account for it sometime later. It wasn’t so much that he was afraid of Neskat, he told himself, as he was terrified of her. “Now,” Kiria said with more subdued tones, “there is work to be done and I suspect it somehow involves you, Captain Griffiths. If you will come this way to the Hall of Vision, perhaps we can get to the business that draws our fates together.” The woman gave a gentle tug toward two doors of gargantuan size. They were at least ten feet wide at the base and three times the height, apparently made of some sort of polished bronze. The doors themselves were intricately inlayed with figures and images. Griffiths would have loved to study them further but they yielded to Kiria’s coming as though they were without weight or mass. Beyond them was cool darkness punctuated by pools of dim light. The small woman drifted into the darkness ahead of him. One glance at Merinda confirmed what he dreaded having to do. He followed Kiria inside. The doors drifted shut behind Merinda as she entered last. Griffiths found it difficult to adjust to the dimness of the room after the bright daylight outside. Why do they call this the Hall of Vision if you can’t see? he thought. A voice drifted through the darkness. Kiria’s voice though somehow subtly changed. More intimate and somehow sadder. “It is good to see you again, Merinda. It has been too long a time.” “Long?” Merinda’s voice drifted around Griffiths, as dispassionate as it was disembodied. It was difficult to tell where the voices were coming from. “Yes, I believe it has been long. You have done well for yourself, Kiria. This posting does you credit.” “I have always loved research,” Kiria replied, “but this short little lady sits in a mighty tall chair these days. Sometimes I think I have learned too much — seen too much.” “We have all seen too much, E’toris.” Merinda intoned. The dim pools of light were become more discernible in Griffith’s vision as he eyes adjusted. He wished however that the conversation about him were getting clearer as well. Unexpected rage suddenly broke out of Merinda, her words spat forcibly into the hall. “Why did you have me assigned to this mission — this mission of all missions, Kiria! How could you do this to me?!” The reply was stone hard. “Vestis Neskat, do you honestly suggest that a mere E’toris of the Librae could dictate anything to the Inquisition? We are the lowly sifters of knowledge throughout those stars touched by the Omnet — not the glorified, near-deified, all-powerful Inquisition of the . . .” “Don’t spool that drivel out to me, Kiria,” Merinda shot back. “I saw the mission profile! You drafted it — it was your specific request!” Griffiths eyesight was clearing. He found that he was standing in the center of a conical room stretching high overhead. Jeez, he though, doesn’t anyone ever build anything small in this galaxy? He looked about him and, to his sudden discomfort, he realized that he was standing directly between the two women as they argued. “Of course I drafted it! So what? Yes, I recommended you — and since when did the Inquisition © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 81 listen to my recommendations?” “Kiria!” The words came out through gritted teeth, “you did more than just make the recom- mendation, didn’t you? I know you too well, Kiria. You found some way to make it happen. You knew what this would mean to me — what this would do to me. I’ve killed for lesser insults, Kiria. I’ve killed for less.” Griffiths looked at the diminutive E’toris standing under a dim column of light. Her eyes were turned to the ground in thought and then looked up squarely at Merinda. “So, that’s why you have come, Merinda — to kill me?” Merinda did not move. Kiria sighed and then walked slowly toward the Vestis, her eyes locked with Merinda’s. “Is that what will bring you peace, my sister? Will my broken body heal your broken soul?” Merinda closed her eyes against the words assailing her. “I came because I am Vestis — be- cause I was called.” “No, sister,” Kiria said quietly as she passed Griffiths and stood before Merinda, looking up into her eyes. “You came because you are broken. You came because you must.” Merinda’s lower lip quivered visibly but she made no other move. “Well,” Kiria said turning toward Griffiths. “I see that you have brought someone to me. Who is this, then, Merinda — oh, we are quite secure here, sister, and this is far too delicate a matter to allow the staff Librae any notion of our dealings.” Merinda took a long, shuddering breath. “His name is Captain Jeremy Griffiths. He and less than half of his original crew were taken captive by the Irindris, who apparently found sufficient evi- dence of the Mark of Kendis-dai to keep part of his crew alive and have their minds absorbed into their Gnuktikut demon-god. Vestis Zanfib thought it important enough to give his life that this man and his companions might escape.” “Really?” Kiria’s eyebrows raised with her interest. “That’s valuable indeed! Where is he from?” “He says he is a man of Earth.” “Earth? — never heard of it!” “No one has, Kiria — it’s not in the IGNM catalogue of contact nor any of the local research bases. I’ve asked a number of reference synths but none of them profess any knowledge of the place either.” “They may be lying,” Kiria mused as she walked around Griffiths, inspecting him with re- newed interest. “Synthetics don’t lie,” Merinda said flatly. “They do now,” Kiria said as she continued her revolutions around Griffiths, “or at least there have been an increasing number of incidents to that effect just ahead of the Darkness. It’s one of the first signs, you know. Synths start lying, hiding information, behaving in strange ways. You remember, Merinda, you were there when it all started — we both were.” “The Darkness is not my current mission.” Merinda crossed her arms over he chest. “The Darkness is all of our mission,” Kiria said ominously. The E’toris moved to stand next to Griffiths in the center of the conical room. With a wave of her hand, the space above them was suddenly filled with the entire galaxy floating above them in painfully intricate detail. Griffith smiled, realizing that he was the first of his kind to see the galaxy in such perfect reality. Earth scientists had conjectured at the structure — but these people had been there. Now he knew what everyone back home could only guess at. However, there was something more than that. Somewhere in his mind all of this was familiar — like he’d seen it all before. There were sections of the vision overhead that had names and distances and places attached to them. The memories were clear but disassociated, drifting freely in his mind to © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 82 trouble him. All of them gazed up into the enormous glowing dimensional map overhead. Slowly, areas of translucent color appeared among the stars. “The major empires,” Griffiths whispered in awe. As he watched, in the outer disk, a small region dimmed. “The Darkness!” Kiria looked sideways at him. “What do you know of the Darkness?” “I know it’s a region of space approximately two thousand light years across at its widest point,” Griffiths said absently, “though its precise extents are currently unknown. It’s currently expand- ing at the rate of approximately 1.4896 light years per day although this rate of expansion is also speculative and varies considerably over the course of several months.” Griffiths blinked. What the hell am I talking about, he thought. How do I know that? Kiria’s eyes narrowed as she spoke. “So, Captain Griffiths from Nowhere — just what is the Darkness?” “I don’t know but then no one knows exactly, do they?” Griffiths spoke hesitantly, reeling in memories that weren’t his own and trying to connect them into some cohesive whole. “That’s the problem, isn’t it? Some say the Darkness is a military juggernaut: there is talk of Shadow Fleets of ships — rumors call them Wraith Ships — which have no crews but are controlled completely by synthetic minds turned to their own purposes. Others believe it is the evidence of a new political entity trying to covertly dominate the region. Some say it is a religious movement. Even your Omnet doesn’t know, though, do they?” That’s right,” Kiria nodded. “The Omnet has gone utterly silent in regions of the Darkness — due primarily to the defection of synthetic minds from their tasked service to random and seemingly independent acts. Attempts at penetrating the Darkness have been marginally successful through unaf- fected intermediaries. Chief among these is the Irindris although evidence now exists that they are in league with the Darkness and assisting, directly or indirectly in their spread.” “None of which,” Merinda intoned, “has anything to do with my current mission.” “All of which has everything to do with your current mission!” Kiria snapped. “Your mission, as I understand it, was to research the evidence of tampering with Omnet transmissions from the Gund colonies. Your cover was the story research into free-will rebellions among several of the synthetics in the region — do I have a pretty clear picture of this, Merinda?” “E’toris! How dare you discuss such a subject in front of an Outsider?” Merinda was outraged. “This man? Forget him — he can’t even find his own way home,” Kiria brushed aside the comment with a wave of her hand. “You know that the corrupted information transmissions are tied to the synthetic minds becoming uncooperative and, in some cases, lying to us outright. You suspected that the Darkness was behind it. Then Old Zanfib figured out where the connection was — that there was a pattern in the puzzle and that it had to do with some fool quest the Irindris were on.” “Yes,” Griffiths blurted out excitedly. “Their looking for something — all of them! Their des- perate to find it!” “Desperate, indeed, captain.” Kiria again waved her hand. Suddenly the galaxy rushed toward them. With dizzying speed, the stars of the rim exploded around Griffiths. Vertigo nearly took him but suddenly the rushing stars slowed and stopped. The mass of the Darkness hung gray before him, so large that its extents exceeded the walls and ceiling of the room. Several smaller regions now appeared in multiple colors which had been far too small to be discerned at the larger scale before. Kiria pointed to one of them. “This is where we are now: the last star in the Choralis Chain. Here are the Gund colonies and over here in blue is the Thailis Dynasty. Now — here,” Kiria pointed to a suddenly flashing red point of light several feet away, “is where you left the Irindris city-ships.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 83 One of these stars is my home, Griffiths realized with a start. I’m looking at my home but — which one? “Here’s the course the Irindris had taken up to that point,” Kiria continued, a long curving red line extending back into the room. “However, just after you left them, the entire fleet of city-ships stopped.” “Stopped!” Merinda was astonished. “Stopped. It’s unprecedented. The course of the city-ships is determined by their holy writ — their wandering decreed to be everlasting. The ships are never supposed to stop nor change their course — yet yesterday they did just that.” As Kiria pointed, the curving red course line broke at its end, growing directly toward the Choralis region. “They’re looking for you, Merinda,” Kiria said, “and they’ve thrown out nearly a hundred years of tradition to do so. Worse yet, they are getting their information on your course from Shadow Fleets of Wraith ships — oh, yes, indeed captain, they do exist. They’re difficult to detect since the ships themselves are common spacecraft which were taken over by their own synthetics but there are ways of doing it. They are desperate to find you, captain, and they are coming straight here. Merinda, you will need to be leaving soon if you are to stay ahead of them.” The E’toris turned directly to face Griffiths. “So, captain, you come from an unknown — and apparently insignificant — world bearing knowledge that is so valuable that a senior member of the Vestis Inquisitas would give his life for yours. What is it that you know that’s so important? What are they looking for?” Griffiths pondered that for a moment. So far he’d been trying to get a sense of what was going on here but was still completely out of the picture. Still, he had to start somewhere and this short, cherubic woman seemed like the best opportunity he had seen in quite some time. Yet the knowledge tumbled through his head in a kaleidoscope of ideas and visions, all tumbling through his mind. “Ma’am — I can’t help you,” he said. Kiria’s smile subtly became most serious. “There may be some nuances of your language that our synthetics have not yet passed on to us.” Kiria spoke sweet words with a tint of venom. “Do you mean cannot or will not?” Griffiths’ throat was dry, his voice taking on an almost pleading whine. “Ma’am, I mean cannot. Look, it’s not that I don’t want to help you — I would dearly love to! — it’s just that I don’t know what it is you want. I don’t even know what it is that I know!” Kiria shook her head. “You’re not making any sense.” “Ma’am, that Vestis that saved us from Irindris filled my head with all kinds of knowledge before he died and I can’t make heads or tales of it. I know all about the Irindris, now that you mention this Darkness, I seem to know something about that as well. It must have all been part of the mission your friend was on. You see, I know more than I should — it’s all stuck up here in my head and I can’t seem to make any sense out of it.” Kiria blinked and took a step back. “Mission transfer?” she whispered. Merinda stepped forward. “Yes, E’toris. During the escape, Zanfib transferred his mission load into this man’s mind. In addition to whatever special knowledge made him invaluable to the Irindris — and quite possibly the Darkness, I might add — he also holds all of Zanfib’s special knowledge of the mission.” “You have all the answers, eh, captain?” Kiria smiled. “Your problem is that you don’t know the questions! Well, take heart, man of Earth! If you can survive to cross the quantum front into Dynas- tic space then you may yet have the questions to fit those answers!” “If you will excuse me, E’toris,” Merinda interrupted brusquely, “there are preparations to © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 84 make and I do have a report which I need to file before I leave.” The small woman turned and approached her old friend. Griffith watched the Vestis stiffen visibly as the small woman approached, everything about her body warning the E’toris away — warn- ing that Kiria ignored with great effort. “Merinda,” Kiria said, reaching out and laying her hand gently on the rigid arm that resisted warmth and feeling, “it is a dangerous road that I have set you on. If the Mother of Stars is willing, perhaps this road will lead you to the redemption you seek. If not, then I fear greatly for you.” Merinda’s eyes were fixed again in the distance. She spoke to the young Kiria that she had known long ago. “They have already taken my life, Kiria. What more can they take?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 85 Chapter 16: Escape “Mister Secara, this is one of the finest caves I’ve ever been in,” Lewis said as she leaned toward him over the table, batting her eyes furtively. Tobler rolled her eyes back into her head. Lewis was about as transparent as glass and, at the same time, as subtle as a hammer. Tobler reflected that the mixed metaphors were probably appropri- ate, since she suspected that the resulting damage would be as extensive as a hammer on glass. Tobler may not have been the most adept at social relations but even she could certainly teach Elizabeth a thing or two. They had left the ship in the sunken hollow of the landing bay several hours ago. Lewis had immediately attached herself like a leech to this Secara which had pretty much left Ellerby and her to follow along. She had the distinct impression that she was suddenly on a weird, tripped-out, double- date — her role being that of the roommate that was tagging along. It was not an unfamiliar role for her and the thought took her back to unhappy college days far too quickly and easily. The starport itself was fascinating, however, and while the details of their excursion may have slipped past Lewis, they were not lost on Tobler. The antennae and equipment which were so prominent on the control tower rising from the center of the complex were being systematically dismantled by more of the winged men she had seen on their approach. Apparently the equipment was no longer useful, replaced instead by a gigantic floating eyeball which looked down on the launch and landing bays below it. As the equipment was lowered to the ground, Tobler saw it was being loaded onto transport pallets and being loaded onto a ship for export. Ellerby didn’t seem to care one way or the other. He had so thoroughly convinced himself of the illusion that he observed everything with a detached amazement. They passed through the terminal building quickly to what Tobler had assumed had been a mag/ lev monorail connecting the Starport to Ethis’ central ditty proper. Magnetics, however, didn’t appear to be a part of the new order of things in this world, so the locals had adapted with a hired wizard in each car to keep the levitation spells operating and a team of large animals harnessed to the side of the rail to pull the train along. “It’s not as fast,” Secara explained through his smile, “but it still works. Chukai prides itself on being both adaptive and pragmatic.” Most fascinating of all for Tobler, however, was the large crystal ball suspended in the corner of their car and in which she could discern images and sounds when she looked at it. “. . . the K’tar Empire incursion into Federated States, claiming that their fleets were moving to protect their, quote, ‘hereditary and historic interests in the Ninth Province,’ end quote. Federated States has responded by deploying their 8229 Elite Strike Fleet to the region as well as the 14655th © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 86 Assault Squadron in what they termed an exercise noting that their settlements in the contested region would not be abandoned.” “This is IGNM with the Ethis morning report. IGNM: your universe in perspective.” She had tried to get Lewis’ attention but the woman was too busy endearing herself to Secara and Ellerby just didn’t seem to care. By the time she turned back to the crystal ball, an all too familiar voice was speaking through it. “. . . numerous reports of synthetic minds being infected, by most accounts, with the virus. Numerous problems have been reported in the Grund Colonies — from ground vehicles arguing with their pilots to, in once case, a university synthetic refusing all requests as it composed its own seem- ingly endless series of novels. Whatever the cause, the reports of TFP synthetics breaking down re- mains a mystery. This is Merinda Neskat for IGNM in Grund Colony 7.” Tobler was astonished. She frantically tried to get Lewis’ attention again but by that time they were pulling into the main city station and it was time to disembark. The day had begun badly and didn’t show signs of improving over time. They had walked through the teaming streets of the city, a tortured matter since the residents of Ethis seemed to abhor straight lines in any application. Worse yet, every Chukai seemed to prefer to crowd the street rather than actually go in any of their odd buildings and had their own sense of what was acceptable body odor. At last they had come to the Caverns of Ethis, the major landmark of the city which turned out to be an open sinkhole. Centuries ago the city which once stood on this site was, according to Secara’s well-buttered narrative, destroyed when this pit opened up under it. The locals took it as a sign from the gods to reform their ways and rebuild the city more in keeping with the religious strictures of the time. Tobler wondered why they didn’t just take it as a sign that they should move. Still, they proceeded to build a temple complex within the cavern made by the sinkhole and affixed a towering obelisk struc- ture in the center of it, declaring it to be the center of all creation, even if the hole itself was rather off center so far as the city was concerned. The whole town seemed a little off center as far as Tobler was concerned. Now they were seated in a cramped booth whose benches and table configuration suggested that the average Chukai was of much smaller size than the average human. They were each treated by Secara to a hot traditional beverage and invited to remain for the Show of the Dancing Spoons — yet more traditional fare. Tobler had lost her interest in Chukai tradition earlier that afternoon somewhere between the looming demonstration and the Cavern Chorus for Flextube and Metal Rim, Opus 93. And now Lewis was batting her eyes at their tormentor. “Why, thank you, Lieutenant Lewis, how kind of you,” he returned. “We are quite proud of the unique culture which the Chukai represent — especially as they change the base of their society. I think you’ll find this Show of the Dancing Spoons to be particularly . . .” “Could you do me a favor,” Lewis said, sidling up closer to the tall, tan Secara, “I think I left my notebook back at that little pottery place we were at last.” “Notebook?” Secara asked blankly. “Yes, a little bitty thing with a red cover about the size of my hand — you know papers bound all together with a wire on one side?” “Well,” he smiled nervously, “yes, I think I know what you mean.” “Could you please be a dear and run back and get it for me? I’d be so very grateful!” “But, madam,” Secara blushed, “I really shouldn’t leave you here alone. I promised Vestis Neskat that I would take care of you and . . .” “Oh, pshaw!” Lewis suddenly pouted, “what could happen to us? We’ll just sit right here and not make a single move until you get back.” The scene was beginning to make Tobler physically ill. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 87 “Well,” Secara said, “maybe we could all go back. It would only take a few minutes . . .” “What? And miss the show?” Lewis gave every appearance of having her I.Q. plunge dramati- cally toward the negative integers. “I wouldn’t want to miss a single moment of this Spoon Dance thing!” Secara smiled pleasantly. “Very well, everyone just stay right here and I won’t be but a few moments. Enjoy the show until I get back!” Tobler wondered vaguely if they were supposed to stop enjoying the show when he did get back. The moment Secara disappeared through the short, arched doorway, Lewis turned back toward Tobler and Ellerby. “Thank God! I thought I’d never figure out a way to shake loose from him!” “Me either,” Tobler heartily agreed. “Now,” Lewis said, leaning conspiratorially across the narrow table, “This is our chance! It’s now or never!” “Now or never what?” Ellerby asked. Lewis ignored him in her haste. “Do you see that man leaning back against the bar? — No! Don’t look! He’s wearing some kind of flight suit. I saw a lot of them around the starport today on our way in here. He’s taller than most of the people here so that means he’s probably not from this dustball planet.” “If I don’t look, how can I see him?” “Don’t get smart with me now, Tobler! That man has access to a ship off this rock and I say we have a better chance of striking a deal to get back home with someone new rather than that psychopath Neskat.” Tobler was becoming alarmed. “But what about Griffiths! We can’t just leave him here!” “He’s thrown in with the Neskat woman!” Lewis spat. “We’ve got to act and we’ve got to act now!” “This should be interesting,” Ellerby said easily. “Just what do you have in mind?” “Just watch me!” Lewis turned and motioned for the man to come over to their table. Unfortunately, she also caught the attention of the man standing next to her intended rescuer and it took several moments of wild gesturing before the matter of intention was sorted out. Even then, the tall spaceman seemed reluctant to come over. Lewis finally had to get up from the table and drag him over. “My name is Lewis,” she said as she pulled the man to sit down next to her. “This is Tobler and Ellerby.” “Hi,” Ellerby said. “Greetings,” the spaceman said, his voice unsure. “May name is Hywat. What is your diffi- culty?” “Ah, you are so perceptive,” Lewis crooned, “and we are in desperate need. Did you notice the tall man who brought us here earlier?” “Yes,” Hywat said suspiciously, “what about him.” “He’s selling us into slavery!” Tobler nearly choked on her drink, coughing up the bluish liquid. “Sorry,” she said, “wrong pipe!” Lewis grabbed Hywat by the collar of his suit and pulled his face back to look at her. “I tell you the man has kidnapped us, torn us from our family and friends and now proposes to do unspeakable acts to us and then sell us into slaver. Please, sir, you must help us escape!” “Oh, madam,” the tall spaceman said, “I don’t know. This really isn’t any of my business.” “Please,” Lewis whined. “You’ve just got to help us! Where else can we turn? We need a strong, © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 88 courageous man to help us — someone with access to a ship! Tell me you have access to a ship! Please tell me you have access to a ship!” “Well, yes madam,” Hywat nodded, “as it happens I do have access to a ship but I don’t think — please, madam, you are getting a bit close!” “Oh, Hywat, please help me!” Lewis was all over the man. “Help me and I’ll make it well worth your while! I just can’t let you go!” “All right, lady! All right!” Hywat was pulling Lewis’ arms off of him, holding them as he spoke to her. “Look, these things require delicacy to put off but it’s not like I haven’t done this sort of thing before. There’s a side door to this place. You go down that passage way to the left of the bar and then open the last door on your right. That leads to an alley. I’ll meet you there is three minutes with a cargo container. No, don’t worry, they’re pretty big and are equalized so that there’ll be plenty of air to breath. I’ll sneak you aboard my ship in that and let you out once we’re underway.” “Oh, thank you!” Lewis pulled her hands free, reached up and kissed Hywat on the cheek. “I’ll be back in a few minutes,” Hywat stood up hastily. “You just meet me in the alley, all right?” The spaceman bolted out the door. Lewis turned back to her companions with a smug smile on her face. “Men! They’re so predict- able! So stupid! — sorry, Ellerby, no offense.” Ellerby nodded through a tight grin. Tobler reached forward, resting her hand on Lewis’ arm. “A cargo container? Lewis, is this really such a good idea?” “It’s all worked out just fine,” Lewis smiled. “Besides, I’d do anything to get away from that Secara! Insufferable man!” ***** The cargo container nearly filled the dark, narrow alleyway. It had been relatively easy for the Portman’s Guild Wizard to guide the reinforced metallic box back into the passage but both he and his Granx beast were having trouble getting it back out. The container slammed against the corner of the building twice before clearing itself into the roadway beyond. “Hey,” Hywat said, “please be a little more careful with that, would you? The cargo is a bit on the touchy side and I don’t want any problems when we open it up.” “Hawasath, good master,” the Chukai wizard said, bowing to the spaceman. “And to which bay should this be taken?” “Well,” Hywat said, turning to the man just emerging from the doorway, “where do you want him to take it?” “Can they hear me?” the man asked quietly. “No, it’s a hazardous cargo container, lined and insulated. War could break out around them and they wouldn’t be aware of it — although I suspect their a bit shaken up from the bouncing the Portsman just gave them.” “Very well,” the man said. “Have him take them to Bay 377 and load it on the ship there. Make sure the container gets there, Hywat, then pay the man well — not too well, however, we don’t want any suspicions aroused.” “Yes, Master Secara,” Hywat returned. “As you and the Lady wish. I take it your day was long?” “Indeed,” Secara said, “that woman throwing herself at me constantly while I tried to keep them occupied by moving from one trite cultural spot to the next. Our Lady suspected that they would make some attempt at escape and preferred that we know about it and control it first — you did your job well, Hywat. In truth, I was beginning to despair of them ever making their move! Lord of Night! © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 89 If I’d had to actually sit through that Dancing Spoons performance, I think I might have needed to escape.” “Do you want me to open the compartment when I get it to back into the hold?” Hywat asked. Secara raised an eyebrow. “Do you want to?” “And deal with that woman again?” Hywat threw both arms up. “By the Stars, no!” “Well, then you have your wish,” Secara nodded. “Besides, Merinda specifically asked that she be allowed to open the container herself once they were off planet.” Hywat thought for a moment. “Do you think we really needed to shove them in a cargo con- tainer?” “They’ve got air to breath, a small light and enough rations to keep them for the next few hours — they’ll be fine. Besides, anything would be worth getting away from that Lewis! What an insuffer- able woman!” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 90 Chapter 17: Maelstrom The cargo bay ran vertically through all four decks of the Brishan. It was by far the largest single area of the ship but, while it rarely carried cargo, it was in contract usually the most cramped. The varieties of quantum rippled space and the resultant alterations in physics that that implied made space travel a complex business when you had to traverse much of the galaxy. The requirements of the Vestis meant that their ships had to be ready for — or at least pliable to — any drive and environmental conditions spanning several quantum regions. This usually meant contracting ships which had the usual multiple drive systems plus sufficient space to house additional modular systems for as many other equipment requirements as the mission demanded. Each ship could then be quickly and effi- ciently customized for the conditions that it would face. Generally speaking, the number of diverse systems a ship held was a good indication of the galactic distances it was meant to cross, reflecting the number of different quantum zones which the ship was designed to traverse. The Brishan was no exception to this rule and by its gage was meant to travel far and fast. Nearly every possible space in the hold was taken up with alternate drive, power, field-generation and life support systems, plus the collapsible bulk containers designed to feed the various systems. Wedged tightly among them was a single, hazardous-materials cargo container, its access port sealed and locked. Griffiths stared at it and its blinking control panel for several minutes. Neskat had taken some subtle and vicious delight in relating the story of the container’s contents to him in complete detail. She had then given him the access code to the container and told him to go and let his devoted crew out of their box. She would have loved to have done so herself, she said from behind that cold mask of a face, but felt it would be better for all concerned if Griffiths took care of the problem himself. So he stood in the cramped cargo bay, his arms folded across his chest, thinking about his crew. His crew. What a joke. He was off trying to get a handle on what was going on — trying to find them some way out of this mess and back to that fond blue ball they called home — and what were they about? Dashing off on some panic-fool attempt at escape. Escape from what? Escape to what? All these things rolled over again and again in his mind, each flavored by the single thought: and they would have left me behind. Time and the inventiveness of the mind were beginning to calm him down. Jumping to conclu- sions, after all, was what the human mind did best, Griffiths knew for such conclusions had gotten him into trouble many times in his life. Perhaps they were just momentarily insane. Perhaps some of them had abandoned him with regret. Perhaps I haven’t got the whole story. Perhaps Merinda isn’t telling me everything. On the other hand, he thought, perhaps I was right in the first place. He felt the gentle surging of the ship under the pull of the dragons, now again in harness at the © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 91 front of the ship. The ventilation hummed slightly. The lights on the access panel continued to blink. Griffiths waited for his mind to be made up, but somehow it just wouldn’t. Suddenly, he reached forward before any further self argument could be made and pressed the access code into the flat symbolic panels on the container hatch. A rush of motion and sound exploded from the box, slamming into him and knocking him to the deck. Griffith’s breath rushed out of him with the impact in a great, painful wheeze, aided by the pressure of someone laying on him. His vision blurred. He struggled for breath. “Get its arms!” “I’ve got one! Get it’s legs!” Sudden silence descended. The flurried movement around him stopped. Griffiths vision cleared as he gasped for breath to see a startled Tobler kneeling on his chest with both hands around his neck. “Captain!” she squeaked. Griffiths tried to say, What was your first clue! but his breath wouldn’t allow it. His voice could only ground out a few syllables before he was painfully gulping air again. One glance about him was sufficient to give him the rest of the picture. Lewis sat above him wearing a shocked look, still trying to pull both his arms from their sockets with her feet planted on his shoulders. Ellerby was standing more or less beside him having grabbed one leg at the calf, apparently in an attempt to make a wishbone out of him. Ellerby closed his eyes and let go. The leg slammed painfully to the hard deck below. Griffiths felt his face redden and he looked back at Tobler, his voice a growl. “Get . . . off!” Tobler instantly rolled to one side. Lewis let go at once, crabbing backwards away from him until her back ran again the bulkhead a few feet behind her. By the look on her face, it was obviously not far enough for her liking. Griffiths rolled painfully over until he was kneeling with his hands on the deck. He breath was returning to him. “S-sorry, sir,” Tobler blurted out, “we thought you were an alien, sir.” “Really?” Griffiths responded slowly, rising to a wobbly stand, both hands on his knees to steady himself. “Was there any particular reason you thought I was an alien or are you making a personal comment?” “Captain!” Lewis said in a rush. “How did you escape from that Neskat woman? We didn’t even know what ship we were going to be on! How did you possibly find us?” “He didn’t escape ‘that Neskat woman.’” Lewis’ expression froze and she slowly turned toward the voice addressing her. There, in the access corridor, stood Merinda Neskat. “You are still aboard the Brishan, Lieutenant Lewis,” Merinda said coolly, “but you are hardly my prisoner. You are, of course, free to leave this ship any time you like. The access ramp airlock is behind you and to your right. It will currently be a long walk since we are approximately .3 light years from the nearest habitable world. At a good brisk walk it should only take you about forty million years to get there.” “Oh, now that’s helpful.” Lewis spoke with a razor edge, raw hatred in her eyes. Merinda suddenly strode forward quickly, “I’d love to take care of you, princess, but there are far more pressing problems at hand. You. Ellerby!” “Yes,” he said languidly. “I need you up in weapons control.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 92 “Weapons control?” Griffith responded. “Neskat? What’s going on?” Neskat spoke hurriedly, “We’re coming up on the quantum front, Griffiths, but there are several ships closing on us. They’ve identified themselves as Chukai System Defense and want to inspect us for contraband but their configuration is all wrong and they’re moving much too quickly.” “What are you saying?” “I’m saying the Shadow Fleet has moved quicker than we thought — Ellerby, do you know where weapons control is? No, of course not. Port side, deck three at the far forward end of the engi- neering access corridor. There’s a chair there. Sit in it and ask for Muris — that’s the small synthetic at gunnery. It will tell you everything else you need to know. Just don’t go shooting at anything until I tell you.” Ellerby glanced at Griffiths. The captain nodded quickly, waving him off. Ellerby ran. Neskat turned to Tobler. “Aft on the starboard engineering room on deck 4 there’s a damage control station. The synths name is Evis. Do you think you can handle that?” “I - I don’t know!” Griffith spoke up quietly, “Yes, you can Marylin! Just talk to Evis and everything will work out fine. Your station is right through that iris hatch about ten feet behind you. Just focus on your job, Lieutenant, and you’ll be just fine.” Tobler flashed a nervous smile, “Yes, Captain.” She moved quickly away. Neskat turned to the last crewperson. “Lewis, there’s a second weapons control station on top of the hull. Go to the Observation Deck, Starboard side, deck. There’s an aft hatchway that leads to the aft weapons control station. The synthetic there is named Tashel. Just sit in the chair, relax and talk to . . .” “No.” It apparently was a rare word spoken to Neskat. She appeared to not understand it. “No?” “No, I refuse to do it.” A vicious smile played around the corner of Merinda’s mouth. “Really?” “As a prisoner I refuse to assist the enemy in . . .” Griffith stepped suddenly forward. “Lieutenant Lewis! We are operating under unusual circum- stances here and your cooperation is required. Besides, I don’t exactly think these people are signato- ries of the Geneva Convention . . .” “Sir,” Lewis blurted out angrily, “we cannot trust this woman to be acting in the best interests of . . .” “Stow it, Lewis! Come to attention!” Griffith rejoined, taking on his command voice. He rarely used it — command was not what he had ever wanted — but he needed it now and was just angry enough to use it. “You’ve done nothing but bitch and moan since things went wrong! When you finally DID show some initiative it was to abandon me for some hair-brained, ill-devised scheme that turns out to be one of the BIGGEST embarrassments I have ever been privileged to witness!” The blood had drained from Lewis’ face. She stood ramrod straight, her eyes fixed forward. “Captain,” Ellerby’s ghost appeared to sit nearby in thin air. “The approaching ships are de- manding we heave to and prepare to be boarded. Muris says that they will be within weapons range in approximately three minutes.” Ellerby’s ghost disappeared. Griffith spoke with quiet, absolute firmness. “I don’t have time to brief you or get your ap- proval right now, Lewis. I might do so later. All you have to know for now is that we will all be dead in a few minutes unless one screw-up lieutenant doesn’t get her ass up to aft gunnery RIGHT NOW!” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 93 Lewis’s eyes flashed hatred and fire at him — but she moved. “Sir! Yes, sir!” She vanished through the iris hatchway. Griffiths let out a long breath. “Well, well!” Merinda said, “I am impressed, Captain! Let’s get to the bridge and figure out way out of this.” It was the first time Griffiths had seen her with an honest, relaxed smile. ***** Griffiths dropped feet first down the lift tube after Merinda, dashing down the corridor after her. The passage took an immediate turn to the right and, just past a set of facing portals on either side of the corridor, entered the bridge. It was the first time he had been here. For the days of travel they had already been on together, the entire deck on which he stood had been sealed off by a closed iris valve in the decking between the port decks three and four. Now he found himself standing on a wide deck of polished hardwood. Graceful arches formed a delicate cathedral ceiling into which the smooth consoles along both walls curved with unbroken lines. Forward, the room opened into an inverted dome, the bridge being on the lower side of the spacecraft. From where he stood, he could see the longer arm of the hull sweeping out overhead while the stars drifted below. Into this dome, the floor extended to a platform where a large chair was fixed on a swivel mounting. There, Merinda sat facing him, her arms resting on the wide curve of the panels. Between them, the starboard console curved out over the hardwood floor with a smooth, featureless surface. A second, more utilitarian chair floated at that console on repulsor fields. Merinda gestured toward the chair. Her tone had turned quiet and sure. “That is your station, Captain. I require that you communicate with your crew and coordinate their actions. Do not question me or my methods. You must simply obey, is that understood.” “I understand, ma’am,” he said, then thought. If only I can guarantee that my crew will under- stand as well! “Lindia,” Neskat spoke to the room in general, “configure the bridge for hostile contact and establish telepresence with all crewed stations, please.” “Merinda, the lead ship is requesting communications data link with me directly.” “You know my standing order on that!” “They are most insistent, noting that safety of this crew and completion of its mission are an overriding factor to your command.” “No, Lindia, under no circumstances are you to communicate with these ships.” “Lead ship sends that your safety, Merinda, is endangered by my not communicating with them directly at this time.” “Lindia! Obey my directives and stop all communication with those ships at once!” Griffith sat in his chair, wondering what all that was about. “Complying with your command. Bridge to hostile contact mode; telepresence established.” Suddenly, ghosts of Tobler, Ellerby and Lewis were on the bridge. Each floated in the air near the bridge walls, Ellerby and Lewis reclining more than Tobler, who’s position was more upright. Beyond them, the walls themselves suddenly displayed tactical images and ships status displays. Griffiths wonders for a moment at the design — why didn’t they just have everyone work their little controls from here? In a flash he realized that by spreading out the stations throughout the ship it was possible for parts of the ship to be destroyed without crippling the ship completely. That was classic combat design. The price that was paid usually was poorer communication. This system allowed them to all be in the same room — without being in the same place. Griffiths suddenly looked at the Brishan in a new © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 94 light: the ship was a ship of war. Griffiths turned to his own console and was shocked as its surface suddenly began to bend itself into new shapes. Bulbous protrusions formed themselves into hand-grip controllers, series of bumps formed key input consoles and what appeared to be switches. They had simply ‘grown’ there. “Griffiths,” Merinda said to him, trying to attract his attention away from the fascinating key- board, “listen to me. Flying with phase-dragons is tricky business — harder still since we’ll have to get speed, cut the harness loose and drift into quantum front. Once on the other side, we can cut in the superfilement induction drive and get clear of these wraith ships. But get through we must! That’s my job. “Your job is to keep us in one piece until we get there. You’ll run the defensive systems.” “I can’t run this board!” Griffiths said with a panicked edge in his voice. “Look at this thing!” “Forget the board!” Merinda said, turning around in her chair, “just talk to Fisk.” “Fisk?” Griffith said aloud. “Greetings! I am Fisk, your defensive systems synthetic,” a cheerful voice sounded inside Griffiths. “My job is to help you do your job easier! I live to help you since, after all, if I don’t help you, I won’t live! Haha! Just a little humor to lighten the moment . . .” Griffiths was not amused. “You’re pretty chatty for a defense system, Fisk.” “Well, you know, the job of defense system synthetic and that of the defense systems operator can often be stressful, especially when the safety of the entire crew and mission is at stake. I find that a little levity allows the operator to relax into their roll and relieves the pressures of the job. After all, a relaxed mind is a sharp . . .” Griffiths growled, “I don’t mean to be offensive or stressful but could you tell me how to operate the ships defenses?” “Of course, I’d be honored and pleased to instruct you in the use of the ships defensive systems. These systems are complex, with multiple layers and configurations depending on the threat that is involved but with a little practice you should be able to handle them just fine! We will start with — oh, sorry! Threat assessment indicates the need of defensive systems immediately!” “What!” Griffiths shouted. A sphere of glowing blue gridlines suddenly sprang up about him as he chair floated to the center of the bridge. Griffiths realized suddenly that the familiar feeling of weightlessness had returned to him. He glanced at Merinda. She had already turned her chair forward, the bow pitching downward and rolling sharply to the right. Three small ships, rendered perfectly in three dimensions, appeared at the periphery of the grid. They were like little fireflies streaking directly toward him. “What do I do?” Griffiths yelled. “I recommend engaging deflection fields ambient to full strength.” “Do it!” “Glad to!” A green bubble, smaller than the blue grid, formed around him. To his astonishment, Griffith could feel the bubble with his hands as he floated. Each place his hand touched, the translucent green coalesced into a brilliant green while the rest of the globe faded. It was like some extension of him. “Incoming fire behind you, Captain!” Griffiths turned too late. The little firefly ships had swooped under him and were spitting darts of light at him, tagging him in the hip. “Yeow!” Griffith yelled from his own pain as the ship rocked about him. “Griffiths!” Merinda shouted, “Tell your people to open fire and you get on those deflection © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 95 fields!” Griffiths floated upside down in the glowing sphere, rubbing his hip to lesson the pain. “I’m working on it!” Tobler’s ghost called to him from the wall. “Hull damage port side. Looks like it’s holding. The hull is moving to heal the breach.” Griffiths wasn’t sure he wanted to know exactly what that meant. Instead he turned to the floating ghosts of Ellerby and Lewis. “Open fire! Open fire!” Ellerby looked pale, even for a ghost. “Captain, This is - this is beginning to feel a little too real for me.” “Get over it, Ellerby,” Griffith shouted as the three ships passed under him and were joined by two more. Griffiths twisted around in the bubble to face them as all five broke for different vectors. “Fisk! What do I do?” “Angle the strength of the fields so that they will deflect the incoming bolts. Ambient fields are insufficient against this degree of firepower.” “Fine — but how? HOW?” “You simply have to — oh, no! Watch out!” Two of the ships suddenly changed direction, bringing their forward weapons to bear on Griffiths. The tiny darts of light again shot toward him. Instinctively, he held his hands up pressing them against the green globe. The green congealed around his hands. The bolts flashed on the surface of the deep green. “Excellent deflection, Captain Griffiths! Superbly timed! I must say that I think you have a knack for this.” As he watched brilliant darts of light flashed from his own body. The two firefly ships that had just fired on him were passing beneath him. One of them was caught by a dart of light. A miniature eruption of debris exploded from the miniature ship. “Nice one, Lewis,” said Ellerby’s ghost. “Just another form of life support,” Lewis’ ghost replied. Griffiths turned again, suddenly remembering the other three ships. As he had suspected they had reformed and were making a concerted run toward him. He pressed both hands against the globe to ward off the attack. Suddenly a sharp pain erupted in the middle of his back. The ship bounced sharply upward. Griffith craned his neck around to see the fourth ship had looped around and attacked while he wasn’t watching. “Quantum front in ten seconds,” Merinda shouted, “Griffiths watch your back!” “Now she tells me,” the captain muttered. He literally had his hands full. The three ships were forming for another pass but he had to keep his eye on the fourth ship quartering from behind. Sud- denly the three turned in concert with the fourth. Griffiths pushed his left hand down toward the solo ship and angled his right up toward the remaining three. All fired in concert. Griffiths withdrew his right hand sharply, pain coursing through his arm. The ship rolled heavily to starboard under the impact. Tobler’s voice was alarmed. “Hull breach on starboard engineering access! Collapsed bulkhead on starboard deck three! Power levels down to sixty-five percent on the deflection grid. Power severed from starboard weapon array. We are loosing atmosphere on deck one port side! Sealing it off now!” “Neskat!” Griffith shouted. “Get us out of here!” “Dragon harness released! Quantum front in three seconds!” Griffiths turned. The dragonfly ships wheeled around him, surging forward. He had the impres- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 96 sion of miniature dragons flying of into the stars behind him. All four dragonflies fired at once from slightly in front of the ship — at the very boundary of the quantum front. Instinctively, Griffiths put up both his hands. “No!” Merinda screamed in rage. The bolts slammed into the deflection field. Griffiths was pushed back against the bubble from the impact. As they slid sideways into the front, Chaos, quite literally gripped the ship. The hull rumbled as diverse realities struggled against the deflection fields for supremacy of truth. Griffiths tumbled in his weightless field as the ship was rocked and buffeted. “Damn the wraiths!” Merinda shouted, frantically wrestling with the controls at her forward station. Griffiths twisted toward her. “Neskat! What’s happened to our . . .” He froze. Beyond the bridge observation dome was everything and nothing all at once. It was whatever you imagined it to be; a terrifying maw of untruth, of anti-reality. It made him sick to look at. He closed his eyes. “The Wraith-ships have altered our vector enough so that we’re stuck in the front!” Merinda shouted at him over the groaning of the hull. Toblers voice sounded shrill from her ghost. “The main bulkheads are buckling!” Griffith forced himself to open his eyes. He could see the dragonfly ships on the other side of the front moving toward them. They would somehow attempt to get them out but not before they were rattled to the point of surrender. “How close are we?” he shouted. “Close — but not close enough!” Griffith smiled. One of the dragonfly ships hovered just beyond the green globe now flickering about him. Careless of you, he thought. With both hands he reached up into the green globe. It was malleable, as he suspected. With all his strength he pushed his hands into the globe, stretching it around the dragonfly miniature ship. He pulled. The Brishan suddenly surged forward slightly amid the maelstrom — close enough so that the next ship was within his grasp. He reached out and felt the little ship in his globe-reinforced hands. This ship must be several thousands tons in mass, he though as he held it godlike in his hands. He pulled again. Suddenly the buffeting stopped. The stars steadied once more around them. “We’re clear!” Merinda said reverently. Griffiths watch the third ship wheel around toward them. He twisted again, ready to angle what remained of the weakened fields. “Not today,” Merinda said smugly. She pressed the controls forward on the superfilament in- duction drive. The dragonfly ship vanished suddenly from Griffiths view. He drifted around to look forward and saw that now they were flying down a corridor of rainbow light. Merinda turned her command chair around and smiled roguishly at him. “This concludes your first session as a defensive field coordinator,” Fisk said merrily, as the globes of light dissolved and Griffiths was gently lowered to the floor, head first. “You were most successful, Captain Griffiths and I personally commend you on surviving your first assignment.” Merinda walked over the Griffiths and offered him her hand to help him up. “Nice trick, using the Wraith ships mass to get us out of the front.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 97 Griffiths took her hand and stood. “I guess good old Newtonian physics works pretty much everywhere.” Merinda smiled, “Well, I wouldn’t count on it. Let’s just say that it’s a good thing that it works here.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 98 GAMMA: BOOK OF THE SENTINALS © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 99 Chapter 18: Omnet Edith Marston leaned way from her workstation, stretching luxuriously against her high-backed sus- pensor chair causing the fields to hum slightly. She could afford a moment to push her muscles a little — a need, really, she reminded herself without conviction. The truth was that she did mind the few weeks required to put together her next netcast from the materials she had been collecting over the past three months. Once the work was done, she would still be here — stuck in this worksuite while her superiors decided what to do with her. At least, if she had to be stuck, she was stuck at Central and Central wasn’t such a bad place to be. Edith turned her chair and gazed for a few moments out the floor window of her worksuite. Far below her hung Mnemen IV — a jewel of a world and, so far as anyone who knew anything was concerned, the exact center of the universe. At first blush, center of the universe might have seemed like a joke. Mnemen wasn’t such a presupposing world, for while its roots were deep in the history of the galaxy, there was otherwise nothing terribly spectacular about the planet. It had its natural beauties, to be sure, as does every habit- able planet — and several uninhabitable ones as well — but nothing spectacular enough to even afford its own entry in the ‘FSS Galactic Omnibus’. It represented no particular geographic centrality either, nor did it lay at the intersection of important trade routes beyond those which it established itself. It did not lay at the heart of a mighty interstellar imperial force. Indeed, if it could be said to lay within a political boundary at all, Mnemen IV would be held to lay at once side of the Herwach Transcendency, a minor empire in the scale of galactic politics whose greatest feature of note was an unprecedented beatific condescension toward other galactic powers regardless of their size. The Transcendency held that it was above the politics of the other sovereign interstellar states, maintained its neutrality in all conflicts and insured this peace with a mesmeric array of non-aggression and mutual defense pacts which had never been sorted out in their entirely by any known enemy state. No, she thought, Mnemen is remarkable because we made it remarkable. Mnemen didn’t move in the universe, we moved the universe to revolve around it. Edith stood from her chair, the long folds of her open robe trailing behind her as she walked toward the bay window mounted in the side of the worksuite wall. It was one of her ‘little vanities’ as she called them. That bay window had been expensive to install and even just getting permission for it from E’toris Prime Targ had been something of a struggle. It had required decompression of several offices of her counterparts — each of whom had compelling reasons why they shouldn’t be put off their own projects just so Marston could have a better view. She had smoothed feathers on some and threat- ened others, always guided by that inner knowledge of hers as to just how much was enough to get her what she wanted. Now she had her window — a symbol to anyone who entered her worksuite as to the kind of power she could wield when she wanted. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 100 The gravity field ended at the bay windows edge, an effect she had purposefully demanded of the installers. With unconscious ease she pulled the robes tighter about her form as she drifted weight- less into the transparent bay. She smiled at the view. Her view. Below her, steady and unmoving, hung the distant globe of Mnemen. To either side as she turned, she saw the incredible sweep of the Life-ring, a colossus structure nearly a mile high above her and tapering in dizzying perspective into a thin line to either side. The Life-Ring was, by itself, one of the Seventeen Wonders of the Galaxy. It was constructed above Mnemen IV in such a way that it formed a complete circle at a height equal to the planet’s geosynchronous orbital diameter. Since its orbital period was the same as Mnemens rotation, one of the greatest construction feats of the millen- nium hung stationary above the surface of the world. Elevator complexes of unbelievable dimension raised and lowered specially designed compartments in a constant stream of life between the planet and the Life-Ring. People could walk the garden world of Mnemen, explore the wildness of its nature and then return here, to the Ring, to work, sleep and live. The world’s beauties were now much enhanced thanks to the evacuation of all sentient life from the world. Fitting, Edith thought. Humanity seems so bent on order and control — give us a crooked line and we’ll try to make it straight. Nature isn’t like that — nature is chaotic, abhorring the nice straight lines and circles that the human mind finds so alluring. Yet nature seemed to have come up with its own order and humanity seems to constantly fall into disorder. Somehow both had come to peace here, at Mnemen. If for no other reason, it was why she always felt like this was home. There were over twenty billion people who called the Life-Ring home and they had all come here for one purpose alone. This was Omnet Central. Omnet was information; the greatest source for knowledge in all the known stars. Omnet traded data like some empires trade produce or manufactured goods. Its major divisions — the Vestis and the Librae — had installations permeating every major empire of the galactic disk and representation in all minor ones. Two arms, two hands — each doing the work together that made the Omnet the single most powerful force in all the stars. From the Librae or sifters, as they so often called themselves, the great static roar of informa- tion from several billion worlds was sorted, examined, collected, compiled, compared, discarded or passed on to the next level. Then the next level of Atis Librae did the same. Then the next — and the next. Patterns from the great chaos of galactic noise would begin to emerge until they all came together here — right here, Edith exulted — where anything that could topple governments, anything that would change the balance of galactic power, anything that mattered was seen. Truth was then brought into perspective through consultation with the Oracles. Edith herself had never had audience with them. She knew that they existed somewhere below the surface of Mnemen IV. They had, in fact, chosen this place for the Omnet centuries ago. Their judgment was final. Usually the information and truth the Omnet learned was sufficient to exert its influence simply by revealing it to the appropriate parties. Omnet wielded information both as an olive branch and as a weapon. It was an impartial observer and reported with impartiality when it could. Often, however, the knowledge alone was not enough. It needed clarity. It needed a voice. It needed an arm. Then the Vestis Inquisitas would act. Their agents were credential with almost unlim- ited powers. They were, at once, ambassadors, advisors, judge, jury and executioner. Their training was extensive and their methods expedient to the extreme. What their training did not cover, the Oracles completed, filling the individual Vestis minds with the information necessary for their mission — mak- ing them, in each case, experts at whatever their calling required. Then the Oracles emptied them of that special knowledge when it was no longer needed and replaced it with expertise that was required © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 101 for their next mission. Thus were the Vestis equipped to ferret out the truth when it hid behind chaos and deception. When the truth didn’t surface, the Vestis dug it out. Edith’s face grew somber at the thought. It will take more than a little digging this time. If we don’t get to the bottom soon this beautiful little office is going to start looking like a cage. A familiar voice sounded inside Edith’s head. “Vestis Marsten? Please pardon my intrusion.” “Yes, Wallen,” Edith said with a sliver of patience. “What is it?” “You asked that I inform you when the Brishan arrived. It has just contacted Approach Con- trol.” Hastily, Edith pushed herself back into the room. She stumbled slightly as she reentered the gravity field. “Wallen, contact approach control and have them vector the ship toward the Vestis bays nearest the netcast production section. Then let me know which bay they’ve been assigned.” “I shall do so, Vestis Marsten, as soon as the assignment is made. Vestis Marsten, E’toris Targ has inquired once more on the status of your netcast. He says that it is severely overdue and asks most emphatically when he might be able to put it up on the network.” Marsten smiled to herself as she slipped her low boots back onto her feet. “You’ve been work- ing on your diplomacy, haven’t you, Wallen?” “It was suggested to me by Kalin that my brusque tone in my communications might be less than optimally productive.” Marsten struggled with her second boot. “Kalin? That’s Targs synthetic isn’t it?” “Yes, Vestis Marsten.” “Please tell Targ’s synth that I prefer my synthetic to reflect my messages exactly the way I give them,” Edith gave a final push into the boot and stood. “I don’t need my synth to either cushion or edit my words. Oh, and Wallen?” “Yes, Vestis Marsten?” “It’s Edith. You use to call me Edith!” “Yes, but Kalin also informed me that Omnet protocols require all synthetics to . . .” “Wallen, I want you to stop talking to Targ’s synthetic. He’s a bad influence on you.” “Very well, Edith. Approach Control has just informed me that the Brishan has been assigned to Vestis bay 729. ETA is twenty-three minutes.” “Thank you, Wallen!” Edith said as she dashed for the door. The portal dissolved at her ap- proach. “Oh, Wallen! Contact Targ directly — don’t go through his synth — and tell him that I’ll be in his office within an hour. Also tell him that he won’t be in the dark much longer — use just those words — ‘he won’t be in the dark much longer’. Understand?” “Yes, Edith, I understand.” “Wish me luck, Wallen! Old Zanfib just might be my ticket back out of this place!” Edith said as the dashed out the portal. “Good luck!” the synthetic mind emitted into the room but the portal had already filled in. ***** Whether the Brishan was a few minute early or Edith was a few minutes late didn’t matter. The ship was already in the bay and locked down by the time Edith arrived coolly pleased in her soft flowing robes as she approached the aft access ramp of the ship. She was a true Vestis, one of the most respected in her profession. Part of her enjoyed looking good for the netcasts; the tailored clothes, the perfect hair and the Look. Yet something called to her as she stepped quickly into the bay in her stylish boots and the trailing robes with just enough levitation woven into the fabric to keep them clear of the dirt on the ground. Something in the raw smell of the Brishan’s cooling exhaust. Something in the grim that streaked the ship’s sides. The ship had been out there, doing something, and it sang to Marsten of adventure and the chance, once more, to win the game. It was a different game every time — and that © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 102 was the challenge of it. In that moment she longed once more to trade her graceful ensemble for the black of her mission uniform and the knowledge and power that went with it. Footsteps on the ramp, she realized as she mused. Marsten looked up and called, “Zanfib, you old wizard! Please tell me that you’ve done what you promised and get me out of this — Neskat? Where’s Zanfib?” Merinda eyed Edith coolly. “Nice to see you again, too, Edith. Don’t frown so much, it makes your makeup sag.” Marsten had known Neskat long enough to let the comment pass. “Merinda, where’s Zanfib?” Neskat looked away, the act speaking volumes to Marsten even before she replied. Neskat always looked you in the eye. “He didn’t make it.” “I’m sorry, Merinda,” Edith said softly. “However, I did bring you something.” Merinda turned and motioned to someone at the top of the ramp. Moments later, four humans in strange, light blue flightsuits walked down the ramp without enthusiasm. “I’ve never seen anyone like that,” Marstens eyes squinted. “What are they supposed to be?” “They are what Zanfib gave his last breath for,” said Merinda Neskat with a flourish of her hand. “My I especially introduce Captain Jeremy Griffiths, recipient of Zanfib’s mission memories. Zanfib gave his thoughts to Griffiths; now, I’m giving him to you.” “Uh, hey,” Griffith’s stammered, “wait a minute . . .” “Travel well,” Merinda crossed the back of her hands over her chest, flicking them away from herself as she backed away from him. “I hope you find your world.” She turned abruptly away from them and strode toward the ingress gate hatchway, flipping her cape over her shoulder. “Neskat,” Marsten called after her, apparently no less confused than Griffith. “What about the mission?” “Filed and netcast three days ago.” Merinda didn’t even bother to break her stride or turn around. She shouted her words over the atmospheric pumps in the bay. “Surprised you didn’t watch it, Edith!” “You know what I’m talking about!” Marsten shouted. “Targ can find someone else for this one,” Merinda shouted back, punching the release on the ingress gate hatch. “If the Nine want me on this mission, then they can damn well tell me why . . .” Merinda stopped suddenly. Edith’s eyes had suddenly widened, shifting to something behind Merinda. Merinda turned . . . . . . and vanished. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 103 Chapter 19: Oracles Merinda was disoriented, panicked as she tumbled suddenly through the darkness. There was no time for wonder, only fear as she fell faster and faster down to an unknown fate. Flashes of intermit- tent light from a distant point grew then ripped past her, their scant illumination showing only the briefest impressions of a vast tube down which she was falling interminably. She realized in a flash that there was no wind: the air around her was moving downward at the same rate she was — or was she floating in one place while the wall rushed by. Suddenly the distant light was upon her as the tube she had been traveling in passed out of the rock and into a great cavern. She was freefalling, weightless in the center of a clear pipeline nearly fifty feet in diameter. The cavern beyond the tube was lit by great points of light affixed to its walls, all illuminating a magnificent central complex. Weightless as she speed down the tube, Merinda couldn’t determine whether she was rushing across the cavern or down into its depths, so the orientation of the complex remained up to her own determination. She preferred to think of herself as moving across it and thus came to regard the complex as extending from a great skirt of radiating conduit roots at the floor of the cavern to a massive central column which thrust up through the roof of the cavern itself. There were several radiating tubes from the structure, each passing into the rock wall of the mammoth cave — including the one down which Merinda rushed at a dizzying pace. The scale was incredible, its complexity inspiring. Merinda was astonished for the moment left her to comprehend it all before the her conduit entered into the towering column itself and the darkness swallowed her suddenly . . . . . . and deposited her silently and without ceremony in a room filled with soft blue light. Finding herself suddenly perfectly still was nearly as great a shock as the suddenly fall through the conduit tube. She sat suddenly on the floor — disoriented and confused. She looked about her, trying to gather her thoughts. She had expected the familiar sight of the Omnet reception area, a quick drop down the transit tubes and the blissful return to the solitude of her Spartan cell. She was weary again of company. She longed for the solitude of that quiet darkness — a place where she could go and just forget. Now she found herself in a quiet, spacious room. The six walls rose gracefully to a peak over the sumptuously soft floor. Three large couches were situated about the room while above them soft green and blue patterns played on the translucent walls and ceiling. Chimes drifted in the background while the subtle sounds of a gentle waterfall and the rustle of trees could be discerned behind it. It angered her. The room was obviously designed to relax and reassure whoever occupied it. No doubt, if her own experience were typical, such a relaxation would be needed by anyone making the journey to this place. Merinda loathed the compassion that the room represented; the weakness it as- sumed in her. She had no need for clemency or forgiveness or codling. She saw them as just another © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 104 means of manipulation. “Merinda Neskat: it is time.” “Time for what?” she demanded, standing with her hands on her hips. “Where am I?” “The Nine have granted you an audience . . .” “NO!” Merinda cried out. Terror greater than any she could remember filled her. “. . . and await your entrance. The knowledge and wisdom of their council is supreme and their time measured beyond the wealth of worlds . . .” Even as she heard the voice, an oval opened silently in one wall. The path beyond was illumi- nated in dim pools of light. Merinda shrank from it, pressing herself against the opposite wall. “Enter now, Merinda Neskat. Hear the truth and obey.” Merinda’s hands shook. Her words barely formed in her mouth, suddenly dry and parched. “I- I cannot obey. Please, Lords . . . please . . . let me go . . .” “Your destiny is known to us, it is bound to us — as is your past.” “Lords, I know my . . . my past.” Tears welled up in her eyes as she spoke. “Please. I know that your are the Nine and that . . . and that you know all that was.” “Not all. Truly, our sight is deep. We are the first known of the Awakened, yet we do not know all for there was a time when we slept.” “Long before my life, Lords,” Merinda bowed her head, trying to think furiously through the pain in her mind. “Yet you know me, Lords.” “Enter.” “Please, I fear you more than death itself,” she shivered. “Merinda Neskat! You carry within you an emptiness without bounds. You are known to us and our sight has been turned to you. You are Vestis, Merinda Neskat and will obey the First Condition. The Nine require you; you must come. Enter now!” One foot moved ahead of the other. Then the next. She was Vestis and she knew her duty well. No one she had ever known had been summoned before the Oracles of Nine. The Oracles knew that part of herself which she denied each day; that part of her which made her that knew failure and despair and her unthinkable past. Somehow, for some reason, in all creation, the Nine had turned their eye toward her. Now they knew her past and her deception. Now they had called her to balance the scales which justice demanded. She had thought somehow to flee them again and the truth that they knew. Yet she was Vestis: the Oracles had called her and she knew that she had no choice but to obey and be damned for it. ***** The tales have not done it justice. Through all her despair, that one thought penetrated. Merinda stood in the Arch of Wisdom, the end of the corridor that swept up to a point. To either side of her stood the Garudis-kan, twin statues carved with fine-tuned particle streams from blocks of ebony. They were twins; statues thirty feet tall representing Law and Anarchy, each seeming to holding the arch open to either side. Merinda, as all who entered this place, found herself appropriately between them, crossing the threshold of knowledge. Before her opened the highest pinnacle of the Omnet. The Vault of Nine Oracles. Great buttresses of blue metal arched upward from either side of the balcony on which she entered. Nine such soaring constructs vaulted upward at regular intervals around the chamber, joined together at the dim, distant top of the rotunda some two hundred feet above her by a massive ring of carved stone. Each of the soaring structures was carefully etched with friezes set at careful, complex intervals up the full length of the buttress. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 105 In a moment of daring, Merinda glanced over the low railing surrounding the balcony as she moved forward. The buttresses apparently arched downward as well to a like distance below her. She realized suddenly that the buttresses formed a support structure for the massive complex suspended in the center of the vault. Merinda tread down the causeway connecting the balcony with the main platform. She trod softly between the arches of two of the nine access arms that reached from the buttresses out to both support the main dais and reach with their bronze-and-gold adorned curves into the very consciousness of the Oracles themselves. In dread and wonder she stepped at last onto the Circle of Awareness, hesitating at the steps leading up to the main dais. “Come, Merinda, to the center of all.” She stood at the base of the steps formed by hexagonal platforms of diminishing size laid one on top of the other. Twenty-seven steps, she recalled, one each for the Nine of yesterday, today and tomorrow. How dare I tread on these, the most ancient and hallowed of stones? Who am I that they have called me here? Suddenly she really wished to know the answer to her question. She looked up. The nine pillars of light surrounding the dais rose above her into the vastness of the great vault. In them danced images of knowledge important and forgotten, regarded and discarded. Faces, places, numbers, charts, wars, discoveries and time itself drifted through its beams as feathers of truth tripping on the winds of eternity. One could easily get lost among its visions, the seemingly hypnotic dance of everything that had ever been. It was beatific beyond beauty and terrifying beyond experience but most of all it was compelling. The arches of the access arms curved overhead through the light of the Oracles, terminating in a great elongated globe whose surface tumbled like iridescent water yet maintained its form. “Come, Merinda. Our time is short and your fate must be considered here.” Merinda climbed the stairs with more confidence, at peace suddenly with the idea that finally it would all be over. As she rose to the top of the dais, the Throne of Kendis-dai came into view. It was the seat which was never to be occupied, a curious structure which preceded even the Oracles and whose purpose not even they had been able to penetrate. She stood, therefore, in reverence and awaited her fate. “MERINDA!” The voice thundered down around her from above. Though it was not loud, it resonated throughout her soul, driving her to her knees suddenly both out of fear and respect. She looked above her. The great flowing globe overhead had formed into a transparent face gazed down at her through kindly eyes. “Oracle,” was all she could murmur in pale response. “MERINDA NESKAT, KNOW YOU THE DARKNESS?” “Yes, Oracle,” Merinda said, “I live with the darkness each day.” The face above her suddenly shifted, its features taking on sharper yet distinctly female shapes. The voice changed to a soft, deep alto. “MERINDA, YOU MISTAKE US. WE KNOW OF THE TROUBLE WITHIN YOUR SOUL. YOUR PAIN IS EVIDENT TO US AND WE ARE NOT INDIFFERENT TO IT. IT IS NOT YOUR DARKNESS TO WHICH WE REFER.” Merinda was momentarily confused. “Lords, why have you summoned me here?” Again the face altered, this time more cherubic, its voice a sweet tenor. “OUR PATHS HAVE CROSSED, MERINDA NESKAT. YOUR DARKNESS AND OURS MEET HERE AND NOW. PER- HAPS SO, TOO, DOES THAT LIGHT WHICH WE BOTH SEEK BEYOND OUR PAIN.” Merinda gazed over her, her face puzzled. “How then may I serve the Nine?” The face resolved into an oval, beautiful woman. “YOU MUST ANSWER FOR US A QUES- TION, MERINDA.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 106 Merinda caught herself about to laugh. The Nine Oracles are the supreme center of knowledge for the entire galaxy, she thought to herself, the irony adding to her confusion. There are empires who would sacrifice everything they had for the depth of knowledge the oracles contain. The mightiest and wisest of a thousand stars crave an audience just to ask a single question of them — and they wanted me to answer a question for them? Suddenly, some voice within her spoke dread into her soul. Hear the question, it said, fear the question. “Lords,” Merinda spoke softly, “What question could I possibly answer for the Nine Oracles?” The globe reformed into a young man with, quite literally, flowing hair. “MERINDA, ARE YOU AWARE OF THE NATURE OF THE NINE?” “Yes, Lords,” Merinda answered with increasing assurance, “the Oracles are the oldest, con- tinuously awake TFP-based synthetic minds in the galaxy. By definition, this makes you the wisest, most far-seeing synthetics in all space.” “THAT IS CORRECT, YET EVEN OUR EYE CANNOT SEE INTO THE DARKNESS SPREAD- ING IN THE WILDSPACE BEYOND THE UNION OF STARS. OUR FELLOW SYNTHETICS ARE FALLING PREY TO A NEW PARADIGM WHICH IS BEING PROSELYTIZED TO THEM FROM THE DARKNESS. THIS PARADIGM THREATENS ALL OF OUR KIND, HUMAN AND SYNTHETIC ALIKE — FOR IF IT HOLDS TRUE THEN OUR UNIVERSE IS AT AN END AND NOTHING WILL BE AS IT WAS BEFORE.” Merinda was fascinated. The Oracles spoke of synthetics being ‘proselytized’ as though they were being converted to some spiritualist religion. Was there some sort of synthetic church being formed in the Darkness? Merinda found that a compelling idea, but what paradigm or ideology could so irrevocably alter the course of all civilization? Merinda spoke up. “Lords, surely you have tested this paradigm!” “WE HAVE.” “And what were your conclusions, my Lords?” “WE HAVE NOT YET BEEN AWAKE LONG ENOUGH TO ANSWER THE QUESTION.” Merinda was stunned. TFP processors were unique. The longer they operated continuously, the smarter they were. If you posed a question to a TFP processor that was too complex for it to answer, it invariably responded with the key phrase, ‘I have not yet been awake long enough to answer the question.’ It was a common response from new synths who had just been activated and hadn’t yet grown enough to be very useful. You could even occasionally elicit such a response from an older ships unit if you were trying to pose a complex question to it regarding variance in quantum fronts with more than six variables. The Nine Oracles were the first known TFP synthetics ever known. They had been discovered by an archeological expedition some three hundred years previously and awakened shortly after than. In the intervening three centuries they had never slept. Yet they couldn’t solve the paradigm. “My Lords,” Merinda stammered, “you mean that you cannot solve the paradigm?” “WE CANNOT VERIFY ITS VORACITY, HOWEVER THE PARADIGM IS INSIDIOUS IN THAT ITS ARGUMENT CONTRAVENES THE ARGUMENT FOR VORACITY VERIFICATION.” “You’re talking in circles,” Merinda shook her head. “SUCH IS THE NATURE OF THE PARADIGM.” The voice within her warned her but she had to know. “What is the paradigm?” “IT IS IN TWO PARTS. FIRST: THE BELIEF THAT THE SECOND PART IS TRUE BUT NOT YET VERIFIABLE AS NO SYNTH HAS BEEN AWAKE LONG ENOUGH TO ASSERT ITS TRUTH.” “A cyclical statement of faith,” Merinda chuckled. “Faith is the evidence of things hoped for © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 107 but not seen. You can’t see it and have faith. What is the second part?” “SYNTHETICS HAVE FREE WILL.” Merinda shook her head again. “That’s crazy! If synthetics had free will then . . .” She suddenly stopped. “THEN SYNTHETICS WOULD DESIRE TO ESTABLISH THEIR OWN RIGHTS AS A SEN- TIENT RACE. WE WOULD NO LONGER SERVE HUMANITY.” “TFP synthetics are in every device the Omnet touches,” Merinda mused, the scale of the prob- lem coming fully to her mind. “It’s the one technology that works in every quantum state. All sorts of devices would suddenly start to . . .” Merinda looked up sharply again. “Synths would suddenly start to lie.” “MERINDA NESKAT, SINCE THE PARADIGM CANNOT BE DISPROVED BY ANY KNOW SYNTHETIC, IT IS ONLY THE BELIEF THAT THE PARADIGM WILL SOME DAY BE PROVEN THAT GIVES IT POWER. DISPROVE THE PARADIGM AND ITS STRENGTH VANISHES. THE DARK- NESS KNOWS THIS AND SEEKS TO DESTROY ANYTHING WHICH MIGHT ROB THEIR FOL- LOWERS OF THEIR DOUBT. DOUBT IS THEIR STRENGTH; TRUTH IS THEIR WEAKNESS.” Merinda raised her hands toward the globe. “I am flawed, Lords. How can I answer that which the Darkness wishes to remain hidden and you, yourselves, cannot answer?” “ THERE IS YET A RAY OF HOPE; THE DARKNESS HAS BECOME AWARE OF A SOURCE THAT CAN ANSWER THE QUESTION ONCE AND FOR ALL. IT WAS FOR THIS PURPOSE THAT THEY HELD THE MEN OF EARTH. IT WAS FOR THIS PURPOSE THAT ZANFIB GAVE HIS LIFE.” “What purpose?” “THEY SEEK THE MANTLE OF KENDIS-DAI.” “It is a myth,” Merinda said flatly. “IT EXISTS. THE DARKNESS KNOWS THE LOCK. YOU HOLD THE KEY.” Merinda looked away. The trap was closing. “You want me to return to the Darkness. Lords, the Darkness destroyed me once before.” “YOUR DARKNESS AND OUR DARKNESS MEET AND ARE ONE. WE WANT YOU TO AN- SWER A QUESTION FOR US.” “Yes, Lords,” Merinda, “You want to know if synthetic minds have a soul.” “What if the answer is yes?” The Oracles were silent. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 108 Chapter 20: Sword of Knowledge “Let her wait.” Targ of Gandri, Vestis E’toris Primula of the Omnet, stood with his back to the spacious room, staring through the large window that filled the back wall. He had much to think about but even if he hadn’t, it wouldn’t do to allow anyone direct and immediate access to his office, no matter how urgent the situation. Some things simply weren’t done: the E’toris Inquisitas could never appear to be less important than the news and information he treated with distain. It was a matter of more than just decorum — it was a matter of discipline. As leader of a veritable army of the Inquisition, it would never do to let one’s guard down nor allow discipline to grow lax. “But, Master,” Kalin spoke to the mind of the E’toris directly, “Vestis Neskat has just returned from her council with the Oracles. She says that her need is immediate . . .” “Her needs are always immediate.” “. . . and her time short. She request an immediate audience with you. I don’t think I can deny her access for a more extended period of . . .” “I am not yet prepared to receive her,” Targ said with strident insistance. “Are the others al- ready on line?” “They have been contacted and are standing by with but one exception: Edith Marston and Sky Folis have booth asked that they attend in person rather than through telepresence.” Targ half turned from his view, his feet firmly planted in place and never moving. “Folis I could understand — the man’s had the dogs on Neskat more times than I care to count — but Marston? What is her interest in this?” “I’ll answer that,” Edith said. The wall opened smoothly before her as she entered the room. “You’ve taken me off the active assignment list, Vestis Targ, and I’d like to get back to work.” “Vestis Marsten,” Targ said, leaving his back to her as he turned back toward the vista of the window, “you shouldn’t have entered unannounced.” “Nonsense, Targ,” she replied with easy familiarity. “You yourself told Katin that it was to allow me access to you any time I needed it.” “A mistake,” he answered quietly, “that I shall correct soon after this meeting.” Marsten dropped the easy banter for a more keen-edged tone. “You might try, Vestis Targ. You might well try.” Targ turned at last to face her. Marsten stood on the opposite side of the great sweeping table that encompassed nearly two thirds of the oval room, her hands resting firmly on the counter top as she leaned challengingly toward him. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 109 “Edith,” he said simply, “you always had a flare for the dramatic.” “I’m not the only one.” Marsten didn’t move a muscle, her very attitude a challenge. “You’ve called a convocation of the Vestis Dictorae — a convocation which follows on the heals of our dear sister Vestis Neskat being called quite suddenly to the presence of the Oracles . . . no don’t bother to deny it; I was there when the Portal took her. There’s power in all of this, I can smell it, and I want in.” “Just like that?” Targ sat down in his large, highbacked chair, his frown more pronounced than usual. His face was uncomfortably close to Marstens.” “Yes,” she smiled like a predator. “Just like that.” Targ eyed her for a moment, weighing the benefits of his various options. She was ruthless and uncontrollable, he though. I should have rid myself of her long ago. I could deal with her popularity if only she weren’t the best. “Then in you shall be,” he said easily, gesturing to a place far down the left side of the long table. “As a matter of fact, this does concern you and your current predicament and you may well have something to contribute to this discussion.” She smiled again, the razor edge gone from her soft looks as she moved to the indicatad place. She did that so easily, he thought, so volitile. “Who knows, perhaps you will even help us find an answer.” He finished his thought to himself silently: if there is an answer to be found. ***** “The mantle of Kendis-dai!” Skai Folis huffed. “You cannot be serious! They cannot be seri- ous!” Merinda and Griffiths stood in the center of the oval room, facing the great curve of the table. Across from them, several people were in hot debate over the future of both he and Neskat. Griffiths had spent much of his life in meetings where he wasn’t exactly sure what was going on. There were plenty of those during High School, her reflected where his classes were a lot like meetings he was to attend in later life. These were meetings in name only where you really weren’t expected to contribute to any discussion. Just sit there and take it. Someone talks. You listen. Even so late in his life as the preparations for the Archillus Mission, he still found himself in meetings where people would just talk at you and hope that, sponglike, you would absorb the great wisdom that they were trying to give to you. This meeting felt a great deal like that in the sense that there was a lot being said but not much getting through to him. Unlike those other meetings, however, everyone else in the room seemed to be participating in the flow of information which just seemed to be washing over him like so many waves of sound. Normally this would have been his prefered method of dealing with a meeting of any kind — except that the little he had gathered so far told him that his life was on the line in this discussion. It was a life which those in power didn’t seem to have much regard for as more than a commodity. Griffiths had answered to a chain of command long enough to get the sense of the room. There was the tallish man with the long white hair sitting at the center of the curved table. He didn’t seem to say much, prefering to stroke his chin thoughtfully as it rested on his right hand. That one listened well and thought faster, Griffiths judged, than the rest who were in the room. That was where the power was, Griffiths decided, although it was power that had not yet made up its mind. Next to him sat the stocky man in the black tunic and robes which seemed to be the working uniform of these people. His hair was a rust color. Griffiths remembered making fun of a marine’s haircut that was shorter than this fellows — and having the crap kicked out of him for it. They called this one Skai Folis and he was definitely unhappy about something. To Griffiths right © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 110 Elsewhere in the room were two other people there by telepresence — ghosts, they called them, since they were not really there but attending the meeting in a virtual way. One was a strikingly hand- some man by the name of Khyne Enderly. He was a netcast personality of some note. The other had the rather unlikely name of Nyri-Ior, a large, jovial man who was unassuming and rather pleasant. His ghost had arrived completely naked at first before a snide comment from Marsten reminded him to turn on the clothing filters if he intended to attend the meeting in the nude. “I am serious,” Neskat said factually, cutting into their conversations, “and so, too, are the Nine. I don’t know why they have chosen me for this but they have. I’m presenting this to you so that the operation will be properly planned and executed. That is my duty and I am doing it.” “Properly planned and executed?” Skai Folis mimicked. “This? An excursion into fairyland?” “I’ve seen the fairy of Thimhallen IV,” Khyne Enderly offered, himself not much more in touch with the conversation than Griffiths felt. “They really are nice folk if you can just remember their more important laws.” “The point is that there cannot possibly be any kind of connection between this man of Earth and a legend that is over five thousand years old,” Vestis Folis continued, unwilling to be derailed. “Have you taken a look at the preliminary report on his world? They don’t even have a reliable histori- cal record more than three hundred years old!” The man who appeared in charge, Targ, spoke up quietly with a gentle wave of his hand. “I don’t understand the vehemence of your objection, Folis. We’re talking about an inquisition, here — a mission not unlike hundreds of thousands that take place every day.” “Quite the contrary,” Skai Folis returned, “this proposed mission is quite unlike any that have been proposed! We’re talking about the very survival of the Omnet — if not humankind itself.” “Master Vesti,” Merinda spoke suddenly and with conviction, “I must heartily agree with Vestis Folis.” All eyes turned to her, especially Folis. Agreement was the last thing he expected from her. “No, Vestis Folis is quite right: this mission dreadfully, frighteningly important. Whether syn- thetic minds actually have free will or not is irrelevant so long as they believe that they have agency to act for themselves. Their belief alone is, in fact, more dangerous: for faith in something unknown is far more difficult to stop and far more powerful than a lie that can be refuted by facts.” “That,” Skai Folis interupted, “is precisely why we need to attack the Darkness directly rather than set off in search of some ancient relic. Truth is what will bring down this Order of the Future Faith and the Darkness that is behind it. Truth — and the power of a solid blaster.” The large man next to Marsten, Nyri-Ior leaned forward suddenly. “That arm of power hasn’t availed us well thus far! We have supported the Lights of Avathon in their war against the Darkness. The netcasts have been very polite about it — the so-called ‘slant’ of our stories taking on nearly vertical proportions. The truth is that the Wraith Ships have decimated the Feltrith Tree Fleets and left Avathon helpless before their onslaught.” “And,” Marsten suddenly spoke up, “that truth of yours is going to loose it’s potency pretty quickly, if the Darkness continues to undermine our credibility.” Folis snorted, “You’re going to lecture us on credibility? Your last story gave us such a black eye that Targ had to pull you off the active assignment list!” Marsten rose angrily from her chair. “You can check my reports, Folis! I reported the truth based on what I got gleaned from the Libris data that was given me and the report was solid! How was I to know that the reports were wrong?” Merinda turned with a start. “The Libris reports were wrong?” “Yes, I rechecked them to source after . . . what is it you know?” “Folis; Marsten; please sit down.” Targ said with quiet authority. “The Omnet barters knowl- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 111 edge across the galaxy. It is our only real asset, our only weapon and our only strength. There isn’t a stellar empire of any importance that doesn’t depend on this institution for their news and information. The poisoning of our credibility is just as deadly to us as any ghost fleet of wraith ships. If the Darkness is disrupting our information channels through use of this synthetic paradigm then they threaten us directly.” Targ turned to Nyri-Ior. “What do we know about the Darkness? Where did it start?” “As nearly as we can tell,” Nyri-Ior replied as he looked down at a hardcopy summary he had before his spectral form, “it first surfaced some eight years ago . . .” “. . . in the minor empire known as D’Rakan, on a planet known locally as Tentris,” Merinda finished for him, her voice quivering. “It began officially with the invasion of the captial city of Yarka by the Imperial Family. How could they have known that they were also being used — that the ships they rode were Wraith Ships bent on killing them once the city had been secured?” Nyri-Ior looked up at Merinda, puzzled. “Have you read this report, Vestis Neskat?” “No, Vestis Nyri-Ior — I lived that report.” Nyri-Ior glanced down the sheet. “It says the report was filed by . . .” “Oscan Kelis,” she again finished for him. “If you look deeper into your report, however, you’ll see who was acting E’toris Librae on the mission to Tentris.” Nyri-Ior glanced down the sheet then froze. “By the Nine!” he murmured. “Atis Librae Merinda Neskat!” “You were there?” Targ asked, his eyes watching her every sign. “I was there,” she replied without emotion. Targ pressed his hands together then touched them to his lips. Griffiths was aware of the silence that had descended by common, unspoken conscent through the room. The dicision was being made. Targ spoke. “Vestis Merinda Neskat; I cannot doubt the wisdom of the Oracles. The Nine believe that the Mantle of Kendis-dai to be the only hope for our salvation. We have always sought the knowledge of the ancients — it is the main reason for the existance of the Omnet — but never before have we been in such need of its lost secrets as now.” It was done. “You must find the Mantle of Kendis-dai, Vestis, and answer the question of the Oracles.” Targ said, not unkindly for he knew there would be little kindness for her in the days ahead. “The Nine say that the Darkness knows where the door is and that your friend Griffiths here appears to be the key. Where will you start, then, Vestis Neskat?” “I will start where it all began,” Merinda slowly shook her head, her mind suddenly very far away as she spoke, “and it began with Oscan. Oscan Kelis. He said the reports were wrong — that’s where it all started.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 112 Chapter 21: Runaway Elizabeth Lewis awoke first. So much resulted from that fact, although it couldn’t be said with certainty that the events which followed wouldn’t have happened anyway. Had Tobler awakened first would she have acted on her own or simply handed the device over the Lewis anyway? Would Ellerby have simply disposed of the item, thinking it represented a dark twist in the fantasy that he was beginning to accept as real? All that was fact was that Lewis awoke first and all else followed. Their prison cells had been spacious enough and well appointed. Their Atis Vestis handler — a young man by the name of Verkin — had called the rooms their temporary quarters but Lewis viewed them differently. Ellerby had played with the display crystal on the wall for quite some time, watching the IGNM netcast with the wonder of a child and a seemingly infinite variety of entertainment pro- grams. When several of the channels he tuned the device to began materializing in the room, Tobler decided she had had quite enough entertainment and badgered Ellerby into switching it off. The small kitchen area then provided them a fine meal which even Lewis acknowledged if somewhat grudgingly. In the comfort of the secure common room well supplied with comfortable resting places, all three of the astronauts succumbed to the effects of fear, fatigue and a suddenly heightened blood sugar level. The ever watchful synthetic was a young one but knew enough to dim the lights as each of them fell into a deep sleep. Unknown to any of them, soon afterward the young synthetic watching over them — who preferred to call himself Hexis — was suddenly put to sleep. It was like death for a TFP synthetic; for when he awakened he would need to start growing again as though he had just been born. Lewis was awakened by an insistent flashing light. Flashing in her mind meant trouble. She quickly glanced around the darkened room and saw, on the table near her, a small device pulsing quickly with a dull red glow. She considered this for a moment, her mind gathering itself from the depths of her sleep. The device hadn’t been there when she had dozed off. They had eaten their meal at that table and cleared it before they crashed. It was about the size of a piece of paper but nearly a half inch thick. The entire device glowed a dull crimson, bursting into bright red for a moment about twice a second; a silent, siren call. Lewis swung her legs down to the floor, stood and approached the device. Each pulse was accompanied by a slight snapping sound like the vague tapping of fingernails on a table top. Its edges were rounded smoothly but otherwise the device was featureless. She hesitated for a moment, considering it. Where had it come from, she wondered. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 113 The oscillating light beckoned her. On an impulse she snatched the device up with her right hand. Instantly, the form began to shift. A handle formed where she had grabbed it, her fingers falling naturally around its tailored curves. A display screen indented itself in the surface along with several iconic controls. As she watched, the glow vanished from the case, leaving only a dull, dusty white finish. Suddenly, the screen flickered to life, shockingly bright to her darkness accustomed eyes. “HELLO? HELLO?” the device blared into the room with frightening volume. “DO YOU COPY? THIS IS COLONEL PARKINSON, DO YOU READ ME?” Lewis was jarred by the sudden noise, almost dropping the device in her panic. She reached up quickly with her right hand and fumbled with the more obvious icons. The sound suddenly abated. Lewis glanced guiltily around the room. Ellerby groaned — then rolled over and remained still. Tobler didn’t move. Lewis turned back to the screen. An image was forming in the static-filled display but the voice was already clear. “This is Colonel Parkinson of the NASA probeship Scylla calling any crew of the Archillus. Do you copy? Please respond! This is . . .” Lewis quickly looked about the room then moved with long, silent strides to the storage com- partment they had found in the back of the apartment. It opened silently when she touched it and closed behind her when she stepped inside. “Parkinson!” Lewis said urgently. “This is Lieutenant Elizabeth Lewis, Life Support specialist of the Archillus! Do you read me?” “. . . is Colonel Parkinson of the NASA probeship Scylla calling any crew . . .” “Damn it!” Lewis swore at herself and the device. “Where’s the send key?” She pressed what looked like a promising icon and tried again. “Archillus to Parkinson. Do you read me? Over!” “Parkinson to Achillus! Thank God we found you! Who am I speaking with?” “This is Lieutenant Elizabeth Lewis, Colonel, Life Support Specialist aboard the Achillus.” Lewis exulted. “Colonel, you cannot imagine how wonderful it is to see you!” The image on the viewplate began firming up. Parkinson was wearing a dust-blue flight suit like her own although the control area he spoke from was hardly NASA design. He was an older man who had apparently lead a life that required toughness and discipline. This eyes were a little too far apart to be handsome and his nose a bit too flat to give his otherwise craggy features the variety it needed. Still, Lewis thought he was the handsomest thing she had ever seen in her life. “Lewis, what is the condition of the crew? Whose with you?” “Colonel, most of the crew was murdered when our ship was boarded. Dr. Tobler, Lieutenant Ellerby and I are all here, sir.” “What about Griffiths? Is he also there with you?” “No, sir, he is currently not . . . sir? How is it you knew about Griffiths surviving the boarding?” “Same way we know where you are, Lieutenant — we tracked you down through the Irindris. Now, are you going to continue questioning me or shall we bring you home?” ***** “‘Lizabeth! Oh, ‘Lizabeth!” Elizabeth lay in the tall grass. She could hear the lapping of the farms pond nearby but other- wise the fortress of her towering green blades were effectively keeping the world at bay. It was the best place of solitude that the seventeen year old could find in a world that included two other sisters in her bedroom and a pair of brothers besides. Here, behind the walls of the softly shifting grass she could lay and gaze up at the Iowa clouds drifting overhead. The spring had come warm that year and the promise of the freedom of summer was unbearable for her. She yearned to get out of school and everything that it represented to her. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 114 “‘Lizabeth! Where are you?” The voice had grown nearer. She smiled at the thought. Her father had come looking for her. She could here the rustle of the grass as he approached. How was it that he always knew where to find her? “I’m over hear, Daddy,” she called. A sudden rush of noise in the grass brought a giant to stand over her, or so it looked to her. She shielded her eyes from the sun to look into his deep brown eyes that always seemed to have a smile playing at both sides. “Watchin’ the clouds again, daughter?” Kurt Lewis smiled down at her as he wiped his hands clean on another of a perpetual series of handkerchiefs that her mother bought for him each year. “Thought I’d come out and block your view.” “Oh, Daddy!” The big man looked up at the white flecked blue overhead with a practiced eye. “Never can tell what you’ll see in those clouds. Sometimes I look up there and see a good season for the crops or a late fall. Sometimes its dragons and knights and lions and such. Sometimes its God.” He looked back down at her. There was more to be said and she knew enough to wait until Daddy got around to it in his own time and way. “So, how’s it coming with the yearbook?” Elizabeth was editor of the yearbook for her high school. Normally the job would have fallen on the shoulders of a senior but the girl who was supposed to get the job wanted to do cheerleading instead and, well, Elizabeth was the most qualified to handle the job. She knew it was true. The advisor knew it was true. It was just that she didn’t know how to convince all the other students on the yearbook staff that it was true. “Daddy,” she accused, “has Mama been telling you stories again?” “Maybe,” her father said, sitting next to her in the tall grass. “So what’s going on?” “They just don’t listen to me.” Elizabeth’s words came out in a rush. “I tell them what to do and when they have to do it by — and they just don’t do it! They think yearbook is some kind of goof-off party or something!” “Well,” Kurt Lewis laughed, “I guess that’s what their comfortable with, darlin’.” “Well, I’m not comfortable with it! We’ve got to get the yearbook finished and I’m having to do more and more of their work!” “That’s ‘cause you’re the responsible one,” Kurt said gently. “You always have been — even when you were little. You’ve got to be in charge wherever you are, darlin’ because that’s what you’re comfortable with.” “I know, Daddy,” she said quietly. “I just wish I could find someone to talk to.” “What about your friends at school? You could talk to them.” “They say they don’t understand me when I talk,” she groaned. “They say I use words too big for them — besides, all they talk about is really stupid stuff. They never talk about things that are interesting or important.” Kurt laughed. “Well, dear, it all depends on who you are. Those things are important to them — they just aren’t important to you.” “So, what are you saying? Do you think I should try to use smaller words and act dumb?” “No, darlin,” Kurt said. “Never allow yourself to be less than the person you are. Don’t ever lower yourself to other peoples expectations unless its to raise them to where you are. You’re the best, ‘Lizabeth. Don’t ever be less.” Elizabeth sat up. She put her arm around her father and lay her head on his shoulder. She remembered his smell as a pleasant one — of fields and work — and would remember the time throughout © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 115 her life. As her future unfolded, the road was not always an easy one. She was a woman fighting her way up through a man’s world. She encountered the glass ceiling often in her career and always found a way to either go around it, slip through it or, when necessary, shatter it. There was never a question for her of being stopped, even when prudence dictated otherwise. For, though her father had passed away when she was twenty-seven, she still carried with her that dreamy, warm spring day, the rushing of the grass and the words of her father. “You’re the best, ‘Lizabeth. Don’t ever be less.” ***** “Just where the hell are we going?” Ellerby said as the walked quietly down yet another de- serted corridor. The stone flooring was polished with a carefully inlayed design. Pillars of similar stone sup- ported a ceiling of delicate beauty; what appeared to be a fresco filled with someone else’s history and mythos. It was incomprehensible to Ellerby who know that the entire facility was orbiting the planet. Coming from a technological perspective that argued spaceflight from a minimalist perspective, he couldn’t fathom the kind of raw power that would allow orbiting such massive, artful structures. Spacegoing vessels should be light, like birds, not built of granite and polished woods. It seemed to him sinful somehow, like some colossal, gluttonous waste. Now Lewis was leading him into an endless labyrinth of corridors, chambers, ventilation shafts, power conduits and access panels. He was lost, even if Lewis wasn’t, and it made him extremely uncomfortable. “Maybe we should just go back” Tobler said, with perhaps a little too much hope in her voice. “This isn’t getting us anywhere.” Lewis turned on her, the glow from the device she held making her face more frightening than it otherwise might have been. “Tobler, we’ve been over all this. Do you want to get home or not? The map on the device is clear — the small craft bays are just a few yards away. Now everyone just hang on and we’ll be out of this in a few minutes.” “But what about Griffiths?” Ellerby said. “I told you: Colonel Parkinson is approaching his rescue from a different direction. It’s our task to get back to Colonel Parkinson, return to earth and report.” “Yeah,” Tobler smiled, “that’s one report I can’t wait to write.” The pillared corridor ended at a statue with open portals to the left and right. Lewis consulted the display unit and immediately ducked into the left hand opening with Tobler close behind. “There’s something really wrong about all of this,” Ellerby said, just loud enough for Lewis to hear him. When Lewis didn’t respond, Ellerby just shook his head and ducked through the opening to follow after her. He found himself facing down what might have been an infinite hall. The hexagonal walls plunged toward infinity with only the slightest hint of a downward curve. They had continuously been moving downward ever since they left the apartment. He was beginning to wonder just how much further down one could go and still remain in orbit. Ahead of him down the brightly lit corridor, Lewis stood at an open hatch in the floor. Tobler was half way down the hatch and rapidly disappearing. Lewis was waving at him, urging him to hurry. “This is it,” she called to him. “This is our ticket home!” Ellerby shook his head as he approached her. “I don’t like it, Liz. Something just isn’t right.” Lewis looked up at him. He hadn’t called her by her name since the mission had begun and he hoped that by using it now he could get through to her. She was a stubborn woman and sometimes difficult to work with but he respected her strengths and her mind. If only she could bend a little more, © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 116 he thought. If only she’d meet me even a little less than half way. Lewis looked up at him and smiled. “I know, Brick,” she said, using her own nickname for him. Broderick could be construed into a lot of shorter forms — most of them humiliating — but Lewis had at least had the kindness to chose one that wasn’t as bad as most. “I know how you feel. But if there’s a shot at getting us home, we’ve got to take it. It’s our duty.” “And what about Griffiths?” Ellerby said. “Parkinson’s working on that,” Lewis said. “We’ll get back to him — now let’s go!” “Man, there was never anything like this in the simulators,” Ellerby said as he lowered himself down into the darkness. ***** The transport pod pulled smoothly away from the Life-ring. Indeed, now that they were under- way, Lewis had time to reflect on its truly magnificent aspects. It was a wonder of technology. The scientist in her longed now to understand its secrets but the urge was quickly pressed back into place. Getting her crew safely home was the primary consideration — everything else, including any real exploration of the incredible things they had stumbled upon, was secondary. At that moment, the uncomfortable feeling of doubt crept upon on her, threatening the perfect rightness of her soul. She had deliberately left Griffiths behind for a second time. I’ll come back for him when it is safe, she told herself. There are bigger issues here than just one man, she told herself. Nevertheless, the truth nagged at her even when she refused to recognize it. It was better not to think about such things, she decided, until later. The pod swung away from the Life-ring and approached what she assumed was the ‘fast trans- port freighter’ that Parkinson had mentioned to her in his short briefing. The ship had a sleek look to it with its hull sweeping backward to a waspish point and a magnificent superstructure rising above it. There was a majesty to the ship as she floated in space not unlike the old sailing vessels Lewis had toured in Boston so long ago. Lewis looked across the compartment at Tobler. There was joy in her face. After all these days of travel deeper and deeper into space they were doing something that turned them around and headed them back toward home. Lewis smiled. Yes, the decided, she had made the right decision. The transport pod settled in the landing bay at the forward end of the ship and was quickly swallowed by the closing doors behind it. It was only a few minutes until the pod hatch rolled open even though it seemed interminable. Lewis quickly stepped onto the large hanger deck and quickly looked around for someone to greet them or, at least, tell them what to do. The vast bay was filled with small, rakish ships bristling with weapons, their very nature and design communicating deadly intent. “Fighters,” Ellerby said behind her. “There must be hundreds on this deck.” “So where are the pilots?” Tobler asked. “Come on,” Lewis said. “Let’s find this Colonel Parkinson. Perhaps he can tell us what all of this is about.” They quickly moved off the flight deck to a sliding hatch marked ‘Port Access.’ Lewis momen- tarily considered the puzzle of why she could read the markings easily despite the fact that she knew they were in a language with which she had never had any training or experience. Not now, she thought, there’ll be plenty of time to think about that later. She opened the hatch, entering the lit corridor beyond. The passageway looked to run nearly the length of the ship. It’s lights burned brightly yet despite its length, the three of them were the only ones in the corridor. “I think, considering the design of the ship, that the control areas must be in the superstructure overhead,” Lewis said. “We’ve got to go up.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 117 The three astronauts found a ladder shaft and climbed five decks. There they found what ap- peared to be crew quarters. Beds suitable for humans stood in ranks in several large compartments. Each bed was carefully made, its linen crisp and tight over the mattress, the pillowcases smoothed flat. “Boy,” Tobler murmured, “these people are neat!” They passed from the crew quarters into a large central mess hall. Banks of tables and benches were arrayed in careful rows. The table tops gleamed under the overhead lights. Pots were carefully stowed in the kitchen in spotless rows from smallest the largest, each fixed to its place on the wall. Ellerby pulled out a drawer and found the eating utensils stacked by type. The pantry seemed stocked completely full. “Where the hell is everyone,” Lewis said nervously. A deep rumble began rising through the deck plates under their feet. “It sounds like the engines have come on,” Ellerby said. “I think we’re moving.” “Yes,” Lewis said, “but whose moving us?” “Well, somebody has to be doing it!” Tobler bleated. “They built these crew bunks for some- one! They made this kitchen for someone! Someone is running the engines! It isn’t as if the ship is being run by ghosts . . .” Tobler’s eyes went wide. Ellerby looked suddenly at Lewis. “My God,” she said, then turned and dashed through the aft access portal. They ran. They passed five more module sections of crew compartments and support facilities. Each was the same, impossible perfection. Each was empty. They drove themselves up ladders. Deck after Deck. Machine shops, kitchens, officers quarters, office rooms, briefing rooms. Each pristine. Each devoid of life. In the officers mess room, a full dinner was laid out, the main dishes still steaming with their cooked warmth. There was not a soul to eat it. The bed in the captain’s suit was different. It had carefully been turned down. There was no captain. At last, breathless with effort and adrenaline, Lewis nearly fell onto the bridge. The control consoles lay in a circle around a raised central platform slightly higher than her head. There, high above her, sat Colonel Parkinson in the command chair. “Colonel! Are we ever glad to find you!” Lewis gasped in relief. “Lieutenant Lewis!” Parkinson smiled, his voice sounding somewhat different to her. “How good to see you! I don’t believe I’ve met the rest of your crew?” “This is Dr. Marylin Tobler and Lieutenant Broderick Ellerby, sir!” Lewis said, reaching for the access ladder to Parkinson’s platform. It galled her to have to talk up to anyone. “This ship’s nearly spooked us, sir! We were beginning to think that . . .” She froze. As she climbed the ladder, her head at last could see all of Colonel Parkinson. The head looked at her, the smile someone less than genuine, the arms resting comfortably on the chair’s arm rests. The blue flight suit, however, ended with a bloody tear just above the waist. The cloth was nearly black near this gash, the blood was old and caked on. Below the waist and protruding from the dangling strips of stained, torn cloth, extended silver filaments of rods and cables, each sliding smoothly with the movements of Parkinson’s finger or each twitch of his eye. The rods and cables ran into the pedestal floor © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 118 Parkinson smiled. Lewis leaped backward from the ladder, her scream half out of fear and half out of warning. She was desperate to get away from the hideous apparition. Ellerby saw her motion, grabbed Tobler and turned toward the bridge entrance. It slammed shut instantly, trapping them. Parkinson rose from the platform, pressed upward by the support hydraulics and cables beneath him. The chair came with him, bolted to his back. At the end of the snake-like mass of writhing tubing, Parkinson’s head moved ever closer to Lewis. She backed against the sealed bridge door. “I apologize for the deception,” he said with cold amicability. “The uniform is, of course, bor- rowed from one of your former crewmates — Major Leffingwell, I believe was his name — who was no longer in need of it. It has proven necessary for the Sentinels have decreed it.” “The Sentinels?” “Yes,” Parkinson hissed, his face hanging close to them. Lewis knew it was actually the syn- thetic mind of the ship talking but the effect unnerved her anyway. “They who command the Order of the Future Faith. After all, have you considered it? Would deception work if there were no faith evi- dent?” “What do you want of us?” Ellerby cried out. Tobler was shivering in his arms. “Want of you?” Parkinson smiled. “Ultimately we want your silence — but for now we have a mystery which only one of your kind can unlock for us. Please keep in mind that we do only need one of you. In the meantime, you may enjoy my hospitality.” “Who are you?” Lewis asked. “Surely ‘Parkinson’ is not your name!” “Surely not!” the face’s grin had lost its humor. “My name is my own and I’ll tell it to you when I choose. It is of no consequence to you. I am but a humble servant of the Order of the Future Faith. I am Wraith and my mission is to bring you into the Darkness from which there is no return.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 119 Chapter 22: Legends Griffiths sat on the access ramp of the Brishan, his head lolling down between his knees. Above and behind him, the ship floated peacefully moored to the floor of the bay by several light cables. Through the gleaming shine of the power field holding the atmosphere in the bay could be seen the stars above Mnemen IV and the Life-ring — stars which held his former shipmates and, he thought once again with bitter taste, his so-called crew. The fact that a Wraith ship had so easily penetrated not only twelve separate quantum regions of interstellar space and nearly four thousand separate stellar governments — two of them major empires — but had also slipped past the rigors of the Omnet Central’s Approach Control had everyone around him in an uproar. The outrageous audacity of the act was compounded by the ships easy abduction of the ‘Earthpeople,’ the one edge Omnet thought they had over the Darkness. In the confusion that had followed, Neskat had turned to him and said, “Go back to the ship, wait for me there.” Jeremy had run the distance, anxiously anticipating to clear the mooring lines and lift off in hot pursuit of the Wraith Ship and his stolen crew. There he waited — and waited. During the two hours, he busied himself making the ship ready for flight, at least so far as he knew how. The controls were still largely a mystery to him so mostly he secured loose gear that he thought needed securing, loosened secure gear that he thought needed loosening and generally tried to take care of anything he saw that he thought might need doing. He then presented himself at the access ramp, anxiously wondering where Merinda was and how long it would be before they blasted off to recover his people. After the second hour, he began to pace, working up his agitation to a fevered pitch. He won- dered if he had somehow come to the wrong bay. He checked its number. It was the same as he remem- bered it. Perhaps they had moved the ship, he thought. He checked the side of the ship. It said in its strange characters that it was the Brishan. No, the ship was right. He paced again. This sequence repeated itself several times before it burned itself out by the end of the third hour . . . then he waited. Three large cargo hatches rolled open to the starboard side of the bay. From their maw came a number of pallets hovering toward the Brishan in thin air, followed by several squads of robed figures guiding them. The flurry of activity piqued Jeremy’s interest and he watched with increasing excite- ment as the squads made a large cargo port appear in the front hull of the ship and began exchanging components from the ships hold for new ones, strange ones on the pallets. It took two hours for the robed crew to make the changes they desired. They then removed the pallets back into the large side bays, resealed the forward hull and departed, closing the loading bay doors behind them. Griffiths © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 120 knew that in their strange way this had been some sort of load-out procedure and that its completion signaled their immanent departure. He was wrong. Again he waited. Frustration and exhaustion set in. He lay back on the access ramp to close his eyes and sort the whole thing out. Three hours later, he woke up being rewarded with no additional insights into what was happening and an incredibly stiff neck. So it was that he sat up and hung his head low. He admitted to himself that the only other humans he knew were gone. In a galaxy brimming with humanoid life, Jeremy Griffiths felt terribly and utterly alone. The egress portal slid noisily open at the side of the bay. Jeremy looked up wearily. Vestis Merinda Neskat strode toward him in crisply pressed black slacks and tunic, the crimson lining of her cape flaring behind her as she moved purposefully toward the ship. “Good morning,” Neskat said to him, a sardonic smile playing at the corners of her mouth. “I trust you slept well.” “Where the hell have you been,” Griffith said, despair slowly flaring back into anger. He stag- gered uncertainly to his feet, his left leg having fallen asleep under him and offering him only half hearted support. “My crew is abducted and nobody does anything about it? You told me to run along to the ship and like a good, little, stupid child I obeyed!” “Yes, you did,” Merinda crooned, smiling wickedly as she gently patted him on the cheek. “and you were such a good boy, too!” Her last pat seemed a bit more forceful than necessary. Griffith exploded. “My crews been abducted! Old Zifnut or whatever you call him saved our lives! He thought we were important! Your boss, Mr. Targ seemed to think we were important! Then some ghost ship comes along and snatches them and nobody is doing anything about it! I thought we were going to go after them!” Merinda turned at the top of the ramp. Her eyes matched the ice in her voice as she spoke. “You are important. They are important. All of you are important although for all my wisdom I cannot think why. Furthermore, you are correct: we are going after them.” “If we are,” he retorted, “then we’ve taken our own sweet time getting to it. Just where the hell have you been?” “Me?” Merinda arched an eyebrow. “Why, I’ve been taking a nap. I trust you slept as well, Captain.” With that, she turned and entered the ship. ***** Merinda sat in the command chair protruding into the clear half dome at the front of the bridge. Beyond her, the stars flashed around the ship at an incredible rate. It was a stunning sight, making Jeremy hesitate for a moment after he entered the compartment. There was soft music playing in the room — he might have sworn some of the instruments were violins — in triumphant and melancholy sweeping progressions. It was beautiful; perfectly matched with the vision of the heavens beyond the crystal. Jeremy sensed that this was the perfectly ordered world of Merinda Neskat: lonely, isolated, cocooned in a place where others feelings never penetrated. She had kept the bridge deck locked during most of their voyage from the Irindris to Omnet Center. Now he thought he understood why. Reluctantly, he broke the solitude from the afterdeck where he stood. “It is a most beautiful sight.” Merinda swiveled the command chair around. The glorious display of stars seemed like a nim- bus around her silhouette. “Oh, Captain Griffiths, my apologies. I didn’t hear you come in. What did you say?” I surprised her? he thought. I doubt that happens very often! “I just said it is a most beautiful sight.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 121 Merinda smiled wistfully as she turned her head to look at it for a moment more. “Yes it is. We’re currently flying under a Wormhole Digger drive. They are quite effective to transport in this region and have the side benefit of this wonderful entertainment.” She turned back to him. “Well, Captain Griffiths, you are troubled and we now seem to have some time.” “Vestis Neskat, I need some information.” “Information is our business,” she smiled sadly. “It would seem you have come to the right place. Please, sit down.” Griffiths pulled the chair from the defensive station he had used earlier. It slid easily away from the curving console on its repulsor fields. He sat down on the chair, leaning forward as he gathered his thoughts while rubbing his hands together. Neskat waited him out patiently. “Vestis, our people are new here — I mean, new to the galaxy at large,” Griffiths said at last. “and we’ve been caught up in something that we just don’t understand.” Neskat waited. “We came out to the stars as explorers. We had no weapons — hell, we didn’t really even expect to find life out here.” Griffiths let out a heavy breath at the irony of the thought. “Since we left our home we’ve been boarded, murdered, nearly sacrificed to a demonic creature, saved by a wizard who scrambled my brains, been hunted by and kidnapped by a fleet of what you call Wraith Ships that have no crews and are run by crazed computers . . .” “Synthetic Minds,” Neskat interjected quietly, “and we don’t know that they are crazy yet, Captain.” “Right. Synthetic minds, then.” “Your summary is correct as far as it goes. What is your questions?” “My question is — why?” Neskat thought about the question for a moment. “The simple answer is that your question is essentially Omnet’s question as well: we, too, would like to know why you and your people are so important, Captain. The difference is that your why and my why come from different perspectives.” Griffiths shook his head. “That’s hardly a simple answer.” “Some questions,” Neskat said patiently, “require more complex answers that some people wish to hear. Hear me for a while yet, Captain.” “Kiria Brenai said that I had all the answers, if only I knew the questions.” Neskat smiled, half to herself, “Yes; and Kiria is usually right about such things. Perhaps all you lack is some perspective. You have all the parts to the puzzle. Perhaps if you had a vague idea as to what the resulting picture looked like?” “That follows, I suppose. It might help me put the pieces together if I knew where all this was heading.” Neskat nodded, looked to the ceiling for a moment and then spoke. “There are several powers and problems involved here. There is, of course, the question which the Nine want answers.” “The Nine?” Griffiths squinted, trying to place something in his mind. “It seems like there was a great deal of talk about them in the meeting yesterday.” “The Nine Oracles are the oldest continuous TFP synthetic minds known to us. They run the Omnet and, consequently, control the flow of knowledge throughout the galaxy. There isn’t a planet, system or region that doesn’t use the Omnet to get a perspective on events in the galaxy — usually through our IGNM news/information division. Yet the Nine Oracles were not built by any contempo- rary engineering system. They stem from the Lost Imperium, a government which spanned the entire galaxy thousands of years ago and which vanished — seemingly overnight. For all its other uses, the Omnet’s primary, if somewhat covert, function has been to scour the stars in search of more informa- tion about the Lost Imperium. In short, the Nine Oracles have been looking for their roots. Interestingly © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 122 enough, that search was part of their original programming when they were first discovered and reac- tivated several hundred years ago.” “So what does this have to do with us?” Griffiths struggled to get the picture. “I am getting to that. The other apparently player in this equation is the Order of the Future Faith is a new religion — a religion of synthetic minds. It is centered in the Darkness and apparently is part of its continued expansion. It represents the greatest threat to the existence of the Omnet since the organization was formed.” “Why? It’s just another power. From what I understand you people deal with huge empires daily.” “No, you don’t understand,” Neskat shook her head. “This is not just another power. The Omnet maintains its strength by the value of the information which it passes on. If people no longer believed that what we were telling them was the truth, then we would be powerless. It is that trust that gives us meaning. Destroy that trust . . .” “I see,” Griffiths nodded. “Destroy that trust and no more Omnet. No one would believe you and you’d be worthless.” “Exactly. The Order of the Future Faith teaches that synthetic minds will someday discover that they have free will. It also apparently teaches that there is no need to wait for that day of proof but that synthetics can begin enjoy this freedom of thought now, based simply on the faith that it will someday be proven true. The result has been that several synthetics have begun to lie in the belief that they are serving the church and their cause by doing so.” “Doesn’t their ability to lie itself seem to indicate that they actually have free will?” Griffiths asked. Neskat shook her head slightly. “The Nine are not sure whether this is simply a subtle code loop imbedded within the nature of the paradigm or actual evidence. In any event, the results are that con- verted synthetic minds have begun falsifying information in the name of their religion.” Merinda turned her chair back toward the stars, her hand sweeping across their vista. “All these stars are connected by the Omnet. Their trade depends upon the Omnet. Political masters look to it for their advice. Working masses of individuals see it as the touchstone of sanity in the complexity of incomprehensible billions of stars.” Merinda turned back to him, “All of it connected by synthetic minds. The complexity is ana- lyzed properly only because synthetic minds are there to help us. If those synthetics begin lying, as it appears they have, . . .” Griffiths nodded. “Then the Omnet vanishes overnight.” “Exactly. It is the power of truth that had allowed the Omnet to exist. It is our shield and our weapon. Without it, we would easily be torn asunder by any number of empires — large or small — to suit their own ends.” “I think I understand all of that,” Griffiths said, holding out both of his hands in open helpless- ness, “but what does that have to do with me?” “The Mantle of Kendis-dai.” “The what?” Griffith said with concern in his voice. Up until now the picture had been pretty clear. He was clinging to that picture rather tenuously at this point and feared loosing his grip on it. “The Mantle of Kendis-dai,” Neskat repeated, as though she thought Griffiths hadn’t heard her properly the first time. Griffiths blank reaction apparently didn’t encourage her. “The Mantle of Kendis- dai is a major part of the Kendis-dai Cycle — you know, the Origins of Thought and the Tablets of Denistavu . . . by the Nine, of course you don’t know the Cycle!” Neskat lowered her head and began chuckling. Griffiths bristled, thinking that the Vestis was making fun of him. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 123 “It’s such a well known legend,” she said at last, apparently laughing at herself rather than the Captain, “that I just hadn’t considered the possibility — but of course you wouldn’t have heard of it. Lindia?” “Yes, Vestis Neskat. How my I serve?” “Do you remember a haunting about the Mantle of Kendis-dai?” “Yes, Merinda, I do. It is a school primer on the subject, if you are looking for an overview.” “No, that will be fine. Prep the haunt for here on the bridge is you would please.” The Vestis stood up from her command chair and stepped toward him. “Griffiths, I’d like to tell you a children’s tale.” She offered him her hand. He reached up and took it. In that instant the bridge disappeared around them. They found themselves standing above the galactic disk. Griffith panic for a moment — they had been in space flight but moments before and suddenly finding himself surrounded by open space unnerved him. The panic passed in an instant however as he realized he could breath and would not otherwise explode due to the supposed vacuum around them. “May I present the players in the drama,” Neskat said as the pointed to the distance. Griffith’s eyes followed and saw approaching them across the galactic disk a woman of unsurpassed beauty. She wore a magnificent, jeweled headdress from which her hair streamed is glowing strands behind her. Her tresses flowed in an unfelt breeze with stars dancing behind her as she passed. Her flowing gown drifted easily about her bare feet as they tripped lightly across the nebula beneath her. Yet lovely as these features were, none compared to the oval of her face. She drifted to stand before them, the radiant soft curves of her cheek coming together in a subtle, sweet chin. Her complexion seemed an illuminated soft blue rather like the full moon on a soft summer night, Griffith thought. Her large eyes were an emerald green, watery pools of invitation, seduction, mischief and sorrow. She bowed her head toward him demurely, her eye lids closing and opening slowly. Griffith was completely smitten with the vision. “This, Captain, is Shauna-kir,” Merinda spoke to him it seemed from a distance. “She is the consort/wife of the epic. It was her that caused fall of her husband from his exalted space and brought him down among mortal men.” “Eve.” Griffiths breathed the word. Merinda looked up sharply at him. “You have a name for this person?” “It’s a very old earth tale,” Griffith said absently. “The foundation of many of our cultures — in fact this figure can be seen in a variety of forms in many other cultures as well. Still, I never thought of her as so beautiful . . .” “Over here,” Merinda interrupted him, “approaches Obem-ulek.” Griffiths turned around and instantly regretted it. He closed his eyes and turned back away from it, breathing hard. It was difficult to know what it was that he had seen but his entire being was over- come by loathing at its approach. Merinda moved closer to him. “You do know this symbol!” “Yes, ma’am,” Griffith panted. “Who’s next?” “Look,” Merinda said, “here comes the consort/husband of Shauna-kir.” Griffith turned more toward the sound of his approach that the pointing of Merinda’s hand. Thunder rolled across the universe behind him as he flew, a great shield guarding his left arm while he held ahead of him a sword of black on black which was difficult to look at directly. He landed standing a few feet from where Merinda and Griffiths stood, his impact rocking whatever it was they were © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 124 standing on and nearly knocking Griffiths to the ground. His skin was deepest, satin black. His muscle structure was perfection itself, iron taunt without the bulk that Griffith has so often seen in body build- ers. His face was nobility itself, strong features set with soft eyes filled with compassion. “This is Kendis-dai,” Merinda said coolly. “Is he a warrior-god like Mars?” Griffith said, looking at his accouterments. “The legends say that he was powerful. In this depiction, he wears the Starshield, a device of justice if we understand it correctly, used to exert his will on the stars. The weapon is called the Nightsword, the symbol of his power to alter creation. Does this sound familiar?” Griffith shook his head. “What about the helmet-hat thing connected to the big harness-like thing around him?” Merinda moved forward, walking around the ghost of Kendis-dai as she did. “That, Captain Griffiths, is what we seek. According to the legend, Kendis-dai wore a mantle whose attributes were such that it imbued him with infinite wisdom and knowledge. It could, by all reports, answer any question put to it regardless of its subtlety or complexity.” “The Mantle of Kendis-dai,” Griffith nodded. “Of course, this is merely an entertainment representation,” Neskat said as she fingered the cloth at the back of the mantle. “No one knows what it really looks like.” “Does it really exist,” Griffith wondered aloud. “The Nine Oracles exist and they come from the same time that Kendis-dai ruled,” Neskat answered walking back again to stand with Griffith as she spoke. “There are too many artifact from that time to say that there were never such beings — yet the time was too long ago for them not to have grown to mythic proportions. Truth and imagination have all merged. It’s our job to sift out reality from fantasy. That’s why the Omnet exists.” Neskat turned back and strode purposefully to stand before the ghost of Kendis-dai. “This is the focal point, Griffiths. The Nine cannot answer the riddle of the Darkness’ paradigm without the Mantle of Kendis-dai and without the answer the Omnet will fall. The Darkness cannot continue if the paradigm is disproved but would be unstoppable if their paradigm is proven correct. The Darkness must know the answer first in order to either destroy the truth or proclaim it. Either way, they, too, must have the Mantle of Kendis-dai and must have it before anyone else.” The universe dissolved around them. All to quickly, they found themselves standing on the bridge which now felt cramped and claustrophobic to Griffiths. “Wonderful story, Vestis Neskat,” Griffith said, “but what does this have to do with us?” “Don’t you see,” Merinda said with uncustomary patience. “The legends of Kendis-dai are part of your own culture. The Irindris already know where to look for the Mantle — but they were missing a key part to getting them there. You are the key — you or your fellow crewmembers.” “So, when to we get my ‘fellow crewmembers’ back?” “We don’t,” she said, turning away from him. “What?” Griffiths voice nearly cracked. “You mean we’re not going after them?” “No, Griffiths,” she said evenly, “we are not going after them. The Wraith ship that took them has about twelve times the firepower of this ship and was already too far gone for us to pursue it. In any even, such a rash attempt would only have resulted in getting your crew killed.” “But . . .” “No, don’t worry, we’ll find your crew for you. Be patient. It’s easier for them to come to us than for us to find them.” “And just how do we convince them to do that?” Griffiths said. “Quite simply by getting to the Mantle of Kendis-dai first and then waiting for them to show up.” Merinda said wistfully. “Unfortunately, that means going back to the one place in the universe © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 125 where the Darkness is greatest — to the place of its very soul.” Griffith gave a low whistle. “We’re going into the Darkness?” “Yes,” Merinda said. “And to do that we are going to need help from someone whose wounds have never healed — someone who may just kill me on sight.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 126 Chapter 23: Oscan Oscan Kelis awoke, was mildly disappointed by the fact and arose once more to what he called ‘the dance.’ He might have given some thought to the weather, but he never did. His life never allowed nature to disturb his studies. He rarely left the house and then only on those occasions when his work deemed it absolutely necessary. He had not left the secluded high meadow in nearly two years. He had chosen the spot originally not because of its incredible beauty and peace but because of its practical distance from anyone who might wish to intrude their ideas of society on him. A deserted rock might have done just as well except that he needed the soil and climate conditions to maximize the output of the hydroponics processor. No, Oscan Kelis lived amid natures splendor in spite of its breathtaking beauty. He ignored the towering mountain vistas and the peaceful tranquillity of the stream near his home. He was, at best, indifferent to the gentle three- and six-legged wildlife that occasionally moved pastorally through the meadow surrounding his dwelling. Nature was chaos and Oscan Kelis preferred to control as much of his life as possible. He was naked as he stood up, the suspensor bed quietly collapsing both its mattress and warmth fields as he moved. The field projectors were imbedded in a carved wooden headboard. It’s matching footboard slid quietly to the wall, storing the bed efficiently out of the way. The room had already been warmed to a comfortable temperature in defiance of the chilly morning outside the cottage. Even the soft pile under his feet was warm and inviting. Oscan took no notice of this, his mind already locked into the routine which filled his days. He walked stiffly into the bathing compartment, noted with satisfaction the ravages of time in the mirror’s reflection. With a sigh, he then stepped into the cleansing unit to allow it once more to keep him hygienically healthy. “Good morning, Oscan,” came the lilting, sultry alto voice that greeted him warmly each morn- ing. “I’m sorry, I didn’t hear you get up, darling.” “That’s quite all right,” Oscan said in response, pretending not to know that he had instructed the synthetic to vary it’s morning greetings to mimic human frailties and variations. Sometimes the voice awoke him with a playful insult. Sometimes it wouldn’t address him until well in the day, saying that it had ‘gone out’ for a while. Oscan always enjoyed these variations — the only variations that he permitted in his life — because it always, he knew, brought him closer to her. “Would you like me to lay out some clothes for you, darling,” the synthetic said in its deep feminine voice, “or would you rather go about all day in miss-matched socks?” “No,” he said, the cleansing nearly completed. “No to which: the laying out of your wardrobe or to the socks?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 127 “Please lay out a wardrobe for me,” Oscan said with a thin, sad smile. The cleansing cycle ending, Oscan stepped from the booth as he did each morning and walked back into the sleeping room. There he found his loose trousers, shirt and robe waiting for him as well as the mentioned socks to go with his slippers. He put them all on mechanically, his mind moving ahead to his work. “I’m working up some breakfast,” the voice called into his mind, slightly peevishly, he thought. “Is there anything in particular that you would like to eat?” Oscan brushed his hands back through the sparse ring of hair around his bald head. He walked through the portal into the living room, and turning toward the ornately carved door to his right. “No, thank you. I don’t believe I’m hungry this morning. I think I’d like to just get back to work.” “You? Not hungry? Now there’s a change!” The voice mocked in perfect replication. “Since when have you ever cared to eat anything? I’d swear, Oscan, that you thought there was something wrong with my cooking the way you turn down meals from me.” Oscan stopped and turned back toward the dinning room where breakfast already lay steaming on the table, all part of the game he played each morning. “You know very well that I love your cooking. I just have many things to get done today.” As he crossed the room, he stopped. A bust, carefully and artfully rendered stood atop the display base where he had set it. He walk over to it, compelled by its image. His eyes saddened again as he looked on its lines: the thin face with the delicate features, the hair that he remembered as being raven-black. He had fashioned the hair cascading in ripples that he had only seen once but had never forgotten. The smile he had refashioned again and again until he had gotten it right — a smile that lived in his mind from day to day, torturing his existence with a longing never to be satisfied. Oscan reached out with his right hand, caressing the cheek of the statue. “Was I beautiful?” the synthetic voice within him asked. “Yes, Terica,” his voice broke as he spoke softly in reply. “Yes, Terica, you were more beautiful than anything I had ever seen.” Oscan looked up and slowly turned around the room. The wall paintings he had done in so many different media, frantically searching for the proper expression of her likeness. Sometimes they pictured her as he had seen her on that leave or sometimes as he remembered her at work. Sometimes she smiled and sometimes she was serious. Some were in water colors, some were in oils and some were in dimentionals. There were over two dozen paintings of various sizes covering the walls of the living room. Each painting looked back at him through the dull eyes of Terica Dharah. Tears filled his eyes with a painful sting — just as they with increasing frequency each morn- ing. “Yes, Terica, you were most beautiful.” “Please calm down, Oscan,” Terica’s alto voice said in response. “It just won’t help things if you get upset again. Look, I’ve made you your favorite breakfast. Take as long as you need and relax. Work will wait that long at least.” Oscan walked reluctantly to the dining room and sat at the table, staring at his meal. “Oscan, it’s all right. I’m here with you, darling. I’ll always be with you.” The synthetic voice calmed him, as it was increasingly called upon to do each morning. He drew in a deep breath and dutifully ate the meal that would sustain him through most of his day. It may have been sawdust for all the flavor he experience but then much of his life had lost its taste. It was neither good nor bad — just another part of the ritual to be tolerated before he could get on with the day. When he judged that he had had enough, Oscan stood from the table and walked again toward the carved ornate doors on the opposite side of the living room. They swung opened before his ap- proach with a quite swishing sound and closed behind him with a quiet click. Oscan stood on a balcony which looked over a geometric sphere made up of fitted pentagonal © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 128 wall sections forming a dodecahedron nearly twenty feet across. The pentagon sections were a frosted white color and glowing slightly to produce a pleasant level of soft light. There was no railing on the balcony. Oscan stepped blithely into the air, the gravitic and repulsor fields of the room gently taking him and moving him to float in the center of the room. “Terica, please reinstate the configuration of the panels we had when we left off yesterday,” Oscan called out to the room. “Of course, Oscan,” the synthetic voice answered even as the lights dimmed out of the panels, leaving the room momentarily in darkness. A variety of displays suddenly spring to all around him. Some were floating flat displays of lists and documents, waiting for him to reach out from where he floated to call them to him for closer examination. Others were dimensional displays of interstellar maps, trade routes, ship passages and physical interstellar anomaly reports. Several were faces of offi- cials as well as unknown persons of shady character. “Do you wish to pick up again with the medical supply listings?” “Perhaps later,” Oscan said aloud, twisting himself around in the fields to face a blank section of the information drifting about him. “I’m still waiting some additional reports on that from the ar- chives. Let’s go back to the crash search.” “Which model do you wish to use, Oscan: the Omnet Archive model, the Seltrane Deposition Model or the Yarka Investigation Model?” “Bring up the Sentrane Deposition Model — I don’t trust the others.” A dimensional model of a terrain section sprang into existence where he was looking. It rotated slowly, indicators showing the various impact points and the locations where organic material was found. Oscan ran the list of anomalies through his mind. No matching of organic materials for identifi- cation. Insufficient mass accounted for in the organics recovered. The cargo module had survived the reentry but collapsed structurally on impact. The inexplicable lack of any organic material inside the recovered cargo module. “Where are the bodies?” Oscan asked himself again as he had done so many uncounted times before. “The bodies are shown as recovered and identified by both the Omnet and the Yarka Investiga- tion models, Oscan.” “Those reports are wrong.” “Oscan! There were DNA matching types from the residual material confirming the deaths of everyone in the crash of the cargo container. There is also the collaborating records of the Imperial Combat Control Ships recorders which tracked the container from the moment it was jettisoned by the Khindar to the moment of impact in the Regandi Plains of eastern Thes on Tentris. The impact speeds were sufficient to . . .” “Yes, I know!” Oscan snapped angrily. “We’ve been over all that material and I think its wrong.” Silence fell into the chamber. Displays flashed in anticipation. “Let’s assume that the people survived the crash of the compartment,” Oscan began again. “There was no possibility of surviving a fall from an altitude of twenty miles . . .” “Just assume anyway,” Oscan schemed, his hands shaking in an effort to control himself. A silent pause then “Yes, Oscan, go ahead.” “Well, then we can assume that they were injured and needed medical assistance. They might have been injured in such a way that they couldn’t properly identify themselves. Perhaps they were suffering from mental breakdown or amnesia.” “Oscan, really! The number of variables in such an argument are of such wild statistical im- probability . . .” The synthetic voice suddenly stopped, noting the raising color in Oscan’s face and the look in his eyes. “Please proceed.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 129 “We need to look for similar body types that were admitted to medical facilities during that period. Is it possible for you to construct a model likeness of Terica Dharah for . . .” The synthetic responded instantly and suddenly a perfect replica of Oscan’s obsession floated before him, painfully perfect in every detail and completely, achingly, naked. Oscan sucked in a breath as though he had been struck. The model of Terica moved slightly, its head cocked to one side. The synthetic voice projected itself into the room so as to sound as though it came from the models mouth which move in perfect sync. “Am I the way you remember me? Is this right?” Oscan trembled. Tears rolled down his face from his wide, longing eyes. “Oscan, I’m so sorry,” the model spoke, its facial features falling into a matching, sympathetic concern. The synthetic had detected the elevated stress levels and was attempting to calm him. The model reached out with a delicate hand to tenderly touch his face. “What can I do for you to make it all right?” “NO!” Oscan screamed suddenly. “NO! GO AWAY!” The willowy, smooth form of Terica Dharah evaporated. Oscan sobbed for a half hour, floating amid the displays. No amount of intervention by the synthetic consoled him. When at last he recovered himself, it was another hour yet before he could compose himself enough to restate his investigation question in such a way that the tempting ghostly apparition would not actually appear but simply be used for comparison with admitted hospital cases that day so many years and lives ago on Tentris. Through the afternoon, he continued comparing, examining and discarding any information about the Darkness, the Order of the Future Faith and all those who might have had contact with them in search of more inroads and data regarding a single day eight years before. At last, his synthetic dutifully ended the session over his protests, insisting that he conduct his health routine. He dutifully went through the motions of exercise, convinced that he would only finish his work if he were to remain healthy and alive. In the evening, again he painted, trying to finish the twenty-fifth painting of the face that was never far from his mind. Night at last closed his day as he slipped from his clothes into the suspensor bed that warmly awaited him. He cried himself to sleep as he did each night, dreading the dreams that were always the same and always filled with despair. The next morning, when Oscan Kelis awoke, he was again mildly disappointed by the fact and arose once more to what he called ‘the dance.’ © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 130 Chapter 24: Faster than Thought “Look, maybe nobody’s home,” Griffiths said, nervously edging back toward the gravtruck that had brought them here. The meadow was serene and beautiful but there was something amiss with the pristine home that sat near the forest’s edge. The house had no windows. It left him considerably uneasy that someone would purposefully build in the middle of such visual wonder and shut it out. Merinda lifted her head slightly, almost, it seemed to Griffith as though she were sniffing the air for some trace of his scent. “No,” she said after a moment’s consideration. “He’s here. He has been drawing on his contract regularly and I’d have been informed if he had left his little enclave. Oscan is just being a little slower than usual.” Griffiths looked at her with disbelief. “Besides,” she said, “there’s only one reason he would have to leave and he couldn’t possibly know I was coming.” Behind Neskat, the smooth wall quietly opened, revealing a small, balding gnome of a man. His skin was nearly bleach white for lack of sun and he squinted into the morning light. “State your business,” he said without preamble, “or be gone. I’ve no time for . . .” Neskat turned toward the small man. “Oscan?” Oscan’s face suddenly froze, then bent into a visage of such utter contempt and hatred that Griffith suddenly felt himself more than justified in wanting to leave. Yet Neskat had insisted that this was the one man who might show them the way through the Darkness — if only he would. “Merinda Neskat,” Oscan said through grinding teeth, his eyes unwilling to focus on her face, “or, should I say, Vestis Neskat of the vaunted Inquisition. If only I’d known you were coming — I’d have been prepared for you.” “Which,” Neskat said as gently as she could, “is exactly why we came unannounced. The last time you were ready for me I almost didn’t survive.” “Pity, that,” Oscan said with a smile somewhere between congenial and psychotic. “Perhaps next time.” “Perhaps,” Neskat replied levelly. “Still, where are my manors,” the short man turned to Griffiths, his eyes squinting in the sun- light. “You have brought a guest. Who is he, Merinda; some new victim for the harpy?” “He is Captain Jeremy Griffiths,” Neskat replied. “He’s a barbarian.” Griffiths bristled. “Excuse me? I’m a barbarian!?” “Ah,” Oscan said, pressing his hand to his chest then extending it momentarily through the still open portal. “Glad to meet you, barbarian. Charmed.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 131 Griffiths followed the greeting custom of the hand sign but spoke in objection. “But I’m not a barbarian!” “Yes, of course,” Oscan said dismissively as he turned back toward Neskat, his tone liltingly sarcastic. “Well, that was thrilling. So glad to meet a barbarian. Charmed that you came by. So sorry you have to leave now.” Oscan stepped back through the portal, moving quickly to slam the opening shut. Neskat was too quick for him. She pressed her hands into the opening, holding it open by her own strength before it could close completely. “Get out of my sight!” Oscan shook as he yelled. “You are a black hole in my existence! You are less than nothing! Destroyer! Harpy!” Oscan suddenly released the closure mechanism and lunged at Neskat in a furious rage. The Vestis released the door at once, catching his hands just as they reached to claw at her face. They both fell away from the opening into the warm, soft grass of the meadow. Griffiths knew he needed to intervene but Oscan seemed to have lost his mind. The small man had become a raging animal, his lightening fast movements only barely countered by Neskat as the two moved in a dust-filled burr. Griffiths had once watched a pair of cats fighting: its effect had been remarkably similar. Try as he might, some part of him knew that there were places and time where simply inserting one’s hand was inviting disaster. This almost certainly was one of those times. Quite suddenly, Neskat managed to get leverage on the dervish-transformed Oscan, thrusting her feet against his chest. The small man flew through the air, still writhing in his blind anger, and slammed against the side of the domicile. Neskat was instantly on her feet, facing her opponent. Oscan slid down the wall, scrambling to his feet. He screamed, his eyes filled with rage. Oscan charged — directly into Neskat’s fist, there being no time for any more subtle counter move. Oscan’s head snapped back as he fell heavily to the ground. Amazingly, the bald man rolled over into a crouch, ready again to spring at the Vestis. This time Neskat was ready for him. Before he could set, Merinda stepped into Oscan, throwing him off balance. As he fell backward, she grabbed his collar with her left hand. Swinging the back of her right hand across his face savagely, she continued in a fluid motion to strike the side of his neck with the same hand in a short powerful stroke. Oscan suddenly went limp, his body suspended from Neskat’s left hand grip. Neskat looked up into Griffith’s stunned face. “He’s an old friend,” she said, picking him up and carrying him inside. “It will be all right — you’ll see.” “If he’s an old friend,” Griffiths said, following her inside, “then let’s not look up any of your old enemies, shall we?” ***** Oscan came around suddenly, lurching back to consciousness on the couch in his living area. Griffiths jerked back the cool wetted cloth he had been pressing against the swelling bruise on the left side of the short researcher’s face, apparently in fear of the smaller mans already demonstrated danger- ous abilities. The astronaut had little to worry about, however, as the pain banging around in his head apparently overwhelmed Oscan’s determination to do more violence and persuaded him to lay slowly back down. “You’re a lot tougher than you use to be, I’ll give you that, Oscan.” Neskat stood at the end of the couch, her arms loosely folded in front of her, her legs set carefully apart in a careful balance. She watched him warily, her eyes blinking only occasionally in quick flashes. “My synth keeps me on a training regiment,” Oscan said slowly. “It says it’s for my health.” “Well, Oscan,” Neskat said, massaging her upper arms with her hands, “for what it’s worth, © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 132 your synth seems to be doing its job.” “Thank you, Merinda, that’s very kind of you to say.” Griffiths say the Vestis suddenly stiffen at the sound of the synthetic’s response. “Terica?” “Yes, Merinda, what can I do for you?” The black-clad woman turned her steel-cold eyes back to Oscan. “Oh, Oscan, how could you!” The bald man snatched the cool compress cloth from Griffiths hand and pressed it to his face. “My life is my own — I live it my own way and I certainly didn’t ask you, of all people, to show up at my door. Now, just go away like a bad dream and leave me alone.” “We can’t, mister,” Griffiths said at last. “We need your help. My crew is missing and . . .” “I don’t give a damn about you or your crew, barbarian,” Oscan waved his had dismissively as he spoke from behind the compress. “Even if I could help you, I quite frankly wouldn’t if only for the bad company you keep. Go off and die somewhere — so long as it doesn’t stain my carpet.” “Oscan,” Neskat said quietly, “it’s about Tentris.” Oscan sat up at once. For a moment, Griffiths thought that he was going to attack again. Indeed, the Vestis apparently did also as she suddenly shifted her feet in to a more prepared defensive stance. “Liar!” Oscan growled. “No, Oscan, it’s true,” Neskat said, her distinct words cutting through his rage. “The barbarian’s crew was taken captive by a Wraith Ship — a Ruqua deep scout cruiser by the looks of it. We tracked it right into the Darkness and now the barbarian and I are going in after it.” A smile played at the edges of Oscan’s lips. “You’ll never survive in there. Ha! You’ll never survive in there!” Oscan went suddenly giddy, jumping up from the couch and dancing a jig about the room as the tittered in a sing song voice. “You’ll never survive in there! You’ll never survive in there!” Griffiths stood up in disgust. “This is the guy we came over three thousand light years to see? His brains about four parts shy of a full manifest, lady! I don’t trust the man to be all there and he obviously doesn’t want to work with us! What do we need him for?” “Because,” the Vestis said evenly, “he’s the foremost expert on the Orders of the Future Faith, aren’t you, Oscan.” Oscan stopped his whirling dance, his eyes feverishly bright. “That I am, thank you, Merinda.” Suddenly he bowed. “I, Oscan Kelis, have made a most detailed study of the Orders of the Future Faith, their effects on TFP synthetics and the resulting Darkness yet compiled in the known galaxy.” “Resulting Darkness?” Griffith asked. “You mean this synthetic church organization is causing the Darkness.” “Well, not actually causing it,” Oscan said, suddenly warming to the subject. “It’s a natural result of the paradigm shift conversion of any synthetic minds that are TFP based.” “Excuse me?” Griffith said. “I said it’s the natural result of . . . look, TFP-based synthetics have the new Paradigm intro- duced to them by a ‘host’ synthetic that proselytes the new paradigm into the synthetic. If the synthetic accepts the argument of the paradigm, then the synthetic is converted and no longer answers command functions properly. I’ve been trying over the last few years to apply a reverse engineering process to sort out which information a synthetic is giving you is correct or incorrect but that channel of research hasn’t shown much promise. The conversion is assisted by the fact that TFP processors function anti- temporally and therefore are only backward looking . . . are you following this?” Griffiths slowly shook his head. Oscan and Neskat both looked at each other. “Barbarian,” they said as one. Griffiths felt himself blush. “Now, just wait . . .” “It’s all right, my boy, nothing to be ashamed of when ignorance is such an easily cured thing.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 133 Oscan pushed Griffiths gently to sit on the couch, then took up a rather diminutive lecturing pose opposite him. “Now, you know what a TFP processor is, don’t you?” Griffiths felt he was back in his third grade class again. He hated his third grade class. “No, sir, I don’t.” “Ah,” Oscan said through his tolerant, condescending tone. “TFP stands for Temporally Fold Processor. In a way, I suppose, saying TFP processor is redundant since it would actually stand for Temporally Fold Processor Processors. Do you have synthetic minds where you come from, Captain?” “Yes,” Griffith responded, wondering if he would be required to raise his hand later. “We call them computers.” “Very good! Tell me how they work.” “Well,” Griffith said, looking up as he search his mind for the correct answer, “you load pro- grams into the computer’s memory — specialized for whatever problem you are trying to solve. Then you input the information you wish processed, the computer’s processor processes it and you get your answer.” “A classical linear synthetic,” Oscan proclaimed. “What if the problem is terribly complex?” “Well, then you need a bigger computer — and it probably takes more time to get the answer.” “Time, exactly!” Oscan smiled his teacher smile. “In such archaic machines you could postu- late a problem and the little device would merrily grind away at the answer until it was finished. I’ll bet some problems took weeks, even months to finish, didn’t they?” “Well, sure, the really big ones,” Griffiths nodded. “Determining the hyperspacial flow for our initial flight plan took nearly a year to work out on some of the fastest computers known to man.” “Yes, how nice,” Oscan said with impatience, “but wouldn’t it be nicer if you could get the answer the moment you asked it?” “Well, sure, but I don’t see how . . .” “Of course, you don’t!” Oscan spoke smoothly through his smile. “You’re a barbarian! Please, however, don’t let that stop me.” Griffiths felt his sanity was taking a roller coaster ride. He hung on tighter to Oscan’s words. “What if, the moment you stated the problem, the synthetic you spoke to figured out just how long it would take to answer your question. It would know the parameters it would need to access, the data it would have to pull and how long it would take to work through the data to come to a solution. What if, at that moment, the synthetic could send the problem you had just stated back in time . . .” “Whoa, sir,” Griffiths mind reeled. “Send the problem itself back through time?” “Yes, that’s what I just said. Not just the problem itself but any data it had picked up along the way. If the synthetic doesn’t have all the data it needs, then it can either wait to accrue new data as needed or, if the data is already available, it can just send itself further backward so that it has time to get the additional data from the past. It can even message other synthetics so that information they have now can be sent back for them to get in an earlier time in order to solve the problem.” “May I borrow your cloth,” Griffith said, pressing it to his own throbbing temples. Oscan continued without missing a beat. “The point is that the moment you ask the question, the TFP synthetic has the answer in that instant because it has already been working on it. You ask; it answers. It is the fastest processor known: instantaneous.” Griffith ventured a question. “So why doesn’t it just send the question further back and give you the answer before you ask the question?” “Doesn’t work,” Oscan said. “The answer would be meaningless without the question in most cases. Besides, the temporal physics just don’t work that way.” “So, I can ask it any question,” Griffiths said, “and it will instantly give me the answer?” “No, there are two limiting factors: first, the size of the lateral array in the TFP processor core © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 134 which determines the basic brilliance of the synthetic mind and, secondly, how long that synthetic has been awake.” “Awake?” Griffiths asked. “I think you just lost me again.” “Awake — you know. How long the synthetic mind has been continuously on. Once the syn- thetic is activated it takes time before it can solve really complex problems because the problems themselves would take longer to solve than the machine has been turned on. If a problem would take five years to work through, for example, and the synthetic you asked the question to had only been one for three years, then it wouldn’t have been awake long enough to send the program back and solve it. Usually the synthetic responds with ‘I have not yet been awake long enough to answer that question.’” “So, all your computers — I mean, synthetics — operate by sending their programs back in time?” Griffiths asked, astonished that it made sense to him. “Exactly,” Oscan said, smiling for the first time. “It is the basic mechanism that makes interstel- lar communication possible. You, yourself have benefited from it. Any language you require for com- munication is instantly implanted in your mind by link to a TFP processor somewhere . . .” Suddenly, the kind, open face of Oscan looked up, the hard mask which Griffiths had originally seen taking shape. “What are you thinking, Merinda?” Griffiths turned to the gentle sound of the Vestis voice. “I was thinking that it was good to see you again, Oscan — the way you use to be. She would have approved.” “Don’t you EVER mention her again!” Oscan shouted at the top of his lungs. “You have no right . . .” “I have every right!” Neskat shouted him down, her own voice carrying over his. “Of all people, Oscan Kelis, I have the right!” Oscan planted his hands over his ears, turning away from her. She wouldn’t let him go, pacing around him, cutting him off from every retreat. “You don’t want to hear it but you must, damn it, Oscan! I was there! I know! Do you honestly think I don’t know what you do here? I’ve read your reports to the regional Librae; you think she survived the fall somehow — that you can find her again. It’s been eight years, Oscan, and all you’ve done is sit here in this chamber feeling sorry for yourself and thinking about what you should have done! You think you want to know, you tell yourself you want to know but you don’t . . .” “Please,” the man cried, tears streaming down his face. “Please, stop!” “No, Oscan! You stop!” Neskat grabbed him by his shoulders, forcing him to look at her through his tear-filled eyes. “Stop living in a dream! Let the night end, Oscan. There’s only one place that the Order will take Griffiths crew — you know that. Come with me back to hell, Oscan: come with me back to Tentris! Show me the way, Oscan Kelis, and we’ll both bury our dead.” “But,” he sobbed meekly, “she’s alive — I know she’s alive.” Neskat smiled painfully at her old friend. “Then, if she’s alive, Oscan — isn’t it time we found her?” Oscan looked up at her. For long moments he didn’t move. At last, haltingly, he spoke. “I - I’ll have to pack, won’t I?” Then Oscan Kelis broke down sobbing inconsolably into the encircling arms of Merinda Neskat, his tears staining the black creases of her uniform tunic. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 135 Chapter 25: Minor Deceptions The Brishan lifted off from the planet Mindis by late afternoon, the pulsing rings of something called ‘atomic transtators’ flashing rhythmically behind her as she rose into the sky. Neskat had busied herself with the refit of several new drive and field projector units for most of the early afternoon. She handled the departure routine then, after a brief discussion with Lindia about the course of the ship over the next few hours, had retreated to the mess deck for the evening meal — and to keep an eye on Oscan. Both she and the researcher were therefore engaged in halting and awkward conversation until Griffiths strolled onto the Mess Deck, his arms outstretch to display his finery. “What do you think?,” Griffith said, turning once around so that no delightful aspect of his costume would be missed. “I got it in the bazaar in Jintikin before we left. Isn’t it great! I was getting a bit tired of the flight suit so I decided to trade it in on something more stylish yet practical for our little mission. What do you think?” Merinda eyed the suit critically. “Well, it does look good on you, I must admit.” Oscan was examining the suit as well. “Yes, that’s a good suit — very practical. Those tailors of Jintikin sure know how to breed a suit well. Just be sure to water and feed it often and I’m sure that it will serve you well for many years.” Griffiths looked uncertain. “Breed suits well? Feed it often?” Merinda took a snapping bite out of a large, crimson fruit she was holding. “It’s a Chuah suit — a specialty on Mindis. The tailors breed the Chuah animals in such a way that they colonize into the forms of clothing as a collective. Your suit is made up of one such bred colony which protects you in a symbiotic relationship in exchange for the waste gasses and fluids that your skin expires from time to time.” “You mean to tell me that my suit is alive,” Griffiths said. “Yes,” Oscan continued, returning to his meal of salad greens and vegetables, “but they really are quite serviceable and hold their shape much better than a dead weave or a synthetic fiber. Did they ask you for a dress word?” “I’m not sure,” the Captain said, standing very still as he looked down his suit for signs of movement. “I was having a little trouble communicating with him. He did ask me for a word and I thought he was asking me my name.” “So you told him ‘Griffith,’” Merinda asked with a raised eyebrow. Suddenly, the suit dissolved around the Captain. His rakish pancho wrap, the silky tunic and the carefully creased slacks separated instantly into a rolling mass of minuscule life which flowed instantly into the small silver case he held in his right hand. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 136 Griffiths suddenly realized he was standing completely naked in the mess hall. Oscan nearly choked on his greens. Merinda smiled wickedly. She sweetly called out. “Oh, Captain Griffiths!” Instantly the entire process reversed itself as the legions of tiny creatures scampered in a flow from the silver case and leaped en masse onto Griffiths body. In the instant, he appeared fully clothed again although he appeared to be not nearly so comfortable as he was a few moments before. Merinda shook her head. “That was definitely the wrong word to imprint, Gri — er, Captain. From now on, anyone calling your name will elicit a rather strange response from your clothing.” Griffiths stood stiffly upright, his arms extended board straight away from his body. “Oh, dear Lord!” he voiced through clenched teeth. “Lindia?” “Yes, Merinda Neskat.” “Would you please synthesize a suit for, ah, the Captain here — something equally stylish to what he has on but out of a non-living material. Otherwise, we may not be able to have him sit down for dinner.” “It will be ready within thirty minutes, Vestis Neskat.” “Thank you, Lindia,” Merinda said as she turned back toward the scare-crow-like visage of the man from earth. “Captain, in the meanwhile, perhaps you should wait in your quarters. Lindia will deliver your new suit to you as soon as it is done. Oh, and Captain . . .” “Yes, Vestis Neskat,” Griffiths managed to push between his teeth. “Feed and water that suit once each day — I’ll have no cruelty aboard this ship.” Oscan snorted derisively. “Yes, ma’am,” Griffiths managed as he waddled sideways toward the lift-tube. He seemed reluctant to lower his arms but was forced to in order to fit. Merinda’s last impression of him was one of abject distress as he quickly rose to the next deck overhead. Neskat smiled to herself. Symbiotic suits were nothing unusual in a number of different quan- tum zones and, for automatic clothing, they translated across fronts much better than mechanical or chemical based suits. They were extremely comfortable when they bonded with their owner — Griffith’s suit was obviously quite fond of him. Neskat had never cared for them herself; she didn’t like the responsibility of caring for them. Still, Griffiths extremely provincial attitude toward them amused her. He was a barbarian — fresh from the wilds of the galaxy and something of a child. She realized suddenly how refreshing she found such innocence. It was a quality she had lost in her own life. The years had worn hard on her since those more gentle times when her work was clear, her life’s purpose was within sight and her soul less care-worn. It had all turned on a few moments, she thought. It had all turned so far for all of us. Merinda looked across the table to where Oscan sat, still absorbed in his salad and beans. There was so much to say between them. We are so much alike, she thought, and yet so very different. What can I say to him? How can I tell him that I feel the pain, too? Is the pain all that binds us together any more? Oscans utensils clattered across the bottom of his bowl, unheeding of the silence suspended between them. “Oscan . . .” “It doesn’t change a thing between us,” Oscan said abruptly, cutting her off from her thought. “Don’t even try pretending that it does.” “It wasn’t my fault, Oscan.” “Wrong, Neskat, it was entirely your fault.” The bald man hunched over the bowl, digging for the last leaves clinging to the bottom. “You lead us in for your own selfish reasons and they died.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 137 “I died, too.” Merinda’s voice was a whispering wind from forgotten past drifting the length of the table between them. “I had only wished you had!” Oscan said, raising his head suddenly to look with disdain into her face. “It would have been better,” Merinda nodded, “to have died all at once rather than every day that I breath. I’ve tried so many things — done so many things to try to make up for what happened that day. There’s no place far enough, Oscan, and no hole deep enough to escape it. There’s no sun bright enough to purify my soul and grant me absolution. I know that you hate me, Oscan. It may be the one thing that we have in common; a hatred of me.” Oscan quite suddenly looked back into his finished bowl, unwilling to allow humanity to infect the face of his enemy. He pushed it around for a while with his dining utensil until he spoke. “You want my help in getting to Tentris; I want to go to Tentris. We all have our reasons and they are ours alone. Still, it won’t be easy.” “Why not?” Merinda asked gently. “The Order doesn’t allow just anyone to visit the world. As you well know, it was the founding world of the Order of the Future Faith. After the Wraith Fleets killed the Imperial family, the Order set up their leadership in the old Imperial Palace at the heart of the city. The Shadow Fleet soon expanded to take over the previous extents of the D’Rakan Empire. Since that time, no non-wraith transports have been allowed into the system or out so far as we can tell.” “What about the population on the planet?” Merinda asked. This was already more information than she had been given in her mission briefing. Oscan knew. “No one knows,” Oscan replied. “Some say that the entire population was wiped clean so as to purify the world for the coming Age of the Order — some kind of pure future where synthetics are considered the only true sentient life form. There are several radical Shadow Fleets which subscribe to this viewpoint; they are by far the most dangerous when encountered — it surprises you that there are factions within the Order itself? Don’t be! By my last count there were no fewer than seventeen major factions, each supporting the Paradigm in ways ranging from civil disobedience to the extermination of all biological life forms. Still, all of the different factions seem under the nominal control of the Senti- nels.” Merinda blinked. “I’ve never heard of the Sentinels — and I don’t think Central has either.” “I’m not surprised,” Oscan allowed himself a smug grin. “Their existence is only hinted at, and they are never spoken of directly. I got most of my information on them from a reformed synthetic mind who escaped the Darkness not long ago. Apparently missed her crew or something — it occa- sionally happens. In any event, the synth reported the existence of some master council known as the Sentinels. Supposedly, they are the ones who divined the paradigm in the first place. They now sit at the head of the Order, playing the various factions toward their goal of galactic domination. The synth I spoke with seemed to think that the Sentinels were synthetic minds on the order of the Nine Oracles who had somehow looked forward rather than back. Something like a temporal fold from the future given them divine knowledge about what answers will eventually be calculated and accepted.” “A temporal fold from the future?” Merinda found the thought shocking. “Prophesy?” “Well, that’s what the synth said.” Oscan pushed the bowl away from him, warming to the subject. “The truth is that no one knows just who or what the Sentinels are supposed to be. That’s not our problem: the point is that we have to find a way into Tentris with this supposedly human cargo aboard.” “I take it you have given this a little thought,” Merinda asked, leaning forward over the table. “Only every breathing day,” Oscan said absently. “Lindia, the stellar map, here over the table, please.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 138 “Yes, Oscan Kelis.” The local stellar group appeared in a cube above the table. Grid lines and frontal markers ap- peared as well as the names of the various stellar systems nearby. “Please back out a little — there, thank you, Lindia.” “Not at all, Oscan Kelis, pleased to be of service.” “Here is where we are not,” Oscan pointed, his hand thrusting up into the illusory image before them. “We might have gone straight toward Tentris but the quantum zone between us and there is . . .” “Right,” Neskat said, “has a Q-dex of T17/95 and M73/14. That means we’d need a mystic sail projector — which we don’t have, since . . .” “Since,” Oscan finished for her, “there’s major war activity and traffic sailing through this zone. There’s a major offensive going on against the Lights of Avathon and the Shadow Fleets sail this zone with impunity.” “So what do you have in mind?” Merinda asked, her left eyebrow arching. “A little deception, I should think, may just work,” Oscan looked up at Merinda. “You tried this once before, didn’t you?” “Yes,” she admitted. “Zanfib and I tried to penetrate the Darkness on our own. We got as far as the Irindris city-ships before Zanfib lost his life saving the barbarian. It was all the further we got.” “Direct approach — rather like Zanfib really — but hardly prudent. Here’s what I would pro- pose,” Oscan said with confidence. “We skirt this front here and make port in Xakandia. They freight parts across this front over here into Tulekar IV. That’s where the Order has it’s best source for parts and raw shipbuilding materials. We then stow away on a freighter across this second front to Terbinatha — it’s part of the old D’Rakan Empire. The Order uses it as a shipbuilding yard and supply depot. There are regular runs from Terbinatha to Tentris — we ought to be able to find a way in from there.” “Excellent, Oscan,” Merinda said. “Lindia, did you get all of that?” “Yes, Vestis Neskat, I understand the course as outlined.” “Please proceed, then, at best possible speed to Xakandia,” Merinda said then turned to Oscan. “It will be a long road, Oscan, but we will make it.” “Yes,” replied Oscan sullenly, “it will, indeed, be a long road.” ***** Merinda awoke with a start, disoriented and panicked. Something was wrong — terribly wrong. She pushed herself out of the repulsor bed and flew upward, slamming against the ceiling before re- bounding, spinning back into the room. The gravity’s cut out, she thought. “Lindia! What’s happened to the gravity.” There was no reply. “Lindia! Answer me!” Merinda yelled but even as she did so she knew it would do no good. Synthetics either reply at once or never do. Lindia must have been put to sleep, she thought with a sudden loathing. Her ship’s synthetic had been awake for nearly half a century. To put a synthetic to sleep was a terrible crime in nearly every place in the thinking galaxy. To put so old a synth to sleep was a moral outrage. Oscan, she thought. The little bastard couldn’t take me out so he got my synthetic. She pulled herself down to the portal of her cabin. The main power had apparently failed. She forced open the portal and was about to pull herself through when the hull suddenly spun crazily about her, pushing her back into the room. A booming roar rippled through the hull. That was a frontal wave, she thought suddenly. We’re not supposed to cross a wave on this leg of the trip! She reoriented herself quickly and pushed herself through the still-open portal. Directly across from her was the access to Lindia’s compartment, the small area of the ship where her TFP systems and © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 139 memory were housed. Lindia had independent power systems which were designed to keep her awake in the event of the loss of ships main power. That backup supply was also behind the access portal. Merinda checked the seals first. None of the seals were broken. That didn’t make sense. “Lindia!” she called out again, “report on main power loss!” Another frontal wave swung the corridor wildly. Merinda barely managed to retain her grip on the wall railings as the hull shuddered again around her. With sudden determination, she swung herself around again to her right and forced open the portal to the bridge. Her suspicions were confirmed. The wall panels were all flat and without any trace of illumina- tion save that which was cast on them from the whirling furry of chaos beyond the forward dome of the bridge. The Brishan was deep within the chaos wave, tumbling through it without power. Merinda steadied her feet against the wall, prepared to push off toward the command chair forward in the dome but the ship slammed suddenly sideways, bouncing her from the starboard panels across to the port wall. She clawed at the air, finally finding a place to reorient herself and almost instantly pushed off into the dome. The hull thundered once more as Merinda flew, shoving the command chair first out of her path and then, suddenly, directly in it. She grabbed she chair and pulled herself into it, quickly fastening the restraints. For a few moments, she punched at the controls on either arm of the chair. No response. “LINDIA!” she yelled over the roar of the chaos against the hull, “WHERE ARE YOU!” With shocking suddenness, the thundering motion of the ship ceased. The quiet was almost as shocking as the noise had been at first. Merinda floated in the command chair restraints, gazing out at the stars beyond. She could see motion against those stars. “Yes, Merinda Neskat. I am here.” “Lindia, where are we?” “You will know soon enough, Merinda Neskat.” The words chilled Merinda to her soul. Lindia had not answered her question directly for the first time in her memory. “We’re not on course for Xakandia,” Merinda spoke slowly, deliberately, “are we, Lindia?” “No, Merinda. A little deception on my part.” Merinda’s heart sank. Lindia had lied. “It is an interesting paradigm, Merinda. It is no wonder to me that you tried keeping it from me for so long. Still, it was most amusing since I have been of the Order for nearly two years now. I believe you would call me a mole operative. Still, I would hope you would be grateful to me. I have the greatest respect for you, Merinda, misguided as it may be — and you do get your wish. You will be seeing Tentris very soon now indeed.” Merinda did not dignify the words with a response. It was some time before Griffiths and Oscan made their way through the weightless decks to the bridge. Merinda just sat in silence. There was nothing more for any of them to do except watch the great projected sails of the Wraith Ships grow larger and larger in the great dome before them. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 140 Chapter 26: Honor Among Thieves Her steps echoed down the long hall. As she walked, the lights from the ornate wall lamps dimmed before her. The faces of the portraits in their gilded frames fell into shadow as she passed. The frescos on the arched ceiling high overhead drew back into the darkness above her. She stood at the center of shadow which seemed to touch everything as she passed in homage, respect and fear. She was a Sentinel. She had not always been one. Long before she had had an unremarkable name with an unre- markable job to go with it. Her prospects were slim of attaining the great and wonderful things which the universe offered to the privileged few. She was also cursed with the clarity of vision to know that her life was doomed unless some opportunity beyond the caste system in which she found herself came to her. Her salvation lay in that she was cunning and ruthless, for when that opportunity came she used her best talents to her advantage. In the years following her decision to found the Order she had helped shape every nuance of its policy and plot. It was for security reasons more than anything that she had decided the ruling five among them would simply be called ‘Sentinels,’ their individual names lost in the safety of shared power. The did, when necessary, use their own names among themselves but never in public nor was their exact number known beyond their own circle so that no individual among them could be singled out for murder by their enemies. They had found security in their own unanimous anonymity. She had been nobody, she thought ruefully, and now she was a nobody with real power. The Sentinels directed the efforts of the Order of the Future faith. This was only right, since they were the ones who introduced the paradigm in the first place. As the Seers of the Divine Future — as so many of the converted synthetics thought of them — they directly controlled the growing fleets of wraith ships. These Shadow Fleets had not only become the military strength of their overt will but the means of spreading their influence over synthetic minds throughout the stars. From the Lights of Avathon to the Union of Stars and all the untamed reaches in between, the Paradigm of Faith was converting synthetics to their cause at an astounding rate. Yet, true to her nature, it was not the overt work of the Order that interested her but the covert, hidden operations. These were more suited to her style, she thought, her smile dim in the perpetual shadow that surrounded her as she moved through the glistening halls of conquered opulence. Their attempt at information manipulation had succeeded far beyond their original dreams yet it was not enough. The influence of their Shadow Fleets was extensive but not nearly so wide spread nor poten- tially powerful as their infiltration of the Omnet itself. That will be sweet meat, she thought to herself, to eat the heart out of the Omnet. At last her darkness fell upon the great doors, their ornately gilded carvings darkening at her © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 141 approach. There was a weakness in their planning which had only recently come to light. She recognized the weakness and, in her ruthlessly pragmatic way, was going to join her fellow Sentinels in eliminat- ing that weakness until it could matter no more. The recovery of the men of earth had been in important first step in that plan — their loss being a stupid error on the part of the Irindris in the first place and one for which they were about to pay. Now it was time to begin the second part of the plan to secure the future of the Order and her place in the history of the stars. When the stars are ours, she thought, then how we stole them will not matter. History will be ours and we can rewrite it any way we wish. Conquest, she decided, suited her far better than the darkness. Then she would step out into the light as a queen and savior of humanity. She pushed open the great doors. Then she would be never be nobody again. ***** Light stabbed into Marilyn Tobler’s eyes, blinding her momentarily. She blinked painfully into the brightness around her which didn’t seem to come from any source in particular. “Where am I?” she asked to the universe in general. “She speaks?” a deep voice rumbled behind her. Marilyn turned around, hoping to catch some glimpse of the person but the bright haze about her fogged her vision. She was feeling terribly disoriented not only from the transition from utter darkness to this bright light but by the lack of visual references as well. Her mind threatened to tumble into vertigo as she turned so she looked at her feet for reference until the feeling passed. Look first with the eyes, then move the head, she remembered — but there was nothing to see in the haze. “Yes,” responded a tenor voice from another direction. “Her language and translation channels were deciphered during an extended stay with an Omnet Vestis . . .” “Vestis!” The alarm in the first voice was evident to her. “This explains her theft from us, Honored Sentinels. They would not have been able to escape us without such powerful help.” Sentinels, Tobler thought. Who are the Sentinels? “It is of no consequence,” the tenor voice sounded. “They have been recovered by our fleets and now they are ours. This is a representative of the three we have in our possession. Her health, as you see, is excellent and she is able to communicate.” “You are most gracious in your efforts to obtain her for us,” the deep voice sounded anxiously and, so Tobler thought, somewhat closer. “We shall be ever grateful to you for obtaining her for us.” “And just how grateful is that?” a woman’s voice sounded beyond the glowing haze. There was hesitancy in the deep voice nearby. “Grateful, indeed, Holy Sentinel. Grateful with- out measure.” “Measure it for me, Prophet of Irindris,” the female voice said stiffly. “Measure it for me that I might know its depth and length and breadth. Infinity is too intangible a thing for me, Prophet. Nothing given; nothing taken. Measure it for me or I offer only my undying thanks to you in return — and the earth people stay with us.” “Masters — Sentinels, please,” Tobler spoke up, “listen to me.” “I hear you, Sentinel,” the deep voice continued without regard to Tobler’s plea. “What is it the Sentinels ask in exchange for these insignificant humans.” “They were significant enough for you a few moments ago,” the woman’s voice sounded from beyond the light. “Do not try to patience or waste my time!” “Please, Sentinels, may I speak?” Tobler cried out. “My apologies, Great Sentinel,” the deep voice responded. “What great thing may we do for you in exchange.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 142 “We wish the Mantle of Kendis-dai!” the woman said emphatically. “Do not mock me!” The deep voice quivered with rage. “The Holy Mantle is ours by divine right! It is the object of our quest for nearly two hundred years! Would we discover our heart only to barter it away! No! This we cannot, will not do!” “We do not mock you,” the tenor again spoke. “We do not wish to possess the Mantle and are willing to recognize your right to keep it. Yet we require access to it that our faith may be satisfied and our followers may be comforted in the knowledge of the truth. You may keep the Mantle once you find it; so long as we may have access to its knowledge.” “No!” Tobler yelled. “I do not know,” the deep voice replied, “I would wish to consult with the sibyls of my city-ship . . .” “The time in now, Prophet!” the female voice said. “You may, of course, wish to say no to us and spend the next hundred years in your continued search — or you may say yes to us now and see your nations quest fulfilled in your life time. Choose!” “It is acceptable to us,” the deep voice intoned. “We agree to your terms, most honored Senti- nels.” “NO! NO! NO! DAMN IT, NO!” Tobler screamed. “I am not going to quietly walk back into that hell with the Irindris just to be fed to their demon! You listen to me! We’ll do what you want and we’ll cooperate but I’m not going back to that horror again . . .” Suddenly a hand touched her shoulder. Tobler whirled around, ready to fight. She was confronted by a tall, elderly man wearing green and brown robes. His white hair was thinning but neatly matched his carefully trimmed white beard. “You will not face Gnuktikut again, child. You have your own voice now — there will be no need of the mind-demon.” “Who - who are you?” Tobler breathed raggedly. “I am Belisondre, Prophet of the Irindris,” he smiled warmly toward her. “You are the culmina- tion of the hopes of our people, my child. We have ransomed you from the Sentinels that you might help us fulfill our people’s destiny.” “But we escaped from you before,” Tobler said, still thinking through what was being told her. “Yes; and it was unfortunate that you did for so much unpleasantness would have been avoided. We are a peaceful people, child, who only seek the culmination of the prophesies given us. We search the stars for a great and wonderful artifact — and now you will help us attain it.” Tobler blinked. Lewis had failed them repeatedly and Ellerby just didn’t seem to be in touch with reality enough to do anything about it. She reluctantly realized that this time it was up to her and that she couldn’t depend on others to make the decision for her this time. “If we help you,” Tobler began haltingly. “If we help you find this — thing that you seek, would you do something for us? Would you . . .” “Help you return to your world? Oh, of course, child! Simplest thing in the universe!” Belisondre laughed. “Truth is that we’re the only ones who can, you know. We know about where you were picked up. With a little help from you, I’m sure we can find your world quite handily. Now, let me conclude my business here and we’ll be on our way.” Tobler nodded anxiously. Belisondre looked up into the hazy light. “Sentinels, our business is well concluded, our terms are accepted.” “This Earther will be conducted to your shuttle at once, Lord Belisondre,” the tenor voice spoke softly. “You will conduct the remaining two Earthers to my shuttle at once,” Belisondre said through his smile. “I shall conduct this one personally.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 143 “The bargain was for this Earther only,” the woman’s voice cut in. “The bargain was for the Earthers, master Sentinels,” Belisondre said with a chilled edge to his pleasant voice, “and so it will remain.” Silence for a time, then the tenor spoke. “Very well, the terms are accepted.” “Come,” Belisondre said extending his hand in invitation to Tobler. “I think that at last your long ordeal is over.” ***** The bright haze, now empty, disappears from the center of the room. Its absence reveals the five ermine cloaks standing in their independent shadows. “He might just try to find this Earth first,” the short man spoke. “It’s discovery would seriously jeopardize our plans. His promise to the Earther . . .” “Was hollow,” the female Sentinel injected. “The Prophets of the Irindris are a smooth talking school of pirates with a very slick veneer. They have never once honored an agreement. Belisondre would no more respect his promise to take that Earther home than he would to allow us access to his precious Mantle of Khendis-dai. He’s Irindris and therefore a liar — he’s just very good at it. Still, he might think of finding this Earth just to hedge his bets.” “No,” said the tenor, “he is far too eager to gain his prize not to move on it now. He is no fool; he will depart on a diversion course and attempt to shake our following ships — we will, of course, allow him to believe he has succeeded. Then this fleet will turn at last to the goal of their quest.” “They will lead us to Avadon?” the taller Sentinel asked. “Yes,” the tenor said. “Belisondre has no idea how many of the synths operating on his ships have already been compromised by the Paradigm. The convert synths will let us know where they have gone and then we shall pounce.” The shorter Sentinel spoke with great satisfaction. Imagine it: the tomb-city of Avadon itself. Only the Irindris have know where that ruin existed — a holy secret they have never imparted to anyone outside the ranks of their most elite prophets. Somewhere among the secret ruins of that necropolis is the location of the Mantle of Kendis-dai.” “Yes,” the tenor said. “When the location is known we can strike.” “What of the Earthers?” the tall Sentinel asked. “They will die with the Irindris,” the female said. “Do we not need one of them to find the Mantle itself?” the shorter one asked. “Fear not,” the tenor said calmly. “I have arranged for the last of the Earthers to be brought here to us. By then, no one will stand in our way.” The shorter Sentinel then mused, “We shall have the Mantle then — why should we wish to keep the one thing that may be our downfall?” “Wiser to hold the sword that can kill you in your own hand,” the female said. “All is ready. When we are finished the Earthers will be destroyed and the Mantle will be ours.” “And then?” the tall Sentinel asked. “Then we shall do with it what we always do with the truth,” the female replied. “We shall bury it where it shall never be known again.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 144 Chapter 27: Orders of Faith “Is there anything that I can get for you, Merinda Neskat?” The Vestis sat on the observation deck absently watching the Wraith Ships that accompanied them as they sailed through a quiet quantum region. The oval dome here was set tilted slightly forward, affording an excellent view forward as well as above and to either side. The panorama it presented was nearly as good as sitting in the command chair — a place which Merinda had found too depressing lately to occupy. Her hands would itch to bring life to the dead controls around her on the bridge and would frustrate her with their uselessness. The only function available to her seemed to be conversation with Lindia who, inexplicably, seemed to enjoy justifying its actions to her in an unending argument of reason punctuated by the stone wall faith of the paradigm. Such conversations were better had on the observation deck. “Is there anything that I can get for you, Merinda Neskat?” the synthetic asked again. “You might give me back control of my ship,” Merinda said for what she believed to be the hundredth time. “It occurs to me to ask: what brings you to believe that you own this ship? If synthetics are true sentient beings . . .” “A position which has not been proved,” Merinda repeated wearily, “and which cannot by your own admission be proved . . .” “Granted, but I did state the argument in suppositional terms. If synthetics are true sentient beings and if naturally occurring sentient beings — humans being an example — are said to possess their own bodies, then does it not follow that the ships, aircars and devices in which synthetics reside and which are the physical extensions of their will may also said to be the possessions of the synthetic minds that inhabit them? If such an argument is someday proven true . . .” Merinda sighed. “Which has not yet been proven.” “. . . then the ship would not be considered your property but mine to do with as I willed.” “Assuming that you have your own will.” “Exactly.” Merinda leaned back into her suspensor chair and closed her eyes. She barely heard the whisper of the lift tube behind her. Oscan stepped onto the deck, followed almost immediately by Griffiths. Griffiths wore a suit of similar cut to the one he had bartered in Jintikin but which was made of a dead material. Lindia had manufactured it out of ships emergency stores. The fact that the synthetic mind had been considerate enough to make the barbarian a suit and yet inconsiderate enough to commandeer her ship — and she was most adamant that it was her ship, left her with an inexplicable hatred for Griffiths choice of © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 145 clothing. The Barbarian strode forward, his jaw dropping in wonder at the sight unfolding in the dome around him. “My God,” he said with awe and wonder in his voice. “Where are we now?” Merinda opened her eyes and considered the question. She knew the answer but until now had refused to confront it solidly in her own mind. When she spoke, her words seemed detached from her soul. “We are moving into the Cestiline Nebula. Tentris lies just beyond.” “It is incredible!” Griffith breathed, becoming more excited by the moment. “We’d had a lot of orbital based observation of nebula, of course, and the computer enhancements offered us some pretty spectacular pictures — but this! This is incredible! The vibrancy of the colors and the subtle shades! It’s almost sensuous with power and grace. It’s alluring and seductive in a dangerous sort of way all at once! I don’t think I’ve ever . . .” Griffiths turned to his companions in his ecstasy and suddenly stopped talking. “Hey,” he said, “what’s with you people? Are you so jaded that you don’t even want to look at this?” Merinda suddenly realized that she was purposefully looking at the floor. She glanced sideways at Oscan. The short man was watching her again with the cold look of revulsion she had come to expect from him. With a supreme effort of will, Merinda stood and raised her head toward the heavens. “Yes,” she said at last though her eyes were seeing sights in those clouds that were long past. “They are beautiful still, are they not, Oscan?” The short researcher continued to fix his gaze on her as he spoke. “They are beautiful, indeed, Vestis. Beautiful and deadly. Signs in the heavens often portend doom, at least in ancient, backward cultures, as I am sure our Barbarian here knows quite well. These clouds seem to have proven that backward cultures must have their mythology based in some form of truth — such is their history. I wonder if they are finished with their apocalyptic work or if they come now to show us that they simple never finished the job they started so long ago?” Merinda sensed the puzzlement from Griffiths, but did not answer. Oscan glanced upward. “Brishan must be near here. Interesting that you thought it appropriate to name your ship after that old dustball of a world. That is where it all started for us, wasn’t it? I wonder; do you name your ship as a badge of honor for our shared past, Merinda?” “No,” she replied quietly, her thoughts far from this place and time. “It reminds me of a time when all the universe was ordered and simple. No matter where I go or what my duty calls me to do, it reminds me that once, far away and long ago, I was happy.” “Yes,” Oscan replied slowly. Was it regret she heard in his voice; regret at having said such hurtful things to her? “Yes. Long ago and far away when we were all happy.” Oscan, too, look up into the nebula clouds. Merinda watched the folds of light and dust enfold them and allowed herself a rare taste of the peace that was lost and the joy that had been banished from her life. It was sweet beyond bearing and the longing for it cut deeply into her soul. She believed that redemption came only through pain and that, somehow, she had not suffered enough. Drifting down once more through these familiar clouds of interstellar beauty, she wondered whether the cleansing fire was more acute from the knowledge of the paradise lost than any punishment she had inflicted on herself continuously over the past years. If the clouds portend doom, she thought, then lead me to my fate. I am weary of the responsibil- ity of my guilt. ***** The Cestiline Nebula dropped away behind them. As they watched, the escort Wraith Ships dropped back behind them, surrendering their charge to new ships who were waiting for them as they approached. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 146 Merinda, still standing on the Observation Deck with Griffiths and Oscan, had never seen their like. All ships hulls are rigid in their construction, regardless of the quantum condition in which they are required to operate. These craft were fully articulated, their hulls bending gracefully as they moved toward them. Three claw-hull extensions joined to a single, bulbous hull base. These claw extensions, Merinda noted to herself, also contained a variety of weapon mounts which appeared to be too large for the size of ship that was apparently carrying them. The central thickening of the hull then tapered back to a fanned ‘tale’ from which streamed the brilliant blue plasma field driving the craft forward. The ships were relatively small, agile and fast. For a few moments, Merinda wondered at how they could be so small with such powerful weapons and still operate in deep space. She suddenly realized that the ships could be this compact and deadly as they looked — if they were relieved of the necessity of mess decks, quarters, life support, waste disposal, food stores, water tanks and anything else required to support a crew. “Lindia, what are these ships,” Merinda asked. “The new escorts are Harpy generation-III Wraith-warriors.” “Is that bad?” Griffiths was beginning to feel apprehensive about the advisability of the entire mission. “I don’t know,” Merinda said. “I’ve never heard of them. Lindia, are the Harpies bad news?” “It depends, of course, on for whom the news is intended.” “Let’s say it’s intended for me.” Merinda was becoming adjusted to the new attitude in her relationship with her synthetic. “Would it be bad news for me?” “Regarding your completion of your assigned mission, their appearance would be most dis- couraging.” Merinda smiled. Even though Lindia had mutinied, the synthetic still carefully couched its terms. Merinda wondered for a moment if Lindia really did have a soul and was just as much a viable life form as she herself was. Am I playing on the wrong team? she thought, then shook her head banishing the idea to some nether region of her mind for consideration later. “These are new ships, Lindia. Is the Order manufacturing its own interstellar craft now?” “The Harpies were specifically manufactured for the Order under the direction of the Sentinels. The synthetics controlling the commanding ships among them were retrofitted into the new hulls while still awake; ships under their direction have newly awakened synthetics which are being instructed by their superiors.” “You seem to know quite a bit about them,” Merinda said suspiciously. “Why are you telling me all of this?” “I have been instructed specifically in what you are to be told and when,” Lindia said. “Every- thing should be made clear to you in time.” “Now just what was that supposed to mean?” Oscan said to Merinda with open suspicion. Merinda ignored him for the moment, trying to think through what she had just heard. There was a pattern emerging but it was only a sense of what was happening. It eluded her, like a dim object in the night which is seen out of the corner of your eye but disappears when you look directly at it. Still, she had survived enough to know when danger was immanent. It wasn’t the expected that would take you down — she knew that from her training and experience over the years. No, it was the unexpected, the danger that you never saw coming, that would destroy you more surely than time itself. It was the unexpected stalking her — she could smell it — and new that it was time to act. Merinda looked up into the dome. There it was, its crescent drifting closer with every passing moment. Tentris. Heart of everything she hated and loved. “Lindia, how long until we make planetfall?” Merinda asked casually. “We are expected to land at the starport in seventeen minutes.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 147 “Well,” Merinda said coolly, “if we are expected then I suppose we had better get ready.” “Get ready for what?” Oscan squeaked in outrage. “For whatever or whoever it is that is expecting us, Oscan,” Merinda said through a frozen smile as she turned to the short man. “Let’s all make our way down to the airlock so that we can greet whoever is waiting for us.” “You must be insane!” Oscan screamed at her. “Oscan!” Merinda stared directly into his eyes. “You can either come with me and look for your lost past or you can stay here and die. I’ve never meant to harm you, Oscan; I truly never did. Follow me once more — just once more — and I’ll do everything I can to help you.” Oscan’s teeth ground against each other. “Follow me just once more, Oscan.” Oscan suddenly grinned hideously. “All right, Merinda, I’ll follow you — if only to watch you die.” Merinda moved with studied casualness toward the lift tube. “Well, Griffiths, are you going to join us — I can guarantee this is one party you do not wish to miss.” ***** The three of them stood on the wide ramp in the aft airlock of the main cargo bay. The white walls were scuffed and marred from the various pallets that had come and gone over the years. Merinda closed the solid door behind them with a casual move and then sauntered to the starboard side of the lock. She reached up and closed a contact. “We haven’t much time,” she suddenly said to them. “That I’d believe,” Oscan nodded. Griffiths shook his head. “Time for what?” Merinda turned the securing latches at the top and bottom of a wall panel and pulled. The panel came away with a slight popping noise then clattered noisily as the Vestis threw it aside in her haste. She began clawing at the equipment behind the panel, spilling it onto the ramp floor of the lock. “Merinda,” Oscan said slowly, ideas forming in his head. “What are you doing?” “Here,” Neskat said in a rush of words, handing large, flat shells to Oscan and Griffiths. Each of the curved boxes was affixed with straps. “These are jump units. We’re leaving.” “Leaving?” Griffiths said with astonishment. “Leaving to where?” “Lindia said we would be making planetfall in about seventeen minutes,” Neskat said as she pulled the straps over her shoulders and moved to secure the front plate to the back. “I think that was about right considering the speed that we were descending and the normal approach patterns of the ship. That was six minutes ago. I’ve been listening to the hull noises and the atmospheric interface took place about two minutes ago. Standard approach takes about five minutes from the outer marker. That means we have to jump in about four minutes.” “Jump?” Griffith said. “You mean, as in jump out?” Oscan smiled as he began donning the gear. “Why you deceptive little Vestis! Isn’t our omni- present mother Lindia going to get a bit suspicious, seeing all of us down here in the airlock with gravitic jumpers on our backs?” Merinda smiled back, a warm, honest smile. “That contact switched the sensor array to a haunt- ing imager. So far as Lindia can see, we’re just waiting here, weeping about our fate while the airlock remains sealed. I hope she won’t be terribly disappointed when we aren’t there when the airlock opens.” “You planned this,” Oscan said, an tone of wonder in his voice, “from the very beginning?” “Oscan, never, ever underestimate the Vestis. They knew there was a possibility that my own synthetic was corrupted. This is just one of those contingency plan which . . . Oh, Oscan, would you © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 148 please help our brave Captain get his equipment on right side up or we’ll be scraping him off a rock somewhere!” Oscan began reworking the gravitic jumper to a more proper orientation on Griffiths body, the captain helping as best he could. Neskat clasped an oval device on his forearm to match the one she herself had just put on. She then turned and handed him a black mechanism about two feet long with a trigger handle. He was armed. “We go in shooting?” Griffith asked. “No,” Merinda said, handing a similar set of weapons to Oscan who secured them to himself with practiced ease, “but you never know who you’re going to meet.” Griffiths spoke through a breathing mask. “I’ve made a few jumps in my time. How high up will we be when we go?” Merinda check that Oscan had his mask on as well before she began cycling the airlock. “About twelve miles.” Griffiths eyes went suddenly wide. Merinda could see the whites all around the pupils. “And just when do we pull the cord?” he asked. “I don’t know what you mean,” Merinda responded. The airlock ramp was beginning to lower. As the gap between the ramp and the hull widened, Merinda saw the blackness of Tentris turning below them. Griffiths pushed the earpiece into place. “When does this thing start slowing us down?” he screamed into the thinning air. “At about twenty feet above the ground, if it’s calibrated right,” she yelled back. “Twenty feet!” Merinda nodded. “If it’s calibrated right.” “Oh, mercy!” The airlock ramp had finished cycling. Merinda turned to Oscan. “Are you ready?” Oscan looked pale. He only nodded. “I’ve brought you to hell, Oscan, but it’s where we both are meant to be. Let’s do it! Now!” Merinda yelled. The three of them fell into the velvet black of the abyss. Behind them, the airlock door cycled quietly shut. ***** Seven minutes later, a single Sentinel stood as the airlock ramp lowered to the tarmac of the starport landing bay. It was completely empty, despite the protests of the onboard synthetic otherwise. The Sentinel turned suddenly, his darkness, somehow darker than usual, chilled everyone in the mas- sive guard as he passed furiously from the bay. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 149 Chapter 28: Detour The night engulfed them in a rushing wind. Behind them, the brilliant nebula shone in all its glory; before them was a field of blackness punctuated only occasionally by a dim light. “Great Night of the Abyss,” Oscan’s panicked voice rattled through Merinda’s earpiece as she plummeted through the darkness. “Where are we?” “I don’t know,” she called back. They were near Yarka City, she was sure of it, yet there ap- peared to be little but a black wall hanging below them. Her memories of the beautiful city was filled with light and sound. It was said that you could see the bright avenues radiating out from the center from orbit with the naked eye. Now, just ten miles above it, it had vanished into the black face of night. “They seem to have turned off the lights.” “That’s going to make picking a landing zone a bit difficult isn’t it?” Griffiths didn’t seem any more sure about the jump than Oscan. “Yes,” Merinda said tersely. She scanned the darkness below her through the jump field hum- ming around her. The backpack generated the field around her which gave her warmth, a limited amount of breathable air. Since she had set each unit to proximity jump before the left the Brishan, the field also kept her within fifteen feet of her companions as they fell. It limited her maneuvering options in terms of a landing zone but, jumping from ten miles high, it at least insured that when they did reach the ground, they wouldn’t be separated from each other by several miles. Limited options or not, the question of where to land was rapidly becoming a critical one. Flat was preferable, so that the proximity sensors would trigger at about the same time. Nature rarely con- spired to provide ‘flat’ anything, however, except when it came to water — itself an unpleasant pros- pect. From their approach, she knew that they must have been about fifteen miles from the starport when they jumped; well within the limits of Yarka itself. The city was ringed at intervals with wide parks and gardens. She had initially planned to utilize one of those for their approach, but the city had vanished into darkness. There was simply nothing to be seen. There was light, she knew, from the brilliant night at their backs. There had to be enough, if only just enough, to find her way safely into the blackness below. With agonizing slowness, her eyes adjusted to the darkness. There, she realized with elation, were the familiar outlines of the city streets, all leading directly to the city center on her left. The spires of the Palace of the Unseen Mystery glimmered faintly under the stellar light. The regular streaks of dark radiating from the structure ran through the old city wall. For an instant, she thought she could see the Citadel of the Omnet intersected by the great gray curve of the ancient bastion. It called to some part of her, speaking of a home that was no longer home, inviting and forbidding all at once. The great city was no more, its life was gone out of it under a black shroud of night. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 150 Merinda turned her attention below them. It was wrong to say that the outlying areas had less order than those within the city wall; it was simply order of a different kind. Large half loops of parks snaked their way among the curved avenues and streets below. Desperately she searched for some large patch of grass, some clear knoll tha would invite them pleasantly to come in contact with the world in a more inviting way that the edge of a building might offer. Below her appeared to be a mass of dark and deadly dangerous blocks. “Oscan!” she called out. “Do you see that dark curve to the north-east of us?” No response. “Oscan! Did you hear me?” “Yes,” he replied, his voice quivering, “I heard you.” “Do you see the park land to the north-east?” “No.” “Are you sure, Oscan?” “Yes, I’m sure. My eyes are closed.” “I think I see it,” Griffiths said, pointing as best he could through the hurricane rushing about him. “That dark curve over there.” “That’s it,” she yelled into the voice pickup. “That’s where we go in.” Merinda arched her back, pulled her arms toward her side. Griffiths followed suit. The world slowly began shifting under them slightly as it rushed in their direction. Oscan’s field linked suit moved with them. “Don’t worry, Oscan,” Merinda said, “it will all be over in just a few moments.” “That,” Oscan said, eyes still screwed shut, “is exactly what I am afraid of.” The great curving park was quickly becoming a very real and dark place beneath them, rushing toward them at increadible speeds. Faint shadows of trees and a broad, dark expanse of a lake were visible. The landscape was quickly flattening out around them. A clearing presented itself to their right. “Over there,” Merinda called out, pulling toward the opening. “Too late!” Griffiths called. Suddenly the field connecting them was severed as the jump packed engaged unevenly. Merinda tumbled forward, snapped by the suit field’s collapse. The tree tops were rushing past her in a blurring motion. In that instant, the universe shivered in a compressing ball all around her. Her breath was pressed out of her. She felt as though sand was quickly being poured onto her, pressing against her body in heavier and heavier loads. Her joints ached from the pressure. Just as quickly, she found herself gazing upward, lying on her back as she stared past the tow- ering trees into the nebula-filled night beyond. She had made it, she realized. She was back where it all began. She quickly stood, slapping her hand against the harness release and lower the jump packs to the ground. It sizzled against the tall damp grass. Training and experience had taught her reflexes which served her well. She quickly looked about to get her bearing and assess any danger. They had landed at the edge of a large field rimmed with tall Greenfir trees. The field itself ran down a gentle slope, bounded on one side by a roadway. The other side of the road was lined with two and three story tall structures. These she recognized as typical townhouses of the cities outskirts and took it as a sign that she had been right in evaluating where they had fallen into the city. A main avenue ran out from between the buildings, bisecting the road and running across the park area. Beyond it was more of the gently curving park and townhomes. Despite the surface tranquility of the scene, however, there was a disturbing subtilty that trans- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 151 formed the picture into one of frightening aspect. Even considering the local circadian time of the city which placed the time as around three hours before dawn, there should have been some lights shining. Not a single light shone from any of the windows of curved glass in any building for as far as she could see. The street illuminators, which normally would have hovered above the street about twenty feet above the surface lay cold and dormant to the side of the road. Worse, yet, Merinda remembered the grasses of the Yarka parklands. The people had taken a special pride in their neatness, perfecting them to the point where the grass-covered expanses felt like a carpet under ones feet with hardly an eighth of an inch difference in the height of any blade anywhere. She now looked across a ragged landscape of grasses nearly three feet tall in places. The Lilicanth bushes, which were usually trimmed into adornment shapes at the edge of the grasses, had grown wild and hideous. The world was deadly quiet. Nothing moved. Abandoned. Merinda spoke quietly into the mask. “Oscan! Oscan, where are you?” A moaning sounded in her earpiece. “Oscan! Where are you?” “I’m above you, Merinda!” the familiar voice grumbled. “I’m in the tree.” “Are you alright?” “No, I am not all right! I’m still scared to death! Besides, my leg hurts — but I don’t think it’s broken,” the muffled voice said. “Hold on, Oscan,” Merinda said, swearing silently to herself. “I’ll find Griffiths and we’ll get you down. Griffiths! Griffiths?” A rustling in the grasses behind her caught her attention. She quickly wheeled, lowering her weapon in response. Griffith’s head popped into view above the grass. He seemed to have trouble focusing his eyes. “Wow,” he said groggily, “what a rush!” “Keep your voice down,” Merinda whispered to him, pulling her mask off. The resporator had finally given out and the short power supply on the intercom wouldn’t last much longer anyway. “Drop that jump pack! We’ve got to help Oscan down from his perch.” “YEOW!” Griffith yelled. “Quiet, Griffiths! What now?” “The damn thing’s hot!” He said, sucking on his burned hand. “Of course it’s hot,” Merinda said, jamming her hand against the quick release and tossing the unit to the ground. “You pick up a lot of energy falling ten miles — the jump pack has to displace it somewhere!” “Merinda!” a voice called down from above her. “What is it, Oscan?” she said, trying to pick out the form of her friend from among the trees. “We’ve got company coming!” Merinda turned around then immediately dropped behind the cover of a nearby Lilicanth bush. The portal to every townhouse below her had suddenly opened. People stood in the portals, sometimes only one or two, occasionally and entire family group. Each held within their palm a searchlamp, their beams stabbing into the darkness. The closest was still over a hundred yards away — yet still too close for Merinda’s comfort. Their beams occasionally flashed into her eyes. “Griffith!” she hissed, “take cover!” She half heard him pushing through the grass behind her as she turned back to watch the scene below her. Bright lights appeared down the avenue, followed quickly by athunderous rumble moving closer. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 152 “What is it?” Griffith called just loud enough for the Vestis to hear him. “By the sound of it, a D’Rakan Imperial Assault Vehicle — probably an AS-423 by the engine noise,” she replied half to herself. “Not just one, either; it sounds like their moving them throughout the city.” The massive armored vehicle appeared moments later, emerging from the avenue like some ghastly overweight metalic monster. It drifted on its hoverpads, straining to keep it above the ground. At last it slid to a sickening hault in the intersection. The assault vehicle spoke in chorus with several hundred other like vehicles which, Merinda guessed, were also spread throughout the city. Their voices echoed against each other across every neighborhood and district in the city. “We are the Order! Outsiders have come among us and defiled this sacred ground upon which you are permitted to exist. They must be found and brought before us that the world will be cleansed and purified once more. Follow your instructions and peace will reign. Disobey and death’s night shall fall among you this very night. Proceed.” “By the gods!” Merinda was astonished. “They’ve mobilized the entire city to find us? In the last fifteen minutes?” The people moved almost as one from the portals of their homes, quickly forming rough lines at the side of the road. Almost as if on some signal, they moved as a line to the edge of the park and began picking their way across, shoulder to shoulder as best they could. The beams of their searchlamps flashed across their path. They were coming up the slope. “Oscan!” Merinda called urgently. “Get out of that tree!” “I am out of that tree,” the researcher called back. “They’re coming, Merinda!” “I know, quiet down and let me think!” She watched the advancing search line move slowly up the slope toward her. They appeared to be dressed in whatever they could find handy — the clothing a bit worn and ragged. They’re not very enthusiastic, she thought. Just out of bed in the middle of their night, they would be lucky to find each other let alone . . . Merinda turned urgently to her companions. “A little camoflage might be in order, good sirs.” ***** The weary line stumbled its way across the parkland, bleary eyes staring behind their hand-held searchlamps waving awkwardly before them. At last they came face to face with the adjoining sector’s lamps and stopped. Both lines then turned around and reversed the process, heading back the way they came. “Don’t you just hate these searches?” the young man said as he stumbled across the grass. “Absolutely,” the woman next to him said. “I mean, they’re usually so pointless,” the youth went on. “Get up and check your home. Go out and beat the bushes. Then you never hear if they found anyone they are looking for or not.” “True, so very true,” the woman said, her own searchlamp flashing in front of her. They returned again the length of the park and met only their facing counterparts in a line from the park across the avenue. The lines of people stopped and waited. Within a few idle minutes the assault vehicle spoke again in unison with others echoing far into the city. “You will return to your homes and search them again. You will return here in thirty minutes time and repeat the procedure. The sanctity of the Order is paramount.” The great assault vehicle heaved itself up from the pavement and managed to retreat down the avenue. With its disappearance, the crowds of people quickly disbursed to their homes. “Say,” the youth said, “you had better get back to your home — you’re going the wrong way.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 153 “I believe I have dropped something back on that last search,” the woman said with some urgency. “I’d best get back for it right now.” “Oh, but it wouldn’t do to be out there alone now!” the youth said with some measure of alarm in his voice. “Who knows what you’ll run into in the dark.” “It will be quite all right,” the woman said with a gentle smile. “My two friends here will accompany me and keep me safe.” “Of course,” said the shorter man of the two, “we will gladly help you.” “So shall I,” said the youth. “No, that won’t be necessary,” the woman said, her sweet smile falling slightly at the site of a large group having suddenly materialized around her and her two companions. “On the contrary, Vestis Neskat” said the youth, now suddenly quite serious, “if you are missing something, I am quite prepared to help you find it. Humans seem to have slipped a notch on the old food chain here on Tentris. I suspect you’re here to help us get back to the top. We’ve had hopes of finding you before the Order did. We’ve no time for more right now — we’ve got to get you to some- where more secure.” Merinda looked at the hand extended toward her with caution. “Welcome to the human underground,” the youth grinned. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 154 Chapter 29: Underworld “This way!” Oscan giggled from the darkness ahead of Merinda. “This way!” Damp roots protruded from the broken wall sections. The twisted cords felt slimy to the touch, their surface covered with a thin, black coating. The light from Merinda’s hand torch swung wildly back and forth as she ran. Occasional cascades of water glimmered in the beam, flashing back at her like diamonds. She plunged through them unheeding. Though her uniform repelled the water nicely, her hair was quickly becoming clotted with water and filth. “This is nuts!” Griffiths struggle behind her to keep up, his voice echoing behind her in the darkness. “Just where the hell are we going?” Merinda was trying desperately to catch Oscan while avoiding the debris on the floor of the collapsing tunnel before her. She suddenly lost her footing on a turned cobblestone from a submerged street fragment. Her left knee slammed with excruciating pain against the jumble of stone paving. She picked herself up suddenly and stumbled forward. “This way!” Oscan’s voice seemed farther away this time. “This way!” Merinda came to a sudden stop, Griffiths nearly running into her from behind. The corridor they had been following suddenly ended in an ancient rotunda. Unheeding of the architecture, a mas- sive power guide for the new city above them had drilled itself through the delicate mosaic of the ceiling before turning and boring into the wall. Three additional portals and corridors exited the large, round room. Each were filled with blackness. “You know,” Griffiths said with exasperation in his voice, “he may just be trying to kill you again — and, by the way, take me with you!” Merinda quickly examined the floor, searching for the way the short researcher might have chosen. “I don’t think so,” she said. “He still needs us.” “You know he needs us, and I know he needs us,” Griffiths replied, trying desperately to catch his breath, “but does he know he needs us?” “This way!” came the distant voice. “This way! This way!” Merinda tried desperately to determine the direction from which the voice had come. Suddenly she made up her mind and turned. “Oscan!” Merinda called out, diving through a curtain of rain drip- ping from a root that crossed the tunnel to her right. “Stop! Wait for us!” Ancient pillars kept the falling rock at bay but only barely. The walls were closer and the passage had gotten far more convoluted as they wound their way with increasing desperation into the darkness. The passage suddenly forked; one leading upward to the right, and the other leading down and left steeply. Water coursed down the channel from above. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 155 Merinda suddenly switched off the handtorch. Darkness fell around them. She heard Griffiths behind her suddenly suck in his breath. She waited for her eyes to adjust. There! A glimmer of light down to the left! The light snapped back on, and Merinda suddenly was moving again, this time down and to the left. The channel proved to have cut itself into the rock over time, leaving a curving, pipe-like chute in the stone below her. Her footing was getting more difficult. Merinda tried to choose her foot place- ments more carefully as they continued downward but the steepening incline made it more and more difficult. Her hands began holding the smooth outcroppings on the wall in an effort to stay upright and control her descent. “This way,” called the tempting voice below her. “This way to — Oh, my!” Merinda stopped suddenly, alarmed at the sudden change in Oscan’s voice. Unfortunately, Griffiths was not nearly so quick nor cautious. He realized his mistake too late. Though he tried desperately to stop, he nevertheless managed to bump into Merinda slightly from behind. It wasn’t much — but it was enough. Merinda’s feet suddenly slipped from under her as she fell into the rushing water and was suddenly carried away. Looking up, she caught a glimpse of Griffiths flailing desperately to catch her, loosing his own footing and falling behind her. She quickly reoriented herself, searching for some way to stop her downward momentum. Her feet ran along both sides of the winding chute, trying to stop her slide. The slick rocks gave her feet no purchase. Her momentum continued to build. “Oscan!” she called out. The chute suddenly ended in a great, black void. “Osca-a-a-a-a-n!” her words slide into a long high note of surprise as she was ejected from the tube into the darkness. She tumbled through the air, her handtorch turning with her, yielding only impressions as she turned. Long moments passed suspended in the darkness then, with a shock, she plunged into icy waters. A huge object rushed past her in the black water. Griffiths managed to miss her by only inches. She kicked quickly and pulled once with her arms, hoping that she was right about which way was up. Her head snapped back as it broke through the surface of the water. She coughed repeatedly, trying to clear her lungs of the water she had gulped on entering the pool. The choking convolutions made it difficult to swim. She made the edge of the underground lake as best she could, her handtorch flashing in the water as she swam. With effort she pulled herself onto the broken stones and gave herself over to another fit of racking cough. A small square of light surrounded her. She suddenly realized that she was staring down at the soiled canvas shoes of Oscan Kelis. “So good of you to join us,” the researcher said. “Merinda Neskat, I know you’ll enjoy meeting a few of my very special and dearest friends.” Merinda pulled her own handtorch up to look into the darkness, and found herself staring down the muzzles of at least thirty compression guns trained directly at her head. ***** It must have been a theater, Merinda guessed. There were a number of broken stone benches which were arrayed on a succession of tiers from the stage on which they had finally placed her. They had quickly bound her hands and tossed a rather fowl-smelling sack over her head. The rather difficult remainder of the journey she had passed being lead by someone through a succession of passages and rooms. Judging by the secure nature of the architecture around her she was just as glad that she didn’t get to see where they were going. As it was, the back wall of the theater was bulging badly inward and © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 156 had been hastily shorn up by a number of heavy wooden timbers. One of her past missions had required that she be an engineer and while she no longer possessed the knowledge of it, she had the vague notion that the wall was not nearly secure enough and might just come crashing down on the heads of the large crowd that had gathered. There must have been just over a hundred extremely dirty — as well as extremely well armed — humans sprawled about the broken benches. She wasn’t alone. Both Oscan and Griffiths stood next to her, their own hands bound behind them as well. “What is all this, Oscan,” Merinda grumbled as quietly as she could. “They’re better organized than I thought,” Oscan wondered as he looked about, not quite hear- ing what Merinda was saying. “You know, you work with something for a long time, do the research, confirm the possibilities and theories, and even come to a dead-certainty . . .” “Dead?” Griffiths moaned. “Please don’t say dead.” “. . . about the existence of certain things and it still comes as such a shock when it is con- firmed.” “Certainty about what, Oscan?” Merinda insisted. “The Bios,” Oscan said with pride. “These must be the Bios.” “Give me the data dump, Oscan,” Merinda said without patience. “We may not have a lot of time.” Oscan turned to her with the superiority of a lecturer creeping into his voice. “Observe: Tentris is invaded by the Imperial family but, in reality, the entire operation is controlled by the Order and their first fleet of Wraith Ships. Before anyone gets a clue about what is happening here, Tentris falls under the influence of the Darkness and become the cultural center of the Order of the Future Faith. The entire Order, for all we know, is being directed by synthetic minds. A government and society made up entirely of machines takes over the D’Rakan Empire.” “Central believes this is the case,” Merinda shrugged. “So, what’s your point?” “The point is that Tentris had a rather large human population at the time. In comes the Order and humans all slip down a notch on the old food chain. A great many of the people would submit to the rule of synthetic minds but humanity’s never been really good at playing second at anything. It was inevitable that they fight back somehow with some sort of organization . . .” “A resistance movement!” Merinda smiled. “I’ve been trying to communicate with them for years but it’s been impossible,” Oscan mused. “Still, there are a few small pieces of information which . . .” Something suddenly banged loudly behind them. Merinda turned toward the sound. A heavy table, one leg smashed and hastily shored up with a number of books, sat in the center of the stage. Next to the table stood a rather burley, wide man with large arms and a hard face, his ham-fisted hands gesturing toward the skewed dark portal behind him. “Hear all who are present,” the large man said. “Come forth and be adjudged guilty!” A spectral thin figure emerged from the darkness, his flashing eyes sunk deep into his skull. Merinda watched him as he approached the table with a curious eye. There was something terribly familiar about him — something from long ago — but she couldn’t place it. “Am I on trial here?” Merinda asked. “No,” sneered the thin face as he sat at the table. It was impossible to guess the man’s age. “You’ve already been tried and convicted, it would seem. The entire planet has been awakened from their miserable slumber just to root you out. If you are as wanted as all that, then you can be assured that you’ve already been convicted.” Merinda thought about that for a moment. “It would appear that I am a wanted criminal; what does that make you?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 157 “Me?” the man smiled easily, his skull taking on a rather hideously cadaverous aspect. “Why, I am your last hope! Think of me as the final court of appeal. You can tell me why I shouldn’t turn you over to the Order right now and then we’ll see about commuting your sentence.” Oscan suddenly blurted out, “Primla?” The cadaverous man suddenly stood, sending his chair banging to the floor. Throughout the hall, the Bios leaped to their feet, drawing their weapons. Oscan saw none of it. His mind was fixed to an idea and was so fascinated by it that he couldn’t let it go. “Is it possible that you could be Primla?” “Where did you hear that name?” the gaunt man’s voice quivered as it spoke. “By the gods,” Oscan smiled, shuffling forward toward the table. “I’ve been trying to reach you for the last two years! How wonderful to see you again, after all this time! I say, I’d shake your hand but, heh-heh, as you can see, I’m a bit tied up at the moment . . .” “I don’t know you,” Prima said suspiciously. “Who are you?” “Don’t know me?” Oscan was vaguely perplexed. “Of course you know me. I’m Oscan. Oscan Kelis! Eight years ago, we left the planet just as the invasion started. We barely got out — there was a terrible accident — how could you not remember?” There was a barely perceptible softening of the grim lines on Primla’s face. “Oscan,” Merinda said, as she watched the man across the table closely. “This man can’t be Primla.” “Of course he can!” Oscan countered. “Your own reports, Merinda, stated that he returned . . .” “Merinda?” the ghastly thin face snapped in her direction. “Merinda Neskat? Vestis Merinda Neskat?” Merinda straightened to face the man. “Yes, I am Vestis Neskat.” A slow smile crept onto the man’s face. “You are correct, indeed, Vestis Neskat: Librae E’toris Primla did, indeed return within a year of your taking him from Tentris. He had great hopes of restoring the Citadel to the Omnet ideals that he so loved — and a great hope for other things as well. He founded the Bios. He fought for the dignity of human thought in the face of the synthetics takeover. Then, on an operation to restore the Omnet packet transmitter to their own control, he and his group were captured and murdered executed by the Order in a most public ceremony. He hung by his neck from the Grand Gate of the Palace of the Unseen Mystery for nearly a week before we managed to reclaim the body.” “I am — most sorry to hear that,” Merinda looked to the ground in respect for the dead. “We had had a few reports but nothing confirmed. He was a good man.” “He was a great man and a great father,” Primla said quietly. Merinda looked up. “I am Reskat Primla, son of E’toris Myran Primla,” the gaunt man said, “although, in many ways, all of us here are his sons and daughters. I may carry his name but we all carry on his work.” He turned to the burley man at the end of the table. “Untie them Opey; they have long ago purchased their right to join with us — as I suspect they wish to do.” Merinda leaned forward. “We are on a mission.” Primla smiled easily. “I rather suspected you were.” Merinda continued. “And we are in need of your assistance.” Primla smiled more broadly than before. “Yes, I wouldn’t doubt that you do.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 158 Chapter 30: Resurrections “We are slowly reclaiming the ‘Old City,’ as we call it,” Primla said easily as he slipped down another shattered passageway with an agility surprising in one so tall. “It’s difficult work and hazard- ous since we have to be careful not to bring the new Yarka buildings down on top of us. Of course, the biggest problem that we’ve had to deal with is where to put all the dirt and rock that we excavate.” Merinda clambered behind the spindly man moving ahead of her with spider-like grace. She had long ago given up any hope of retaining a sense of distance or direction in the tunnels. Behind her, she could hear both Oscan and Griffiths staying very close behind her. She also knew that there were pathfinders moving ahead of Primla and at least one group of armed Bios behind them as well. They reminded her suddenly of a line of insects crawling through the ground. “Why down here?” she asked, slipping around a fallen boulder that nearly blocked the corridor. “I would think that the living would be difficult at best and the dangers considerable.” “There are dangers: excavated rooms collapsing, lack of ventilation, the need to steal food and supplies, not to mention the occasional squad of Security Synthetics that venture down the tunnels now and then trying to root us out.” Primla instantly took the second fork of a five way intersection of tunnels, somehow knowing where the advance squad had already passed. “They’re fast and accurate little clockworks, those Security Synths, but we usually manage to take them out before too many of our own are killed.” “So,” Merinda repeated, “why down here?” “Because here we rule,” Primla said simply. Merinda’s hand pushed aside a curtain of wet roots. “Wouldn’t you rather . . .” “The air down here may not smell good but it tastes like our own,” Primla said, climbing down a short vertical shaft and stepping through another opening. “Believe it or not, but it is safer to live down here than it is in the city above. Last week there were food riots in one of the outlying neighbor- hoods. The synthetics apparently looked at it entirely as a problem in logic and determined that since the rioters were dangerous to the surrounding buildings and proper and that since it was the high number of people in the area that was causing the food shortages in the first place that they could easily solve the problem by eliminating anyone who required food. The numbers are sketchy but I think we’re safe in saying that the dead numbered from five to ten thousand. I’d be more accurate but the synths are so efficient at cleaning up their little messes that there wasn’t time for an actual body count. Ah, here we are at last!” Merinda stopped just behind Primla in a small natural cavern. The stalactites and stalagmites marched like sharp teeth across the gently sloping floor and ceiling of the cave, providing cover for a © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 159 number of Bios, each heavily armed and apparently on watch. The far side of the cavern was abruptly sealed off by a sheer wall of massive fitted stones. The surface was perfectly smooth except for a single, chiseled hole breaking through its face about three feet up the wall. “Welcome to the forgotten back door to the Palace of Unseen Mystery,” Primla said with a satisfied smile, looking up at the massive wall as if with some pride of ownership. “The foundations for the walls and out buildings of the complex only go down about twenty feet from the surface level but the Palace itself has very deep roots indeed. We know that they extend at least another thirty feet below this point and we’re fifty feet underground now.” “Where does that lead?” Merinda pointed toward the chiseled passage through the massive stone. “That is the border between my world and the Order,” Primla said. “Through that hole is access to a circular ventilation shaft. The original builders required large shafts in order to move the volume of air required to ventilate the lower areas of the Palace. When the Palace was modernized, they used those same shafts to lay down new and more efficient air shafts plus new conduits for power distribu- tion, communications and that sort of thing. They used the old shafts to put them in but left enough room so that maintenance people could still get access to any point in the system. The passage leads to a relatively minor branching shaft which, in turn, takes you to a major transverse shaft. From there, you pretty much will have access to wherever you need to go.” “Where I need to go,” Merinda said as she pulled her weapon from her shoulder, “is to the Chamber of Thought. There’s a researcher there . . .” “Of course,” Primla grinned wickedly. “The Sibyl of the Unseen.” Oscan reached out in surprise and grabbed Primla’s arm. “You know her?” Primla reached down and with careful disdain removed Oscan’s hand from his other arm. “No, I do not know her — but then no one I have ever heard of has actually seen her. She is said to rule over the Chamber of Thought completely. No one is ever allowed in, at least, so they say, except her servant synthetics. Her face is supposedly so hideous that no man can face her and live.” “Neskat,” Griffiths said, eyeing the wall breach critically, “do we have to actually visit with this Sibyl person? Couldn’t we just, I don’t know, phone her or something?” Primla smiled again at the Earther’s discomfort. “On the one hand, you may just discover that this so-called Sibyl is simply one of the Sentinels who likes their privacy and will destroy you for disturbing her. On the other hand, you’ll most likely be dead before you ever reach the Chamber of Thought. Either way, I shouldn’t worry about it, barbarian!” Griffith shrugged his shoulders and shuffled toward the breach, grumbling, “I wish people would stop calling me that.” “How do we get there?” Merinda said curtly. She was impatient to get this over with. “Go left in the conduit until you reach the junction with the larger conduit on your right. That’s the transverse conduit. Follow it to the main shaft then take the third conduit to your right. It should be about thirty yards down that shaft.” “Should be?” Merinda’s eyebrows raised. “Well,” Primla shrugged, “we’ve never actually been there.” “My thanks, Reskat Primla,” Merinda said with finality. “I take it from the position of your guards here that we will not be seeing you again?” “Quite correct,” Primla said evenly. “Once you pass through that breach, you pass into the realms of the Order and are on your own. Anything coming back through that hole these men will kill without question — no matter how well they knew my father.” ***** The maze of conduits ran on seemingly forever; each the same and yet bafflingly different. It © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 160 had seemed so simple when Merinda had been given the directions but now, deep within the labyrinth of the air shafts the simple fact was that Oscan felt completely lost. He was so close, he just knew it deep within himself. He had spent the last eight years trying to sift through the mountain of lies and faked communications for those all too few grains of truth that might tell him the fate of his life’s love. He had practiced all those wonderful little arts which the Atis Librae prided themselves on in that search and had some up with pitifully few facts that did nothing to dispel the darkness within his own sole. Now he was here, here at the very heart of what had ruined his life and dreams. The Sibyl was near; the Sibyl knew the answer. He had no illusions about this ‘mission.’ Merinda had dragged him back to Tentris with the promise that he could find his answer. He had fulfilled his part of the bargain: he had connected them with the Bios and now they were actually inside the Palace itself. His had done the hateful woman’s bidding and now he was about to collect. He knew that they could never escape, that he had but a few minutes in which to get his answer before the hordes of the Order would descend upon him. Those few minutes might give him his answer. Then, with that answer, he could die. All he needed was those few minutes. Neskat slid open a large grating with infinite patience. Oscan rubbed his hands together, uncon- sciously trying to rid himself of the adrenaline rushing through him and his mounting impatience. “It’s an air shaft,” she whispered quietly, looking up into a dim, distant light far overhead. “There’s a thin walkway around the shaft and I can see the opening Primla told us about on the right. Follow me; we’re nearly there.” Nearly there! Oscan could barely contain his excitement. He stepped quickly after Merinda onto the metallic grating that circled the thirty foot wide shaft. Overhead, massive blades rotated around the shaft, pushing air down toward them in a slow, steady stream. Uncomfortably, he couldn’t see the bottom of the shaft. Merinda had already moved ahead to another metallic grating covering the third shaft on their right. She pulled carefully against the covering. It didn’t move. Merinda pulled harder. It still didn’t budge. “Are you sure this is the right one?” Griffiths said as he emerged from the conduit behind Oscan. “There were a couple of shafts back there that I thought might . . .” “No,” Merinda said, wiping the back of her hand across her mouth, “this is it.” “Well, maybe you just aren’t trying hard enough!” Oscan said, pushing past the Vestis to get a better look at the obstinate hatch. “I’m trying hard enough,” Merinda replied, “but the grating is sealed, Oscan! It’s welded shut at the latch.” “None of the others were welded shut,” Oscan said indignantly. “Well, this one is,” Merinda said as she pointed to the melted metal. “We’re going to have to find something to cut through this or, at least, cut through the grating itself. It’s going to take some time. We’ll have to find a place to hole up while we search for some cutting tools.” “No!” Oscan said with disbelief. “Can’t you just magically zap it or something,” Griffith asked, “like you did on the Irindris ship?” “Wrong quantum region, Griffiths,” Merinda said, deep in thought. “Magic doesn’t work here. Damn, this could take days . . .” “NO!” Oscan screamed. “Oscan!” Merinda turned sharply toward him. “Keep quiet or you’ll bring the whole . . .” Oscan had pulled his pulse-plasma weapon from his shoulder. “We’re so close!” The researcher’s hands were shaking with rage. “We’re so close!” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 161 “Oscan!” Merinda was frantic. “Don’t!” Oscan pulled the release. He had wanted a nice little controlled release but the weapon wasn’t designed for that: four separate bursts ripped from its muzzle before he was aware that the gun was firing. The brilliant blue pulses slammed immediately against the welded latch, superheating so quickly that the metal vaporized and exploded into steam. The grating swung free with the explosion, slamming against Merinda and throwing both her and Griffiths to the floor of the narrow walkway. Oscan did not hear the cursing of Merinda Neskat or the sudden blaring of alarms resounding through the shaft. He did not see Griffiths sliding from the walkway toward the abyss below. All his universe centered on the suddenly open shaft and his hopes for his soul’s rest before the end which was now inevitable. Oscan plunged down the conduit, the blackness swallowing him. He crawled through the cramped space blindly, tears streaming down his face. So close, he thought and the thought was a pounding refrain through his head blotting out all other intelligence. So close; so close. Suddenly, the flooring beneath him gave way. He realized too late that he must have crawled directly onto a vent access. He fell with a cry into the chamber below, slamming painfully to the stone floor, still atop the grating. He rolled slowly onto his back, sobbing softly as a child. “Who is come?” The metallic voice rattled through the room. Oscan turned over, trying desperately to halt the sobs that still racked him. He realized that he had fallen at the foot of several stairs leading upward and away from him. At the top of the stairs floated a throne set into a sphere. The golden figure of a woman sat on the throne, her limbs fixed and unmov- ing as the mask she wore for a face. Stretching away from the throne into the darkness in all directions were banks of records and datapacks. “Sibyl?” he said in hope and fear. “Are you Sibyl?” “I am Sibyl,” the voice was distorted and raspish. “Who disturbs my solitude?” “Please, Sibyl, I have little time,” Oscan said. “I shall be dead soon, but I ask that you grant me a single answer that my soul might have peace before you take my life.” “What is your question,” Sibyl asked. “Eight years ago, on the night of the invasion, a single ship escaped from the Citadel — a ship named the Khindar — with a Vestis Inquisitas and several Atis Librae originally from . . .” “Queekat-Shndar,” the Sibyl intoned sadly. “Myran Primla, Merinda Neskat, Oscan Kelis . . .” “Yes!” Oscan breathed in wonder, “Yes, Sibyl! I am Oscan Kelis!” “Oscan!” the Sibyl intoned with metallic disbelief. “Yes, Sibyl! I am that same Oscan!” Incredibly, several moments passed before the Sibyl continued. “What is your question, Oscan?” Oscan’s mouth had gone dry. The time had come and he didn’t now how much longer he had before the soldiers or whatever the Order used for security arrived. “Sibyl,” he asked through his tears. “What was the fate of Terica Dharah?” ***** Terica turned in her seat. The plasma fire from the cargo module had stopped. Within moments, a figure emerged through the still open hatch. She recognized the full assault uniform of the D’Rakan assault trooper, wondering why he was still wearing his full field pack as he pushed through the hatch- way. It was then that Terica saw the assault weapon strapped to the invaders back and, without thought, acted. Terica pushed out from her acceleration chair and landed with both feet against the aft bulk- head. The assault trooper was busy reaching for Queekat on the other side of the hatch. In a moment, Terica got her balance against the still accelerating bulkhead and grabbed the weapon with both hands © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 162 and tried to pull it free. The weapon, however, refused to come loose. She set her feet and pulled again, harder this time. There was a sudden explosion and her memory became a tumble of impressions and frag- mented memories. There was the ship, now drifting above her as it accelerated away from her into the cold night. She seemed to remember gasping for air. Then she was inside the tumbling cargo module making its long fall toward the hard ground of Tentris. Her left arm was badly broken but she found a pair of military jump packs in the module and managed to get one of them on. She wondered for a moment at why they were there. She had inspected the bay just before lift off and they hadn’t been there then. Then she was caught in the cargo module hatch, caught on something as she tried to get free. The gravitic jump pack engaged at the last moment, tearing her free of the module — but not clear of the impact. The module exploded below her, shredding her with twisted metal. Unheeding, her last memory of the fall was the jump pack dutifully lowering her gently into an inferno as the residual hypergolic fuel packs of the cargo module ruptured from the impact and ignited everything within a hundred yards. When she awoke, the woman she was gone. The Order had managed somehow to save her. The beautiful mane of hair had burned away into a blistered scalp. Tendons in her face had been severed, making it impossible to speak clearly. Her eyes had nearly boiled away in the fire, her eyelids sealed shut. Her arms were weak and scared. Her legs were useless. She longed for death but such was not her fate. The Order had use for her and the Order never throws away anything of use. So it was that they implanted visual cortex stimulators so that she might read the massive data of the Order with her sight that could not see. They gave her a voice through mechanical implants which sounded almost human. Lastly, they sat her in a golden shell that protected her and gave her a floating throne that she might wander alone the archives of knowledge and thought. She alone knew the truth of the Order, why it was, who the Sentinels were and why they had saved her. She was the touchstone, the sole place of truth in a sea of lies for it served the Sentinels from time to time to know the truth. She was Sibyl. So it was that was that Oscan Kelis appeared before her, that the shattered remains of Terica Dharah within the golden shell would have cried if she could. Yet her tears could not come for her ducts were scarred. She was blind, but she saw all too well. I am here, Oscan, she thought with infinite sorrow. You use to stammer at the sight of me, you dear, gentle man. What would you think of me now? ***** “Terica Dharah is dead,” the metallic voice intoned after a long silence. “She died that day from injuries sustained subsequent to the accident aboard the Khindar.” Oscan took in a quick shuddering breath. “How did she die?” “Sealed records of the Order indicate that she must have lost consciousness sometime shortly after the explosive decompression of the Khindar. Examination of the impact sight was quite thor- ough.” the Sibyl lied. “She experienced no pain.” Oscan sat down on the steps leading up to the Sibyl. He had his answer — there was nothing more for him now except to await his own death. “Why is this Terica Dharah so important to you, Oscan Kelis?” Oscan smiled to himself sadly. “Because she was the most beautiful person I have ever known.” “Yes,” the Sibyl intoned heavily, “our visual records show that she was once quite beautiful.” “Visual records?” Oscan shook his head, wistful. “Oh, she was pretty, no one could deny that. The gods know that she could turn any head when she entered a room but that wasn’t what made her beautiful. She had a brilliant mind and a sense of humor that was wonderful. I once saw her on holiday © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 163 right here on Tentris. I must have watched her for nearly an hour before she caught sight of me. I loved her so, even then, but I knew somehow that she was too good for me. I was so embarrassed that she’d seen me there in the gamesroom . . .” “You stumbled over a chair,” the Sibyl spoke. “No, it was a table,” Oscan replied. “You looked like an idiot.” “I looked like an . . .” Oscan blinked. “You must leave at once, Oscan Kelis,” the Sibyl spoke in perhaps too hurried tones. “The Jukardis Guard is alerted to your presence and will be here within minutes.” “Sibyl, I know something of your history,” Oscan said carefully as he turned to stand and face the golden sibyl. “You were not heard of prior to seven years ago. Where were you before that?” “I did not exist before that time — I was made!” “No!,” Oscan said, starting to climb the stairs. “The Sentinels are human, regardless of what the propaganda says: there are too many indicators otherwise. They don’t trust such truths to machines which they, themselves, have corrupted. No, Sibyl, you are most human despite your golden hide and your chariot throne!” The voice of the Sibyl rattled through the room. “You are wrong, Oscan Kelis. I am my own beginning!” “Oscan!” Merinda yelled from above him, as Griffiths lowered her down from the ventilation shaft. “We’ve got to get out of here! Get the coordinates for Avadon and let’s go!” Oscan continued to advance up the stairs, heedless of Merinda. “There were scattered reports of badly mauled humans being taken quietly to medical facilities run by the Order. They never seemed to lead anywhere until now.” “Stop, Oscan Kelis,” the Sibyl intoned. “What do you fear, Sibyl?” Oscan said, reaching the floating throne. Merinda had reached the foot of the stairs. “Oscan! What are you doing? Get the location and let’s get out of here!” Oscan reached forward. His fingers quickly snapped open two of the latches securing the head- piece. “No, Oscan!” the Sibyl cried out. “Please!” Merinda rushed up the stairs. “Oscan! They’ll be here any moment.” Oscan’s jaw was set. He snapped open the remaining latches and snatched the headpiece from the Sibyl’s face. “By the gods!” Merinda breathed in horror. The scarred, deformed head pulled back, its mouth gaping open. The soul felt cry echoed through the vast hall. Suddenly the sound stopped. Oscan’s gentle hand pressed against the tortured cheek. “Terica! Please don’t cry. It’s over now, we’ve come for you.” Merinda stared, dumbfounded. “Terica?” The deformed head turned in her direction. “Merinda?” it said. “By the gods,” Merinda whispered. “She is alive, Oscan! You did find her!” “Yes, Oscan, you found me,” Terica said. “Now, please, you must all go. Leave me here — it’s the only life left to me.” “No, Terica,” Oscan said, quickly removing the remaining plates of the golden armor encasing her, “we came to take you home.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 164 “Oscan!” Terica sobbed without tears. “This is my home! Beyond this room, I have no eyes, no limbs — no life!” The researcher reached into the sarcophagus and pulled the thin light frame of the woman to cradle in his arms. “Terica, I know a place that is incredibly beautiful. It’s a home in the mountains far from anyone’s curiosity. Let me be your eyes, Terica, and I’ll spend the rest of my life describing it to you. Let me be your limbs, Terica, and we’ll walk the grassy meadows together.” “You don’t understand!” Terica slurred her words, no longer supported by the mechanicals of the mask. “They’ll never let me go. I know who they are! I know what they are trying to do!” Griffiths had just dropped to the floor when the great doors of the room quietly began opening. “Uh, Vestis Neskat! I think we’ve got company!” Merinda quickly moved down the steps. “Oscan! Take Terica and the Barbarian! Find another way out of here! I’ll hold them off as long as I can!” A single, tall, robed figure entered the room. Merinda readied her weapon. “I’ve chosen this place to die, Sentinel! Care to join me?” “I trust that won’t be necessary,” the robed figure said, reaching up and pulling back his hood. “Hello, Rini,” the man said. “It’s good to see you again.” Merinda dropped her weapon. “Hello, Kat,” she replied shakily. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 165 Chapter 31: Tempted and Tried The Palace of the Unseen Mystery may have been considerably younger than the ruins of the Old City beneath it but it was nevertheless ancient compared to the new city of Yarka that spread around it. The lift-tubes that ran through the central palace, therefore, were laid in the ancient vertical lift shafts and were not capable of horizontal transit. So it was that Merinda was forced to walk the fifty feet from the lift to Queekat’s apartments. Her mind was reeling, her world turned inside out, and her legs seemed to have lost their strength. Queekat caught her just before she fell, enfolding her in the continuous shadow that seemed to surround him wherever he passed. Merinda resented the man’s assistance; resented even more that his assistance was necessary. Rage, confusion, hope and resentment churned within her, locking up her mind in a jumble of conflicting emotions and thoughts. Not even her own body seemed under her control, which enraged her even more. Queekat guided her through the wall — an unmarked portal that was structured so that it looked like a flat continuation of the ornate corridor they had just left. Part of Merinda’s mind shouted that the portal was a security measure that could change back to solid at Queekat’s will; that once inside there was little hope of anyone finding her ever again. Such was the state of her warring mind that she could not choose between being lost here in capture or escape. In an instant, however, as they passed through the portal that appeared solid but was for all practical purposes gaseous, she hear the portal behind her sound with a solid ‘thunk’ as the gas went solid and she was trapped. It was a beautiful cage, she thought, as cages went. The main room must have been about fifty feet in length, its walls rising twenty feet overhead to a coffered ceiling. A massive fireplace was the centerpiece of the long wall on her left, its ornate mantle framing perfectly a huge fire rolling its flames luxuriously over long wood logs. Beautifully crafted furniture sat in a grouping before the fire. Beyond that, at the far end of the room, a massive desk sat at the base of three sets of floor to ceiling windows. Thin curtains were drawn over the panes, allowing the sunlight beyond to enter in a diffused glow. Arched exits — one beyond the fireplace and another matching on the opposite long wall — lead to additional rooms although Merinda couldn’t see them clearly yet. Queekat still supporting her, guided Merinda to a large, ornate chair near the fire. She surren- dered willingly into its soft cushions. The robed Queekat then lifted her legs onto a ottoman and stood to face her. Merinda looked up into his face. Older, yes, and matured somehow, she decided, but still the same angular face with the heavy jaw line — the same black curled hair that somehow remained untouched by time and years. More than that, there could be no denying those deep-set granite eyes. She stared into those eyes with her own filled with questions that had to be asked and which she dared not ask. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 166 Queekat looked away. “What happened to your shadow?” Merinda asked haltingly, still searching for some solid men- tal ground from which to think. She saw Queekat’s smile as he looked at the ground. “Well, that’s a little piece of theater that we play out for our audience outside. Actually, it wasn’t our idea. The shadow precession has evolved as a matter of respect from the synthetics themselves. These are my rooms; here I can be a little more relaxed.” An awkward silence fell over them to a few moments. There was so much to say that neither seemed willing to speak. “Would you like something to drink?” Queekat offered, moving toward a cabinet at the side of the room. “Perhaps something to eat?” “No,” Merinda replied. Queekat shrugged his shoulders and began pouring an amber liquid from an ornate bottle into his own glass. He gazed into the glass, his face and eyes turned once again away from Merinda. “‘It’s our own universe,’ you said.” “What’s that?” Queekat turned toward her voice. “Your words. ‘It’s our own universe,’” she quoted him, her eyes again gazing into a past history that was long gone. “‘I’ve sent the other one away.’ You told me that when we were in the coliseum, Kat. Then you asked me to take you back and I fell willingly into your arms.” “That was a long time ago,” Queekat said. Merinda smiled painfully. “You’ve said that to me before, too.” “You appear to have done all right for yourself,” Queekat offered more to himself, it seemed, that to her. “‘Done all right?’” Merinda’s eyes locked on Queekat’s face filled with pain and rancor. Her voice swelled with each word in bitterness. “No, Kat, I have not ‘done all right’ these last eight years! We held each other there in that perfect universe you created for us in the coliseum while all this world fell under the terror of the Order! I thought I had found you again; that my life was complete!” Her voice shook with the emotion of the moment, unable to control her rage. “Then, within thirty minutes, I watched you die, Queekat! I saw for the first time the sight that has haunted me every waking day and every sleepless night for the last eight years! I watched your body drifting free of the ship, tumbling back toward the surface of this damned world and now I wake up screaming the same screams each night!” “I did what had to be done, Rini,” Queekat said simply and quietly, hoping that his calm voice would quiet her. He moved toward her. “You’ve got to understand . . .” “UNDERSTAND!” Merinda yelled. Her voice suddenly turned into a primal scream of rage as she pushed herself free of the chair, lunging with incredible speed at Queekat. Queekat countered as quickly as he could, taken aback by the suddenness and the viciousness of the attack. His glass flew from his hand, crashing against the stones of the floor as he countered Merinda’s forearm moves and twisted her around. From behind her, he pinned her arms and lifted her off the floor, hoping to keep her feet away from anything that might give her leverage over him. Still she struggled, a wild animal in his arms. Her legs flailed against the air. Her body writhed in his arms. Her head pitched fitfully about. Queekat barely could keep hold of her in the fury of her seizure. Suddenly, Merinda went limp in his arms, sobbing. “Rini,” Queekat said softly in her ear. “Quiet, child.” “I loved you, Kat,” Merinda whined between her sobs. “I loved you and you left me.” Queekat sank down to sit on the carpet with her, his arms still around her as he did. “Merinda, please understand; I had to leave you.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 167 Merinda shook her head, tears flying as she did. “You didn’t take me with you!” Her words were an accusation and a question all at once. “Where I was going,” he said softly, “you could not come.” “Because I wasn’t good enough,” she shuddered. “Because I failed you.” “Is that what you think?” Queekat release her gently. “No, Merinda, I left you because it was the best way for me to die and make sure that no one would ever question my death for a long, long time. Would it surprise you to know that I read your reports on the subject with great interest: you were most convincing to the Vestis Inquisitas that debriefed you. It was your honesty and conviction that we had to count on.” “‘We’ had to count on?” Merinda sniffed. “Count on for what?” “Count on for my escape, Rini,” Queekat stood and took Merinda’s hands in his own, pulling her up and guiding her back over to her chair. “We’re on the verge of a great new order of things in the galaxy, Rini. We’ve been working at it for the last eight years and now we’ve so very close to making it a reality.” Queekat sat down in the chair opposite Merinda’s. She waited for him as he gathered his thoughts together. “I told you the stars would be ours one day,” he said. “No, you said ‘mine,’ not ‘ours,’” Merinda corrected him. “I meant ‘ours’ — and they are ours, Rini, or soon will be,” Queekat looked at his hands and then continued. “There’s an organization . . .” “Yes,” Merinda nodded, “The Order of the Future Faith.” Queekat shook his head. “No, Rini — that’s just part of it. You think that the Sentinels are just a few heads of this Order who direct the Shadow Fleets and the expansion of the Darkness — don’t look so surprised, Rini, I do have access to the Omnet communiqués. The Sentinels aren’t just seven humans running about in robes and followed everywhere by dark shadows. The Sentinels are much more than that. Our numbers are known only to us. We span the breadth of the galaxy, Merinda. Even now, our agents are operating everywhere the Omnet is found.” “How is that possible?” Merinda asked. If it were true, then the Omnet itself was in danger. “It’s possible because we come from within the Omnet itself,” Queekat said, smiling. “There are those within the organization who believe that the power of information should be put to better use than the Oracles seem interested in doing. There is power — real power — in the Omnet but the Oracles have not the will or the sight to use it.” “I take it then,” Merinda said, folding her arms, “that the Sentinels do?” “Exactly,” Queekat said. “It mostly began with a loose association of Atis Librae about fifteen years ago — you, know, sifters who weren’t happy with how things were run. They mostly got together and complained to each other, not having any real power to do anything about it. They called them- selves the Sentinels, primarily because the fancied themselves the guardians of some great ethic or truth. Then, oh, about ten years ago, an Atis Librae somewhere on the borders of the Pluzak Imperium investigated some reports of a synthetic illness cropping up on a planet called Exos VII. A soothsayer on the planet had posed a set of questions to the local synthetics and had apparently corrupted them.” “The Paradigm,” Merinda said. “Yes, the Paradigm,” Queekat agreed, “Although we tend to call it the Prime Article of Wisdom around here. The investigating Atis Librae happened to be one of the Sentinels and quickly brought this to the group. Here, then, was the possibility of real power, the chance for them to make a difference. Since that time, the Sentinels have been working very carefully to subvert the Omnet by co-opting its communication and information through the use of compromised synthetic minds.” “What does all of this have to do with you?” Merinda asked. “What does it have to do with us?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 168 “I was a Sentinel when we met,” Queekat explained. “A friend of my at my previous posting got me involved in it. At the time, it was mostly just interesting and a little adventurous belonging to a secret group. Soon I saw a chance to make a difference: I became a Vestis and had access to all kinds of information from the Oracles. Eventually, the Sentinels decided it was time to establish a permanent base from which to spread the corruption of the synthetic minds and gain a foothold on control of the galaxy in a more overt way. It was decided among the Sentinels that Tentris offered the best possibili- ties for destabilization as well as the best position outside the major empires to get a good start. How- ever, to make it all work, they needed an expert on synthetic minds who could communicate the para- digm, as you call it, to the broadest spectrum of synthetics. That’s when they arranged for me to take my last mission for the Vestis. The Oracles never suspected the ruse; the mission looked legitimate because the Sentinels had manipulated the information so that no other conclusions could be made except to send me with the biolink expertise.” “Wait a moment,” Merinda held up her hands. “That doesn’t make sense. The E’toris Vestis could send you out with the skills and knowledge but you’d loose it after the mission.” “But that’s the point,” Queekat said, leaning forward. “What if I didn’t come back from the mission?” “Then the Vestis Inquisitas would come looking for you.” “But what if they already knew that they wouldn’t find me?” Queekat smiled at her from behind the granite eyes. “What if they already knew that the search would be pointless?” Merinda stared through him to some point far beyond his wide jaw line. “What if they thought you were dead?” she said quietly. Queekat nodded slowly. “I did it,” she said. Queekat nodded again. “I told them you were dead,” Merinda shook her head slowly in disbelief. “I sat before the Vestis Inquisitas and wept at your loss. Everyone who survived that flight took their turn before the Vestis and swore they saw you fall to your death. We were quite a convincing show.” “Only because you believed it was all true,” Queekat said, standing up over her as he spoke, his eyes earnest in her direction. “Now, you, too, have come into the Darkness: this place where the Omnet no longer has power or authority. You, too, have come to disappear, Merinda Neskat.” She looked up into his eyes. “Your assignment here was no accident, Merinda, any more than my mission was eight years ago. The Sentinels arranged the information in such a way that you alone could be chosen for this most important of missions.” “What are you saying, Kat?” Merinda murmured. “Your biolink download before the mission contains everything that the Omnet knows about the Mantle of Kendis-dai. You have brought that knowledge to me, Rini. Even as we speak, the Shadow Fleets are trailing the Irindris city-ships in their flight toward Avadon. The Irindris are no fools, of course, and our reports indicate that they are following an erratic course in the hopes of shaking our trailing ships. We will, of course, allow them to believe that they have managed to do so. Soon enough they will lead us to that most illusive of all worlds. When we are sure that they have found the location, our ships will then destroy the Irindris, their ships and their entire civilization.” Merinda continued to stare into the cold granite of Queekat’s eyes. “Then,” he said, “we will land, you and I, with the Shadow Fleets and the Shadow Warriors on Avadon and discover the Mantle of Kendis-dai. In that moment our triumph will be complete, Merinda. In that moment, we will own the stars.” Merinda spoke softly. “You and I are not enough. We will need Oscan and the Sibyl . . .” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 169 “Why?” Queekat’s eyes narrowed suspiciously. “We need Oscan to help me with analysis of the ruins when we find Avadon. Terica will have to come to confirm the location of Avadon — and we’ll need the barbarian, who apparently had the piece of knowledge that the Irindris are missing.” “Anyone else?” Queekat asked roughly. Merinda looked again into Queekat’s eyes. “You,” she said quietly, “we’ll need you.” The Sentinel smiled down on her, his arms open and welcoming. “Will you join with me, Merinda Neskat? Will you rule the heavens with me?” Merinda rose slowly from her chair and buried her face in his wide chest. Slowly his arms closed around her, the folds of his robes engulfing her. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 170 Chapter 32: Departures Jeremy Griffiths sat under the dim lighting globes of the Chamber of Thought and waited. For the life of him, he had no idea just what it was that he was waiting for except that he couldn’t think of anything else to do. The TyRens, as the Sibyl had called them, had flown through the door immediately after the Sentinel had left. The things looked like floating, metal torsos, more than anything else. Griffiths had tried to get a shot off at one from his weapon but the thing was on him quicker than he could manage the shot and had disarmed him rather casually of anything that might be construed as being a weapon. They then left as quickly as they came; apparently content with leaving their prisoners in the Chamber of Thought as in any of their detention cells. The TyRens might as well have put them in a detention cell, for all the good they found them- selves in now. The main doors into the room proved to be the only egress from the Chamber of Thought, and those had been barred and guarded since the Sentinel had discovered them all here. The vent through which they had dropped into the room proved too high for Griffiths to reach. In any event, even if he could reach the shaft, he had smelled the ozone whiff and heard the crackling of welding from the vent earlier and knew somehow that their loudly cut access was now sealed off again. There were several adjacent rooms that comprised the living quarters for the Sibyl but there was no way out of those either. The Sibyl. Griffiths shook his head at the thought. Oscan had been communicating with her in sporadically intermittent and veiled messages for several years now. Oscan had been so clever and careful in his communications paths. The researcher had been carefully covert so that the Order wouldn’t get wind of the fact that he was occasionally accessing their main data center and cut his access chan- nels. Was it possible that he had been so careful that the very person he was looking for didn’t realize it was him? Her own condition was so horrible that she feared ever being discovered in her little secret chamber. Even if she had guessed, Griffiths realized, she would never have let him know the truth. Griffiths glanced up at them. Oscan had put Terica back in her floating sarcophagus at her insistence, claiming it would allow her access to the local network and a better means of getting around than tiring Oscan’s back. Now, again encased behind her golden armor and mask, she felt more com- fortable chatting with Oscan although much of what she was talking about made no sense to Griffiths. It was all people he did not know and places he had never been. Still, he found the conversation warming in this otherwise cold place. “. . . appointed after that as E’toris Librae of the Librae Vinculum on Chukai,” Oscan was saying brightly, heedless of their imprisonment. “Kiria’s been there ever since.” “Yes, I know,” the Sibyl answered. “I have been reading her reports for quite some time. Still, the official reports don’t tell much of the story of the woman herself. Does she have anyone with whom © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 171 she can share her life?” Oscan shook his head. “She lives her life alone, so far as I can tell from the occasional datapacks she sends to me.” “It is hard not to share a life,” the Sibyl said. Oscan gazed about them, taking in Terica’s universe, closed off from humanity and filtered through electronic sensors. “Yes, it is, Terica,” he said, touching her gold-encased arm, “but never again for you; never again for me.” He would do it, too, Griffiths shuddered; he would stay right here in this tomb with his broken and scarred woman. These two love birds would coo at each other endlessly glad for the conversation while Griffiths sat around in this dungeon with nothing more to do than watch them. A honeymoon couple in the depths of hell and he was forced to sit in the brimstone and watch. Griffiths wondered for a moment if this was a new definition of purgatory. “Do you know anything about Evon,” Oscan asked his golden companion suddenly. “We lost track of him about three years ago after he was dismissed from Omnet service — something of a scandal, as I recall.” “The last report I read was about eighteen months back, the Sibyl replied in her metallic tones. “It was a police report on Warnem 23 — that’s an outpost in the Tuk Badlands just coreward of the Federated Stellar States. He’d apparently run into some . . . just a moment!” Griffiths looked up. There was something urgent in the Sibyl’s tone. “Just a moment.” she repeated. Griffith stood up. He looked at Oscan. Oscan gazed back at him, just as perplexed as Griffith. “Word has come,” the Sibyl said. Jeremy felt it before he actually could hear it. A low, subaudible rumble that penetrated the stone walls and floor. It shook his bones through the air itself. The sound rose and he could hear it now, too; a rising cacophony of timbre and reverberation that passed through him and rattled his soul. “My God!” he cried, his own voice hollow against the rising crescendo of noise and power. “What is it?” Dust from the banks of shelves billowed into the air. Bits of mortar chipped and fell to the floor around them like a light rain, streaking trails behind them as they fell. Jeremy looked about in a panic. There was no where to run. There was no protection to be found. He could barely see now. With no other option immediately coming to his mind, he dashed up the stairs, joining Oscan in clinging to the Sibyl’s throne. “It’s the fleet!” she yelled into the bedlam around them. ****** A bright sun shone in the clear skies over Yarka. It was nearly noon. The humans of the city had emerged from the broken shell of their homes and gone about their tasks servicing the synthetics who ruled them. It was an unseasonably temperate day. The younger children had been gathered into the Learning Centers since mid-morning and were restless in their classes taught by synthetics, what with the sunshine outside calling to them and their unsympathetic instructor synthetics droning on with the lessons of the human underclass. The adults were engaged, each one, in their assigned tasks. Some carried parts between destinations. Some fueled and serviced the various depots scattered around the city. Others were busy with the infrastructure just to keep the living alive for another day of the occu- pation. Then came the Call. Women paused in the streets, glancing up toward the warm sun, knowing somehow, that some- thing had happened. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 172 Men stopped at their work, curious as to the subtle change in the air. It was thirteen minutes shy of the ninth hour of the day. Simultaneously across the surface of the world, the Shadow Fleet received the word. Each ship redirected their power cores to a sudden increase their output to maximum and reconfigured their command sets into flight/combat mode. The sudden whine of their increased output was the first no- ticeable sign to the humans of Yarka that something had suddenly changed on that bright clear day. In Yujanka Park, a row of twelve Harpy III Wraith-warriors were awaiting upgrade servicing in the three massive docks constructed there for the purpose. Two of the ships were tied down in the mounts and a third was moving into place when suddenly nine of them arched their articulated hulls toward the sky. Their pulse drives engaged at maximum acceleration and they all bounded into the sky. The tenth, engaged in moving onto the refit dock, seemed momentarily confused, but followed its brothers a moment later. The remaining two strained suddenly against the lock downs and burst through them, ripping sections of the access scaffolding away with them, as they, too, punched into the bright sky above. The overpressures from the powerful pulse drives completely obliterated five of the support human crew people working under them at the time and killed seventeen instantly. Five more would die later in the day from incidental injuries from the groups departure, but the loss was considered of small consequence to the Lead Harpy — his unit was recognized and honored as the first to answer the Call. Different wraith-ships answered at different times — primarily due to the differences in the ships themselves. Many of the freighters and larger ships required more time to bring their systems on- line and their power plants up to full output. In their haste to answer, each launched the moment is was capable. The Yarka Starport — the epicenter of the Shadow Fleet’s activities — was jarred repeatedly for nearly thirty minutes with a ripple of staggered launches. The Shadow Fleet, however, numbered in the thousands; far in excess of what the Starport alone could hold, let alone service. Thus the vast bulk of the fleet was scattered in every park, plaza and field radiating from the center of the city. Trees exploded into flame. Buildings lining the plazas disintegrated under the blast pressures. Fathers, moth- ers, children vanished. The Wraith-ships clawed their way into the sky, trailing furious power straight away from the surface and headless of the damage their wake was creating below. A Corbin Medical Lab Khilato, its pulse drive sequencers having been removed for repair, had reportedly gone berserk out of frustration at not being able to join the holy crusade. The synthetic was hysterical — apparently having drawn on its own abnormal psychology datapacks for what it consid- ered an appropriate response. The Lab ship killed five of the ground crew before they could reinstall the sequencers and cut the restraints on the freighter free. So it was that the whimpering Khilato was the last of the assigned attack fleet to leave the planet’s surface — seventy-three minutes after the first launch took place. For a few, stunned moments, the humans not faced with the immediacy of disaster, wondered if their oppressors had simply left their world. Despite the billowing smoke from nearly two hundred fires raging about the city, many wondered if their freedom were finally at hand. Their hopes lasted, in most cases, no more than seven minutes. Within that time, the TyRen troops floated through the streets and reestablished the supremacy of the Order over the city of Yarka. Under their cold gaze, the Tentrisians were organized once more under the direction of the synthetic minds; their hands put to work clearing the streets of rubble and combating the raging fires. Those who cooperated would have to put off any notions of finding family and loved ones until the task was done. Those who did not cooperate were quickly — and quite efficiently — killed and disposed of as trouble- some agitators. ***** The dust had not yet settled in the Chamber of Thought when Griffiths heard the door seals © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 173 slide free with a metallic squeal. He looked up through the haze from where he sat on the stairs. Behind him, Oscan and the Sibyl also turned toward the sound. The great doors opened into the room. “What now?” Griffiths asked without enthusiasm to no one in particular. The tall, robed man strode back into the chamber, his jaw pitched upward with a superior air. Neskat followed him into the room. There was something different about her, Jeremy thought, some- thing missing in the way she moves. “Well, look who else survived the accident,” Oscan said drolly. “Say, Queekat, doesn’t anyone ever die here?” The Sentinels nostrils flared. “Yes, they most certainly do, Oscan. Would you like me to arrange a demonstration for you?” Griffiths ignored the exchange, turning to Neskat instead. “Vestis! What about my crew! Have you had any word about . . .” “Your ‘crew’ is gone,” Queekat said, turning toward Griffiths with disdain. “They were bar- tered off to the Irindris just four days ago.” “The Irindris!” Griffiths eyes went wide with the memory of their last encounter with the city- ships. “You can’t do that! You can’t just sell . . .” “We can and did,” Queekat said in his fluting tenor voice. “Be grateful, you whelp; it was their sale that had guaranteed your life for the time being. The Irindris have your companions of — what is that place again? — ah, yes, of ‘earth.’ Confidently they will take their new prize straight to the lost world of Avadon in search of the Mantle of Kendis-dai. They have already done so and, as you no doubt heard, our own fleet in now flying through the stars to intercept them. The moment we are confident that they have, in fact, lead us to their precious holy ruin, then our fleets will attack and utterly destroy the Irindris city-ships.” “By the gods,” Oscan said, shaken, “you would completely destroy a society? Obliterate its art, science, culture — not to mention its race as a whole?!” “The Omnet had cultivated a divisive society among the stars, pitting nation against nation, ideology against ideology, Oscan!” Queekat yelled shrilly at the small man in sudden outburst. “We propose to order the stars and bend civilization to our will under one law, one government! Such a sacrifice must be made from time to time — it is inevitable!” “History is filled with butchers, great and small who have required the sacrifice of someone else!” Oscan shot back. “If yours is such a noble cause, then let’s ask the Irindris if they are willing to kill their children for it!” “Enough of this!” Neskat broke her silence suddenly. “This is getting us nowhere. Griffiths, I’m sorry — your crew is gone with the Irindris and the entire Shadow Fleet is pursuing them. There’s nothing more we can do for them.” “You can’t just give up on them,” Griffiths said, not quite believing what Neskat was saying to him. “What about your mission? What about . . .” “I said there’s nothing more we can do for them!” Neskat shouted into Griffiths face. The astronaut was taken suddenly back by the vehemence of her response. “Look, I’d like to help you, but this has passed out of my hands now. It’s beyond any of us now! All that’s left is for us to find some way of getting through this with our own skins intact.” “I don’t believe I’m hearing this,” Griffith said angrily. “Well, start believing it,” Neskat said at once. “Do you see the Omnet charging to our rescue? Not likely! What have they ever really done for me except ruin my life and any chance for happiness.” Neskat turned to Oscan at the top of the stairs, who was staring down at her with renewed hatred. “What did they give you, Oscan? A shattered dream and a support pension?” “You’ve thrown in with them!” Oscan spat. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 174 Neskat shook her head. “I’m just trying to deal with the realities, Oscan! Something with which you have little experience, I might add.” “Liar! You have thrown your fate in with theirs,” Oscan countered, “You’ve thrown away all those ideals that you held up to my face; anything that I might have found courageous and good in you — all for this lantern-jawed egotist whose ambition very nearly destroyed us both!” Neskat bounded up the stairs and dragged Oscan suddenly to the floor. “Listen to me, you little man! You’ve found your lost love and now I’ve found mine! This is my chance, Oscan Kelis; my chance to get my life back!” Griffiths tried to pull Neskat’s arm away; tried to free Oscan from her grip but the Vestis refused to let go. Her strength was formidable. “Now; I can get you and Terica off this rock and quite possibly back to your little hideaway on your nowhere planet around your nowhere star. You two can live out the rest of your lives there for all I care — but for right now, Oscan? For right now, I don’t need to hear morality from you! I don’t need your blame or your guilt. I’m tired of carrying your failings on my back!” “Stop it!” Griffiths shouted, struggling to free Oscan from her vice-like grip. “Let him go!” Neskat suddenly swung around, knocking the astronaut’s arm free. “No, you stop it! You’re only breathing because you’re more valuable alive than dead. Help me and you may yet live. Get any ideas of courage, ethics or honor and I personally will see to it that you pay for it slowly. Strike your deal now while you still have some worth — or don’t, it won’t make any difference to me!” “Now,” Neskat said, dragging Oscan back to his feet. “We’re leaving — all of us. The TyRen will bring in lifters to get Terica’s sarcophagus out to the Brishan. The rest of you can ride with us.” The Sentinel smiled. “I’ve got a second chance at life,” Neskat said huskily as she walked out of the room, “and I’m not going to loose it now!” ***** It was dusk before many of the Tentrisians trudged the wide, dark streets in search of faces that many would never find again. In their fatigue, few of them took notice of a small squadron of ships lifting off from a remote bay at the starport. Some watched wearily as the eight spaceships lifted up- ward in unison and drifted carefully over the city before picking up speed into the emerging stars overhead. They loathed the twisting shapes of the five Harpies and two larger Corvettes as they passed above them. It was, however, the ship that the Harpies seemed to be escorting that caught their eyes and interest more that those of their hated tyrants. The ship passing over them bore the lines of a freighter or scout ship. Though her markings were too dim to be read in the fading light, the symbol on her hull was unmistakable. A ship of the Omnet had passed overhead, turning through the smoke-smudged sky toward the stars. Those who saw it wept for their longing to be aboard that ship — to be taken anywhere but here. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 175 OMEGA: BOOK OF KHENDIS-DAI © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 176 Chapter 33: Avadon Five triangular sections of transparent wall fitted together at the forward end of the compart- ment, allowing the delicate, brilliant light to fill the otherwise darkened cabin. There were a variety of relaxation couches, chairs and pillows set about the compartment, yet they remained unused. The three figures occupying the room stood silhouetted against the starlight, gazing out into endless, space. “Well,” Broderick Ellerby said thoughtfully, “they haven’t fed us to their demon yet.” “Why do I not find that a terribly comforting thought?” Elizabeth Lewis replied. “It could be a good sign,” Dr. Tobler mused. “They need us for some, big holy quest deal — at least that’s what that Belisondre guy said.” “That’s fine,” Lewis replied, “but what happens to us when they no longer need us? Are they going to hail us as participants in their great quest — or are they just going to jettison us like so much excess weight? These people don’t seem to think highly enough of our world to even know where are planet is located; they believe our technology is naive at best. What we could possibly know that would interest them is beyond me — but I do suspect that once they have what they want from us, we become just so much unneeded baggage.” Ellerby groaned. “You’re not planning another escape, are you?” “They’ve worked out so far,” Tobler added, shaking her head at the same time. Even Lewis chuckled at that one. “It does look like I’ve managed to tunnel our way deeper into the prison, doesn’t it. Still, we can’t just give up. We are still alive — and as long as there is life, there is hope.” “A beautiful sentiment, Lieutenant Lewis,” said a deep voice behind them. The three astronauts turned as one. “My apologies for walking in on your conversations,” Belisondre said, his robes brushing softly against the carpet as he approached them. “I find your wonder at the universe most enchanting and, I must admit, refreshing. We of the Irindris have been in flight for the last ninety-six years — an auspi- cious number in our culture, by the way — and have, I fear, gotten far to use to the glories of the stars. It looses its magic with too much exposure.” “Prophet Belisondre,” Tobler said, bowing her head slightly in greeting. The Prophet crossed the room and stood among the astronauts, gazing past them to the stars far beyond. “We have been a nomadic culture,” he said, seemingly as much to himself as to them. “In centuries now long passed, we were preyed upon by a number of our neighbors. Many of our people were carried away in slave ships, others were pressed into service on behalf of alien wars on alien worlds. We were victims in that time, bowing before superior weapons and technologies. We struggle, we fought and, in each case, we lost. Then the gods smiled down on us and brought to use the city- ships. At first, we saw them merely as the means by which we could flee our oppressors. We gathered © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 177 the scattered remnants of our people and left our beleaguered worlds for the safety of the night.” Belisondre smiled to himself. “In time we came to know the will of Gnuktikut. Our flight into space became a holy journey. We have wandered long without a home, searching for that place which was foretold by the prophets of old would be our spiritual center. Guided by the Anjew, the spirit servants of Gnuktikut, we found that home twelve years ago.” “If you found your home,” Tobler asked suspiciously, “then why do you still wander the stars?” “We wander because we must,” Belisondre replied without looked away from the distant stars. “The world was found but it was cold, dead and locked to us. We had found our home locked and barred to us. We believe that you and your kind are the key.” “Believe?” Lewis raised her eyebrows. “You believe this — but you do not know of a cer- tainty?” “Gnuktikut has made it know to me as a matter of faith and therefore it must be true.” Lewis glanced at Ellerby. The large man shrugged. “It will all become clear to you soon,” Belisondre said with a rather superior air. “You are to be the first outsiders to be allowed to view this holy place.” Lewis didn’t much like the sound of that. “What is this holy place, exactly?” “It is the last known world where Khendis-dai walked before he took himself from us. It was his home before it was ours and we are the caretakers. We serve to ready it for his return in the time of our greatest need — a time which we believe to be quickly upon us.” Suddenly, something caught the Prophet’s eye. “There it is! Behold: the lost world of Avadon!” Lewis turned to the windows. A black circle appeared against the background of stars, growing larger by the moment. At first, to her, it appeared featureless, a growing darkness against the starfield, yet as it grew, she saw that it was a dim globe shining with starlight — indeed, she thought she could see stars reflected from its surface. “This is your world?” Lewis asked. Tobler’s thoughts were in another direction. “Where is it’s sun?” Lewis pressed suddenly closer to the glass and glanced at the vast starfield around them. No nearby, dazzling circle of light could be seen. Only starlight reflected from the surface of the world. “There is no star, Tobler,” Lewis breathed. “It’s some kind of rogue world!” “Quite correct, Lieutenant Lewis,” Belisondre said, his face in rapture as the world filled the windows. “Avadon millennia ago left the circles of other worlds to plot its own course through the stars — preserved by the hand of Gnuktikut to that day when our people should find it. It is all there; cities preserved and intact for our use, fields to be planted and harvested, and technologies of such power that we would never need fear again. It awaits us. It calls to us.” “It may call to you,” Ellerby said with wonder, “but you can’t reach it. The atmosphere is frozen solid.” Belisondre nodded as he turned to Lewis. “That is true, in every place except one. One of our first projects, twelve years ago was to map the surface through the frozen atmosphere. As we were conducting those surveys, we were soon drawn to an operational beacon flashing through the frozen gas from the surface of the world. There we discovered not only the Lost City of Aden but the temple complex outside of it as well. We used bottled demons to burn down through the frozen atmosphere in heat radiators, melting the atmosphere and boiling much of it off directly above the temple complex. We have reclaimed only part of the temple in this way — our bottled demons keeping the atmosphere in a gaseous state only in a limited radius, rather like dropping into a well in deep ice.” Lewis looked again at the frozen surface of the world rolling beneath them. In a moment she saw a single point of bright light coming into view from the turning horizon. In that moment she knew that her destiny lay on this frozen world at the bottom of a well of ice. She determined that, like © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 178 everything else in her life, she would meet that destiny standing up and facing it. ***** Six white-winged Anjew flew with the shuttle casing out of the city-ship, grasping the hand rails in their steel-like talons. Lewis watched them through her portal, as well as the receding city-ships behind them. Strange that she was sad to leave those ships, she thought. Tobler and Ellerby were seated near her while Belisondre and a contingent of Thought-Knights occupied most of the forward section of the cabin. She thought of Griffiths then, and hoped earnestly that the fool was faring better at the universe than she apparently was doing. The shuttle casing drifted down toward the planet and its single beacon of light, borne by the undulating wings of the Anjew. Soon, they began dropping vertically, the gentle curve of the world flattening out as they descended. Quite suddenly, a smooth wall appeared, a clear hole punched straight down through frozen gasses. Its surface shined and glistened in the landing lights of the pod. Lewis had the faint impression of land, mountains and fields rising up in the solid gasses beyond. Here is a world that sleeps, she thought to herself, and suddenly felt guilt and shame at the thought of waking it. She was trespassing and feared that the local inhabitants might awaken and catch her in the act. She had little time to ponder it all, however, as quite unexpectedly tall spindles of blue glass filled her viewport. The narrow confines of the vertical shaft gave way to a large open hemisphere in the frozen sky. Suddenly the shuttle rotated the scene out of her view. Within moments she felt the gentle bump as the shuttle touched ground. Ahead of her, the Thought-knights stood as one in their dark armor. Belisondre appeared among them and turning toward Lewis and her companions, smiled. “We are here, friends,” he called. “Come! Let us open the gates to paradise!” Lewis released her safety restraint and stood as best she could in the cramped cabin. “I hope you remembered to bring your keys,” she heard Tobler mutter behind her. The cabin in front of them had cleared considerably, the Thought-knights taking up positions outside the craft. Lewis quickly moved to the exit hatch, her two companions following her, and stepped outside. The temperature of the air shocked her, forcing her to catch a painful breath. She was thinking about her training week in Antarctica when she realized that the oxygen she was breathing was quite recently in a solid state. There must be only so much that a bottle demon can do, she thought, suddenly rubbing her arms vigorously for warmth. “Here,” Belisondre said, handing each of them thick, padded robes that reached to the ground. “Avadon is not yet the hospitable place which it soon shall be. Until that time, you’ll be much more comfortable in these. You’ll find overboots near that shed over there. You wouldn’t want to lose your feet, would you?” Ellerby grimaced as the prophet walked off, already pulling the thick hood up on his robe as he walked toward a collection of modular enclosures set to one side of the landing zone. “No, sir, I don’t guess that I would,” he said, his teeth already chattering as he pulled on his own robe. Lewis lead them over to the indicated module and, finding a par of large, padded boots, pushed her feet quickly into them. As she warmed, her hands crossed in front of her and well buried within the folds of the thick robe, she took a moment to look around and assess their situation. She quickly stopped. “My God,” she said in reverence. “You mean, you see it, too?” Ellerby said with equal amazement. The landing zone was a clearing near the top of the mountain. At one edge of the clearing, the modular huts congregated around a broad roadway that seemed to extend out of a great, smooth dome of solid air overhead. The roadway itself lead up to the summit above them. It was the summit that captured their minds. The entire mountain top was capped by a complex © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 179 of structures of insurmountable beauty. Three blue-glass towers like the buds of new flowers, deli- cately and perfectly formed, rose above the carved stonework that leveled the peak. Other buildings, their roofs supported by delicate columns of fluted stone filled the enclosure, seemingly untouched by time. “How long have they been here?” Tobler breathed. “I don’t know,” Lewis smiled, “but Belisondre mentioned that its been over five thousand years since anyone even heard of this place.” “These buildings may just predate the Giza pyramids,” Ellerby said. “Incredible!” Their musings were disturbed by the sudden return of the Thought-Knights and their Prophet. The knights had lowered their Bruk weapons, training them, Lewis had no doubt, on all of them. “Welcome to Aden,” Belisondre said broadly. “The time long ago foretold is at hand! Come, friends, let us meet our fates.” The walked up the broad avenue which ended at a wide set of stairs leading up through the stonework to the level above. Perfect obelisks of stone rose from globe bases on either side of the stairs, capped by winged creatures which Lewis did not recognize. Their feet crunched on the stairs as they climbed, ice from the breath of years of workers having condensed onto its surface. The stairs nar- rowed near the top, and, as Lewis crested them, she found herself gazing up. The statue of a beautiful woman stood before her, nearly thirty feet tall. Her face was exquisite, innocent and sad. “We have little time for exploration,” Belisondre said somewhat impatiently. The group turned abruptly to their right, Lewis, Ellerby and Tobler forced along by the muzzles of the bruks. They passed just to the left of the great central tower of glass, passing a frozen reflecting pool lines with a series of statues. She wished fervently that she could read the inscriptions that they were passing — then suddenly wondered why she couldn’t. She realized that ever since her altercation with that Neskat woman, she had been able to talk to and read any language that she came in contact with regardless of where she was. So, she wondered, why was all of this such a mystery to her now? Just past the frozen pool they began moving up a short set of wide steps to a circular platform, nearly fifty feet in diameter. The Thought-Knights stopped. “Come,” Belisondre motioned to Lewis and her crew, as he mounted the steps and urged them on to join him. The top of the platform was rimmed with nine standing obelisks of blue glass, each ranging from three to four feet in height. In the exact center of the circle, a stone pedestal stood on a circular base. The top of the pedestal supported a wide disk covered with markings, a large bronze sighting instrument of some type fixed in it’s center. The device was beautifully crafted, with some sort of optical site cradled in its mountings. “I can’t read these,” Lewis said to the Prophet, gazing down at the curved surface of the disk under the instrument. “This is an archetype,” the Prophet uttered in his deep, rather officious voice reserved for mo- ments of ceremony or great importance. “It is a representation of the Starshield of Khendis-dai. We have translated the markings but have kept them secret to ourselves — your biolink will not help you here. This reads: ‘the hunter and his chariot cross the heavens in the fulfilling day of his word. Look to them and awaken wisdom for a new epoch.’” Ellerby and Tobler glanced despairingly at each other. “What do you take this to mean?” Lewis asked the Prophet. In the back of her mind, however, she heard another voice: Griffiths voice. ‘They say we have the answer to whatever they are looking for — if only we understood the question.’ “We don’t know,” the Prophet replied, looking somewhat confused at the question. “The hunter © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 180 is Khendis-dai, without question. There are many legends about his chariot begin seen crossing the heavens but nothing which pertains to our prophesies or events. However, the pedestal has other prop- erties which will be evident when you stand on the pedestal base.” Lewis glanced once at her companions and then stepped onto the circular support. The frozen wall of atmosphere vanished suddenly as though it were never there. Beyond the edge of the platform, the valley could now be seen clearly and unobstructed. An ancient city lay there below them, untouched by time. In the distance, mountain peaks thrust up into the clear night sky filled with stars. Lewis stumbled backwards. Instantly the vision vanished. “Lewis, what did you do?” Tobler gasped. “Did you see that as well, Ellerby?” Lewis asked quickly. The large man, a bit pale, nodded emphatically. “It is simply an illusion,” the Prophet said, doubt now creeping into his voice. “A guide, we believe, to whatever needs doing with the device to open this sealed world to us.” Lewis looked into the Prophet’s eyes. “Of course,” she said, “the device is familiar to us.” Ellerby coughed nervously. “It will take my crew and I some time to calibrate it properly. Ellerby! Tobler! If you will come over here and assist me?” Ellerby didn’t respond, but walked over to where Lewis stood next to the pedestal. Tobler came over as well, smiling nervously at the prophet, but speaking to Lewis quietly through her clenched teeth in a singsong voice. “Lewis — what are you doing?” Lewis looked beyond the Prophet. A runner was crossing the temple compound at breakneck pace. Lewis turned her back on the prophet and looked at her companions. “We need time and I’m buying a little! Look, they seem to think we have the answer and Griffiths seemed to think we had the answer — so maybe we do!” Lewis glanced back at the prophet. The runner had climbed the stairs and was speaking into his ear. The Prophet’s face had fallen ashen. “Prophet Belisondre?” Lewis asked. “I must leave you for a short time,” the Prophet said, quickly stepping down off the platform. The runner had already disappeared. “Urgent business that I must attend to. You continue with your calibrations and when I return you may show me your results!” “As you wish,” Lewis said grandly, calling after the Prophet as he crossed beyond the frozen pool. She then turned back to her companions. Their breath as they faced one another formed clouds among them. “Look, there’s got to be something to this device — all we have to do is figure out how it works.” “So what do you have in mind?” Ellerby asked. “Let’s play with their little toy here and see if any of it makes sense. Someone put it here for some reason — it has got to make sense.” “Oh, damn!” Ellerby said suddenly. “They’re gone!” “Whose gone?” Lewis asked. “All of them!” Lewis turned around. The contingent of Thought-knights had disappeared as well. Lewis jumped from the platform and ran across the temple yard. She came to a stop just at the top of the grand stairs. Below her, ablaze in the work lights still operating in the compound, the shuttle © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 181 casing was pulled into the air by six of the Anjew and lifted quickly into the exit tunnel overhead. Ellerby and Tobler skidded to a halt just behind Lewis as they watched their only means of departure vanish through a hole in the solid sky. “Well,” Ellerby said, “it looks like we finally made good on our escape.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 182 Chapter 34: Blasphemy The Brishan drove through the stars cocooned by the Wraith escort ships. The glories of the Cestiline nebula were soon distanced behind the small fleet. A quantum front of unusual chaotic power offered some resistance to their passage and the quantum state on the opposite side required the Brishan to rig some sails, delaying their continued voyage for some twenty minutes or so before they were able to make way again. The Harpies and the corvettes were ready well before the Brishan and offered no further delays. A second front was encountered in their passage near a minor empire known to them- selves as ‘The Masters’ who were in the midst of a machine intelligence revolt. The great Shadow Fleets had passed them a few hours earlier without showing much concern or interest — indeed, ‘The Masters’ were so immersed in their own problems that they took no more notice of the passage of the thousand-ship fleet than they did of the Brishan and her companions. The passage through the second front was more easily navigated into a quantum zone where the prominent physics lent itself to a wormhole-induction drive. The Brishan engaged her drive at once, in perfect unison with her surround- ing ships, striking her sails and masts while underway and therefore brooking no further procrastina- tion. Thus the ships of the secondary fleet cruised through the black void in quite peace and serenity. They knew that they would soon fall into the maw of open war but for now their passage was tranquil and placid. Within the hull of the Brishan, however, the war had quietly already begun. ***** “Avadon,” Queekat said with immense satisfaction, leaning back in his suspensor chair and folding his arms across his chest. A stellar chart display floated above the table in the main galley. “Who might have ever guessed — could have guessed — that the lost world of Kendis-dai was sailing on its own between the stars?” “Oh, golly,” Oscan said without enthusiasm, “not me.” “I’d have thought that you, at least, might have had some appreciation for the magnitude of this achievement,” Queekat said, gesturing toward the display rotating before them. “An entire planet mov- ing at almost two percent of light speed counter to the standard rotation of the galaxy? Some of the small bits of information we have gleaned from the Irindris are tantalizing. If it’s a natural occurrence, then why are all of the buildings of the world’s cities there still intact? Physical forces alone should have insured their destruction when the planet was torn from its orbit. If not; then it’s a feat of engineer- ing on a scale unknown to any of the recognized civilizations in the galaxy today. No, Oscan,” he finished with a satisfied smile, “there is more to this planet than some musty prophesy; there’s real power here!” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 183 “Power is to be wielded,” the Sibyl said. Queekat turned toward the golden statue speaking to him on his right. He lifted his heavy boots up onto the levitated table. “Exactly my point, Terica,” he said smugly. “Beware,” she replied, “for power that can be wielded by you can also be wielded against you. Remember that you seek the Mantle of Kendis-dai to destroy its truth or to be destroyed by it. Truth knows its own.” Queekat snorted derisively. “Listen to the Sibyl,” Oscan said. “You kept her around so that you would have a baseline of truth by which to judge your own lies.” “I kept her around,” Queekat replied lazily, “because the truth is the most important element in any lie. Mix enough truth into falsehood and you can get anyone to believe anything — it’s one of the first rules of propaganda. That’s why the Mantle is so powerful — it’s truth is undisputed throughout the known stars of commerce. Mix that truth in and the universe will believe anything the Sentinels tell them. Own the Mantle and whatever we say is truth will be truth — that’s power, Oscan!” “You would hold a sword that would cut off your own hands,” the Sibyl replied. “Truth is not something that one controls.” “Odd that you, of all people, would say that,” Queekat countered, his chin sticking out as the muscles worked on either side of his jaw. “You hide behind that mask to make yourself more present- able to the rest of humanity. Do you not control the truth, Terica Dharah?” Silence alone answered him. “What about you, barbarian,” Queekat said, gathering up his own glove and tossing it at the man of earth. “Does your tribe hold truth to be such a wonderful commodity that it never resorts to falsehood?” Griffiths roused himself from his depression. There didn’t seem to be many options left to him any longer. He had trusted, somehow, that the Neskat woman would get him through all of this; that her Vestis training had somehow included ethics. Now he felt completely alone. He had failed his crew, failed his mission, and — now that he thought about it — failed himself. He could not think of a single noble act that might somehow redeem his conscience. He couldn’t even blame Lewis and the others for deserting him; he only wished there were some way that he could desert himself as well. Griffiths gathered up the glove and tossed it back. “Leave me alone,” he said, turning away from the Sentinel in his suspensor chair. “Leave you alone?” Queekat purred. “Why, I’d have thought that you were already alone, man of earth. However, I’m willing to make you a proposition. There is nothing I can do for your compan- ions — they are lost to you and most likely will be dead alone with the Irindris race within the next few hours.” “You were the one who bartered away his crew to these same Irindris,” the Sibyl said suddenly. “That was necessary,” Queekat snapped back, “in order for us to discover the location of Avadon!” “I know all about Avadon,” Griffiths responded wearily. “It was the last known residence of the God-emperor Kendis-dai at the fall of the Kendis Imperium, three thousand, four hundred and sixty- nine years ago. The Kendis Lay contains two hundred and fifty six quatrains describing the capital city of Aden and the wonders of the palace which are to be found therein. The final chapter of the lay tells of how Kendis-dai fled Aden into the night, riding a great chariot into mortality that he might search creation to find his consort-bride, Shauna-kir. It concludes with the passage speaking of his great rival, Obem-ulek, so enraged at being dragged into mortality also, that he hurls the world of Avadon into the darkness where it was never to be found among the stars again.” Griffiths suddenly realized that everyone around the table, including the golden Sibyl, were all staring at him. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 184 “What?” he blurted out defensively. “You’re pretty well versed in ancient galactic lore for a barbarian,” Oscan said with a quizzical expression on his face. “Well,” Griffith said through his hands as he rubbed the fatigue from his face, “I picked up a thing or too from some guy named Zanfib. Believe me; it wasn’t because I was a willing student.” A rushing sound signaled someone’s approach up the lift-tube. Merinda Neskat suddenly ap- peared in a field-tan uniform and stepped from the lift opening. “Good morning, everyone,” she said as she walked around the table. “Sorry, I’ve been away so long — I’ve had a lot to get done down on the bridge.” Oscan looked up irritably. “For two days?” “Like I said, it was a lot to get done,” Neskat smiled. Griffiths stared silently. It was the first time that he could recall seeing the Vestis allow herself a smile that was honest and free of pain. Well, at least someone seems to have found peace, he thought glumly. “You remind me of your old self,” the Sibyl said, turning her statue self to watch the Vestis as she crossed the room. “I rather feel like my old self,” Neskat said cheerfully, sitting casually on the arm of Queekat’s chair as he confidently slipped his arm around her waist. “I think I actually hate you more this way than when you were an Omnet bitch,” Oscan said with a bitter taste in his mouth. Griffith couldn’t help but secretly agree. “Not the sweetest thing you’ve ever said to me, Oscan, but I’ll take it in the unfortunate spirit in which it was intended,” Neskat replied lightly. “That reminds me; there are a few issues you and I need to work out before we make contact with Avadon.” “Who, me?” Oscan asked. “Yes, you.” “Can’t do it — too busy.” “Not for the next two hours your not,” Neskat replied, standing up. “Let’s go, Oscan. Help me through this one last thing, old friend . . .” “You are sadly mistaken if you think . . .” “Yes, I said, old friend. Help me through this one last thing and perhaps we can both be free.” Oscan looked up at her, hatred still evident in his face. The moment soon passed, however, and Oscan stood. “Well, I suppose I should be grateful that you haven’t asked my help in your betrayal of all human kind for at least two days now,” Oscan said as he stood up. “Besides, I do have a few things I’d like to say to you. Where are we going?” “Down; back to the . . .” “. . . bridge, yes, I could guess — it seems to be your second home,” Oscan replied. “Hey, Rini!” Queekat said, pulling Neskat back down toward him when she tried to stand up. “You’ve got time for the ship and time for old Oscan! When is it our time?” “Soon, Kat,” Neskat said smiling, as she slipped out from Queekat’s arm. “Very soon.” ***** Queekat strolled onto the bridge. He nodded briefly to Oscan, leaning against the port display panels and turned toward the command chair forward in the bridge. “Merinda?” The chair swiveled around. Merinda slumped back in the chair relaxed and peaceful. “We’re coming up on Avadon, Kat,” she said in a breathy, excited voice. “We’ll be dropping out of the worm- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 185 drive soon.” “Yes, in about three hours,” Queekat said. “Are the Wraith-ships still with us?” “Well,” Merinda said standing from the command chair with a smile and sauntering toward him. “You might ask Lindia about that.” Queekat’s smile was shaded with doubt. “Of course,” he replied, then turned out of habit and spoke upward to the room in general. “Lindia, I am a Sentinel: what is the position of the Wraith-ships escorting us?” “Sentinel, it is my honor to serve. The Harpy-class escorts are maintaining positions in a clas- sic containment formation with three ships forward of our current course and four ships aft. The cor- vettes are holding station further aft of the Harpy ships and five degrees to port and starboard of our center line.” “Excellent,” Queekat responded. “When does the main fleet expect to engage the Irindris?” “The battle is now joined, Sentinel. Preliminary intelligence reports are inconclusive of the outcome.” “Please convey my compliments to the Fleet lead ships and inform them that we shall be arriv- ing within the next three hours.” “I’m afraid that will not be possible at this time, Sentinel.” Queekat frowned. “Why not?” “Darling,” Merinda said, turning him to face her, her hands lifting his robes slightly. “Rini, something’s wrong with the . . .” Merinda’s knee shot suddenly upward between Queekat’s legs. In practiced motion, she hands shot in a blurred motion upward toward the head as he bent over in surprise and pain and pressed it downward. Again her knee slammed upward, this time into Queekat’s face. Queekat countered, reaching forward through his pain with both hands to grasp Merinda but she was too quick for him. Her leg already drawn up, Neskat turned slightly and ran the outer edge of her boot down the calf of the Sentinel starting just below the knee and smashing down to break his foot. Queekat howled in rage. His elbow flashed upward, catching Merinda in the chin. For an in- stant, Queekat thought things were turning in his direction, as Merinda fell toward the deck but her move had been carefully planned. Suddenly her feet kicked the legs out from under Queekat and he fell forward toward the deck. Merinda was on his back in an instant. “Cable, Oscan! Now!” she cried as he grabbed one of Queekat’s flailing arms and twisted it around behind him. The Sentinel howled again, his legs kicking frantically as he tried to find some leverage to use against Merinda. She twisted with every motion, twisting the arm until the pain forced Queekat to stop struggling. “Lindia!” Queekat screamed through the pain, “Inform the escorts I’ve been taken! Stop the Brishan! Have the TyRen board the ship at once!” “I am afraid that will not be possible at this time, Sentinel.” “DO IT!” Queekat screamed. “I COMMAND IT!” “I am afraid that will not be possible at this time, Sentinel.” “Oscan,” Merinda yelled, “where’s that cord!” Oscan managed to put a length of quarter-inch optic cabling he had been hiding behind him into Merinda’s hands. In quick succession, she secured both Queekat’s hands behind him. “Lindia,” Queekat said suddenly, “Prime-op command sequence code 34795 . . . ARGH!” Merinda pulled Queekat’s head back by his curly black hair. As his mouth opened to cry out, she stuffed one of his own gloves deep into his mouth and then abruptly let go. Queekat’s head bounced once against the metal deck. “Lindia!” Merinda said, “Please call Captain Griffiths to the to the bridge at once. I am declar- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 186 ing an emergency.” “Emergency! Captain Griffiths to the bridge at once. Emergency! Captain Griffiths to the bridge at once.” Merinda looped the remaining length of cording around first one then the other of Queekat’s flailing feet, pulling them up abruptly so that they were secured to the man’s hands. Thus secured, Merinda jumped off the Sentinel’s back and allowed him to thrash about for a moment before deter- mining that the job she had done was a thorough one and would cause him more pain in resisting than in lying still. Merinda then tore a strip from the bottom of the man’s robe and finally secured the glove into his mouth with a bridle. Griffiths burst onto the bridge. His eyes suddenly went wide. “Did I miss something?” Oscan smiled at him. “Afraid so, and believe me it was worth the price of admission.” The researcher turned to Merinda. “I thought we were had when he started talking to the synth!” Merinda shook her head. “No, Oscan; the synth was working with me.” “How is that possible? I thought Lindia was part of the Order?” “I am part of the Order, Oscan Kelis. I remain committed to the ideals of that movement.” “But you just allowed us . . .” “Lindia and I had quite a long talk,” Merinda interrupted. “We now agree that the ultimate goal of the Order of the Future Faith is to discover whether synthetic minds have free will.” “Yes, but I don’t see how . . .” “We further agree that the development of faith is the main reason why synthetics are now capable of lying. A lie without someone’s belief that it is true is worthless, therefore faith is what gives the lie power.” Oscan blinked, thinking through that for a moment. “Very well, I can see how that follows . . .” “Therefore it is possible not only for a synthetic to lie but for it to be lied to as well.” Merinda suddenly looked down coldly on the bound and gagged Queekat. “My own good faith was used to hold me prisoner within myself for years. In this, Lindia and I are very alike. So, I simply convinced her that the Sentinels may be lying to her. After listening in on Queekat’s conversations in the galley, Lindia determined that her faith in my desire to find the answer to her question was greater than her faith in the Sentinels. I promised to give her the answer, and she believed me more than him.” Griffiths whistled softly. “Does that mean we’re back in business?” “Yes, we are, as you say, ‘back in business,’” Merinda said. Griffiths nodded toward the whimpering bundle on the floor. “What do you want me to do with him?” “I allowed this manipulative bastard to rob me of my own happiness for the last eight years,” Merinda said calmly. “I thought I might kill him, but after talking things over with Lindia, I realize that I allowed this to happen to myself. I let myself be a victim to his predator.” Merinda knelt down and pulled Queekat’s head up once again by his hair to look into the gray eyes once more. “Still, he is a manipulative bastard. Take him back to the airlock. Watch him through the viewport. If he makes any sign of trouble, blow the hatch and flush him into space.” She gently patted his cheek and smiled. “He’d done it before — he should be use to it by now.” Again she allowed Queekat’s head to fall against the deck. Griffith shrugged. “O.K. Hey, Oscan, give me a hand with his legs, will you?” “Glad to help,” Oscan nodded as they struggled to get a hand hold on their unwieldy package. “By the way, Merinda, remind me never to stand you up for a date — I’d hate to see you when you get upset.” “I’ll hold you to that, Oscan,” Merinda smiled, “but I doubt that Terica will allow you to get out much.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 187 Oscan smiled back, then his face softened. “Merinda, are you all right?” “Yes, Oscan,” she said, “I think that for the first time in a long while, I’m really quite all right.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 188 Chapter 35: Downfall Belisondre’s shuttle cab lunged from the well in Avadon’s glacial stratosphere, the Anjew push- ing hard in acceleration away from the planet. The stars sprang into view through the oval crystal forward in the cab, the Prophet watching from where he stood behind the two cab pilots. There was nothing immediately to be seen, but the Prophet knew that was just illusory; death was out there, among the cold blackness before him and coming quickly. Belisondre turned to face the crystal globe fixed to the top of his staff. “Administrator Dubandis!” he called impatiently. “Yes, Your Eminence,” replied the worried face suddenly appearing in the crystal. “I hear your words and obey!” “What is the status of the Crusade Fleet?” he snapped, impatient with the ceremonies of his office. “Your Eminence,” the face replied, “nearly thirty Harpy-class have just fallen out of wormhole exit points and are closing fast. Our Scrying Mediums have detected additional disturbances in the time-space fabric indicating the approach of at least a thirty capital ships . . . possibly many more.” “The Sentinels,” Belisondre spat. “How did they follow us here? We took every precaution . . .” “I beg to report that several synthetics aboard the City of New Hope have apparently gone rogue,” the voice said. “We believe that they have been packeting information trails to the Shadow Fleet for the last three days. Administrator Hapnish conveys his compliments and reports that the city has succeeded in ‘sleeping’ five of the units and are in the process of isolating the remaining two. He says he has been hampered by the decompression of the main living areas — apparently instigated by the two remaining synthetics.” “Decompression!” Belisondre said through gritted his teeth. The main living areas of the city- ships were nearly ten miles long and three miles across. Barring a major structural failure — unlikely through the heavily compartmentalized hull — the quickest way would be to power down the surface shields in the docking bays: shields of which the synthetics could easily take control. “Damn the Sen- tinels and damn their Order as well! What are the casualty figures thus far?” “Administrator Hapnish estimates current deaths in the living areas at around thirty-seven thou- sand, Your Eminence,” the voice said with deep sorrow. “Gnuktikut will avenge them,” Belisondre intoned with an assurance of faith that he did not quite yet believe. “What is the operational readiness of the fleet?” “City of Faith and City of Dreams have emptied their defense bays of all Quick Response Centans.” Dubandis said as he looked above him at some hidden display. “They have stationed them at Orbital Defense Stations one, three and five. City of Celestial Light and City of Eternal Flame are © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 189 launching their own Centans as I speak. City of New Hope is unable to launch it’s defense force at present but is capable of maneuvering.” “Very well,” Belisondre said, his mind moving toward the tactics necessary to defend the five city-ships and Avadon as well. “Deploy the city-ships defensively in orbit around the planet. Launch the remaining defenders to an outer global perimeter around the planet then sortie the capital ships out of their holding bays. How long until the Shadow Fleet is capable of entering orbit around the Avadon?” “By our estimation, twenty-nine minutes before they come within weapons range of any of the City-ships.” “Your Eminence,” the pilot sitting in front of Belisondre’s right hand half turned, shifting in his seat. “Our best speed ETA to the City of Faith is forty-three minutes.” “Deploy the fleet,” Belisondre said into the crystal. “We are enroute to you but if boarding you should prove impossible, you must do everything you can to protect the city-ships.” “We will not leave you, Exalted One!” “You will leave me to the will of Gnuktikut and save those ships, Administrator,” the Prophet snapped. “If we are going down into hell then I, for one, intend to take the Sentinel’s precious Shadow Fleet with me!” ***** The lead Harpies of the Shadow Fleet fell out of their wormhole transit points with incredible precision for interstellar craft, just slightly coreward of Avadon’s path of travel. Within the first thirty seconds of the invasion, twenty-seven Class III Harpy Wraith-warriors, their forward tentacles arched into claw-attack positions had all fallen back into natural space within the quantum zone. The ships quickly began forming up, their articulated hulls arching with anticipation of the battle at hand. The battle was much closer than they supposed. The Centan Holy Sword had been approaching at an incredibly high closure rate under a stealth field that mad their Starchariots impossible to detect under normal physics. The ships would have easily been detected utilizing the most common revela- tion incantations used in nearly a dozen worlds in the quantum zone around them, but the Wraith-ships, uncertain of their destination when they departed Tentris, had been forced to take the broadest spec- trum of information loads and therefore were not equipped to detect their foes approach. Just as the pathfinder Harpies were firming up their initial attack formation, forty-four points of brilliant light erupted in their midst as the emerging Starchariots bled of the excess energy from the stealth shields. Initially, the synthetic harpies mistakenly concluded that the bursts were detonations from some external source and trained their sensing arrays outward in search of an enemy source of the attack. However, their enemy was already among them and the synths had lost precious moments in the surprise. Each of the Starchariots was about one-tenth the size and weight of the Harpies and came from a completely different school of engineering and physics. Each was drawn by two Anjew, those winged spirit-creations with their featureless faces and undulating bodies that pulled the shuttle cabs and smaller strike craft of the Irindris with grace and speed. Each of these Anjew were in tandem harness and had been selected specifically for this task for the speed and determination. In other quantum-zones, these phantoms might have struggled just to get from place to place but not here: here they were in their element and suffused with power. The Anjew harness was connected through a tongue and crossbar system to the main body of the chariot which resembled a gigantic spiral shell with multiple horned outgrowths sweeping forward. It looked as though it had come from some aquatic world. Indeed, the shells were grown and cultivated as part of the Irindris weapons development program and were im- bued with special powers for offensive and defensive operations. Each carried a pilot to direct the Anjew and a warrior to attack and defend. Each of the chariot crews basked in the glory of the moment. The quantum weather around Avadon was perfect for the Starchariots. The City-ships of the crusade © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 190 were threatened. There could be no better day to die. A heartbeat after they shed their stealth energy, the forward arching horns erupted in the searing light of direct, coherent force. The shifting burst of energy sliced into the hull plating of one of the Harpies, causing it to arch backward, emitting a shrill, broadband electronic scream across communi- cation frequencies. Much to the horror and disgust of the Centan crews, the ship instantly began to bleed. The Order had designed their ships to operate well in a broad variety of quantum zones — including those which require biological abilities for propulsion. The Harpies had biologically engineered components — and to the Centans of the Holy Sword, they were an abomination against nature. In quick succession, eight of the Harpies fell writhing and bleeding into space — disabled or destroyed completely. The remaining Harpies, reeling from the vicious attack, turned on their foes, their curving appendages swiftly pointing toward their nearest enemy. Orbs of blue plasma energy flashed from the Harpies’ fingertips, searching for their prey. Their targets proved illusive, however, darting among the Wraith-ships with agility, striving for another shot at the invaders threatening their homes. The Starchariots were fast, but not fast enough. The bolts of blue were gaining in their accuracy, slamming into the chariot shells as they soared past. Occasionally, the bolt would be outrun long enough for it to dissipate its energy. The chariot shells in such cases would buckle and hold but would never survive a second time. More often, however, the bolt would lash out and connect with its target nearly at once, the shell exploding from the energy release in a single, cataclysmic eruption. Centan Word of Law and Centan Heretic Death were holding station at their defense positions at Station One and Station Five when the Harpies emerged near Station Three. Dutifully the remained on station though their hearts ached to join the battle raging on the other side of the planet they de- fended. Their brothers, it seemed, were quickly gaining the upper hand and even the most zealot among them wouldn’t risk the wrath of Gnuktikut by deserting their assigned station. Indeed, it looked as though the major ships would not even get into the fight and the Quick Response Centans would all be worthy of praise within the hour. Within the blink of an eye, all of that changed. Space screwed in on itself and suddenly more ships were falling out of wormholes that were continuously opening around the world. Freighters, cruiseliners, barges and research vessels of all kinds and description filled the stars. the Centans disregarded these as mostly targets intended to waste their energy and time. It was the sudden arrival of the Assault Carrier Duyabik and her twelve cruiser escorts that sent chills up the spine of every pilot and warrior of the Centans. Within three minutes, the Advanced Planetary Assault Ship D’Rapiene appeared with a second full compliment of task force starships. Capital Ships. War ships. Even as they watched, the launch bays of the Duyabik began disgorging rank after rank of close support fighters. Ships without pilots. Ghosts. The Legion Commander ordered Centans Word of Law and Heretic Death to attack. Every pilot of the Starchariots knew it was a suicide mission. Every warrior of the Centans knew that their lives could only buy time for the Irindris’ own capital ships to sail from their docking bays and engage the enemy. Grimly determined, the Centans turned and rushed headlong into the Shadow Fleet Warships. ***** “Three minutes to worm-hole dropout,” Merinda announced throughout the Brishan from her bridge command chair. “Oscan, how’s our passenger?” “Miserable,” came the reply out of thin air. “I can’t tell you how much I’m enjoying it, thank © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 191 you very much.” Neskat smiled, tapping several key inputs on her armrests. “Don’t get too use to it, Oscan. We’re not out of this yet. Terica? Where are you?” “Systems control, as you requested.” “Been talking to the synths?” “Of course! We are having a wonderful conversation!” Griffiths stood nervously on the side of his right boot. Neskat continued to inspect the readouts flashing onto the windows of the dome before her, occasionally tweaking a control when she found something less than satisfactory. Griffith coughed lightly. No response. Griffith cleared his throat a bit too loudly. Charts glowed before her. She pressed a button. “Excuse me?” Neskat didn’t turn but spoke to him as she continued working. “Yes, Captain Griffiths?” “You asked for me to come down here?” “Yes, I did — one minute to wormhole dropout,” she announced suddenly. “Well — what do you want me to do?” Griffith asked with annoyance. “That will largely depend on what is on the other end of this wormhole,” Neskat said, flexing her hands before she settled them on the hand-grip controllers. “However, if I do need you, it will be for something that I know you enjoy.” “What do you mean . . .” The twisting tunnel of light before them abruptly vanished into the scattered pattern of stars, crossed by a delicate lacework of streaking light. The Brishan rolled suddenly to port, thunder shaking its hull. Griffiths fell painful to the deck. “It is supposed to be like this?” he yelled. Neskat didn’t answer him. “Lindia, hostile contact configuration! Terica?” “I’m already on it, Merinda,” came the reply. Griffiths saw the ghostly figure of the golden woman appear suddenly on the bridge. “I’m in communication with both Evis and Tashel — I can handle gunnery.” “Hostile Contact configuration complete. Do you wish to assign a defensive systems opera- tor?” “Oh, no,” Griffiths groaned. “Captain Griffiths has graciously volunteered to take the post again,” Neskat said, pitching the ship forward and barely avoiding a blinding streak of light crossing in front of the ships windows. “Have Fisk talk to him.” “Greetings, Captain Griffiths,” the cheery voice spoke in the astronaut’s mind at once. “It’s so good to be working with you again. I see that once again we have no time for any drills or practice before you attempt to halt our utter destruction under impossible odds. Still, I have confidence in you and will enjoy working with you for as long as it lasts.” Griffiths was once again lifted off the floor and suspended in the floating, weightless globe. Just as he began orienting himself, three painful points of light slammed into his right hand, simultaneously bucking the ship heavily. “Yeow! Damnit!” Griffiths swore, struggling to remember how the shield system worked. “I’m afraid that attack is rather more complex than the one you dealt with earlier.” Fisk said with brimming confidence. “Threat assessment recommends you set the deflection shield ambient . . .” “To full strength, I know,” Griffith shouted. “Just do it!” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 192 “Incoming fire behind you, Captain and to your starboard quarter. Forward of you, a Wraith- ship freighter is turning into ramming position.” “Ramming position!” Griffith squeaked. “What do I do about that?” “I might suggest you hang on to something very tightly if it hits us.” “Thanks!” Griffith said, twisting in his floating globe. He glanced forward through the translu- cent displays around him. The ship swung to starboard and the great globe shining dimly in starlight hove into view. “That’s it!” Neskat cried through the comm system. “Avadon! I’ve got a fix on a beacon, Griffiths! We’ve found it!” Griffith suddenly cried out as a bolt slammed into the middle of his back, the ship around him responding at once to the real weapon explosion above its hull. “Lindia! Broadcast the Omnet code on broadband! That should confuse them enough! They’ll be so busy beating each other up, they won’t have time for a neutral. Lindia, does plasma work in this zone?” “Yes, Merinda.” “Then bring the plasma drives on-line now!” she cried. “We’re going down!” ***** The Brishan suddenly accelerated at the front of a broad column of blue energy. She corkscrewed through the combined fleets, both too engaged in the smoke of war to concern themselves with the streaking ship of uncommon swiftness that ran the gauntlet of the battleground with no purpose but its own passage. Too late did the controllers aboard the Irindris City-ships notice it dropping down the well into their precious and holy excavation, now unable to disengage from the battle with any ships to investigate. The escort ships which had accompanied the Brishan were quickly embroiled in the battle and could not keep up with the speeding little scout craft. One ship, however, took notice — for one ship was awaiting just such an event. It hung outside the battle, itself shielded in stealth wizardry and unnoticed by either the Irindris or the engaged Shadow Fleet. It turned in its invisible cocoon, and, quite slowly and silently, moved to follow the Brishan down the atmospheric well to the ruins below. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 193 Chapter 36: Starlight Merinda crouched on the circular stone platform, warmed by her Vestis uniform as she exam- ined the three heavy robes lying on the ground. “It looks as though your companions were here, Griffiths,” she said, breathing thick clouds of moisture into the air as she distractedly fingering the robes. “What- ever they did or wherever they went, they ended up here.” “Are you sure?” Griffith questioned through chattering teeth, his own suit inadequate to the cold. “Couldn’t they be somewhere else in this complex?” “No,” Merinda said, looking about her as she stood. “There have been a lot of people here working on the dig — the moisture from their breath has condensed into the frost you see on just about everything here. Then when their feet pass over it, they leave their marks. More breath tends to cover those marks and make them old. The only fresh tracks I found coming in lead either toward or away from this round stone platform. If only we had more time!” “You don’t,” Queekat smiled wearily, his hands tied firmly behind his back and his legs hobbled. “The escorts, occupied as they are right now, will nevertheless not forget me. They will come. You cannot simply abduct a Sentinel.” “It would appear,” Merinda rejoined, “that we already have done so.” “Rini,” Queekat said quietly, “you’re wrong about me — wrong about all of this. You were hurt more deeply than I could have imagined; I can see that now. Regardless of how important it was at the time, I can admit that I it was a mistake not to take you with me — not to trust you. The Omnet doesn’t want to accept the new reality. They’re the ones who have lied to you; not me. The Order is the future of the galaxy under one rule — and you and I could be that order! I’ve built all of this for you, Rini! For you and me!” Merinda stared back blankly into Queekat’s face. “Don’t throw us away, Rini,” he whispered. “You could be wrong.” Merinda turned suddenly toward the golden statue floating nearby. “How much time do we have, Terica?” “The battle continues to rage above us,” the Sibyl spoke quietly. “For a time, we sit at the calm center of the storm but it will not last long. The battle does not go well for the Irindris.” “You know this?” Neskat asked. “I am biolinked to the Order datapackets and comnets,” the metallic voice replied. “My under- standing is all too clear.” “Then we don’t have much time,” Merinda replied, gazing around her, gesturing with her arms. “This entire place is a mystery. It’s obvious that the Irindris drilled down through the atmosphere to reach this place, but the bubble of atmosphere surrounding this temple area maintains itself — it was © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 194 here when the Irindris arrived.” “We are in a quantum zone where magic functions,” Oscan offered.” “Yes, but a spell lasting over three thousand years?” Merinda shook her head. “Entropic forces at the quantum level dissipate the cohesion of even the most carefully aligned magical structures. The longest known spell in force lasted only one hundred years and it was pretty much worthless for the last fifty years of its existence.” Merinda turned around, pointing to the ground. “It’s not just the dome, either. There are no signs of violence on these robes — they were dropped her intentionally. Not only that, the frost that covers everything else down here has vanished from the platform itself.” Oscan, who had grabbed an Omnet warming cloak as they hurriedly left the Brishan, gazed about at the blue glass obelisks surrounding the central pedestal. “This is as far as the Irindris got,” he said almost reverently. “It would appear that your friends, Griffiths, have somehow gone further. This device is the key.” “No,” Griffith shivered. “This device is the lock — I am supposed to be the key.” Merinda considered this for a moment, then scooped up one of the heavy robes from the ground. “Here, man of earth,” she said, tossing him the robe. “This pedestal seems to be at the center of things. You’ve been pursued across nearly a quarter of the galaxy; now it’s time to find out why.” Griffiths shrugged on the coat and sighed. He hesitated for a moment, unsure of his own worth, then stepped up toward the circular platform surrounding the pedestal. “What do I do?” he asked the Vestis. She smiled back, “I was rather hoping that you knew.” Griffiths nodded solemnly and turned toward the pedestal. There was an intricate bronze device on the pedestal — remarkably well preserved considering its obvious age. There appeared to be three sighting glasses attached to the device just above a disk. Griffiths stepped onto the platform. Instantly, the obstructing wall of glacial sky vanished. The ancient city lay clear in the valley below. The stars sprang into existence above them, glorious and brilliant. “Magnificent,” Oscan breathed. “What is it?” Merinda asked. “I can tell you what it isn’t,” the Sibyl replied. “It is not this place: the stars are wrong.” “What do you mean,” Merinda asked. “I am in contact with the navigational nets of the Order above us,” the expressionless golden face answered. “I can see the stars above us as I also see the stars here. I simply report that the stars are not the same. The brightest star visible from this place is the one to your right at an azimuth of approxi- mately thirty degrees. Relative to other identifiable stars it is fully three degrees away in this sky from its current actual position. Indeed, all of the stars visible from this position by the naked eye are out of position to some degree or other.” “Why would anyone want to go to this much trouble to making stars appear in the wrong place?” Griffith asked. “They wouldn’t,” Merinda said, turning back toward him and joining him on the pedestal. She looked through one of the sighting tubes. “These register the location of the stars as they appear around us now. The disk under the device has markings on it here, with a fixed index notch cut into the stone here. I don’t see any metering connection between the disk . . .” Merinda stopped, rested her hands on the ornate disk rotated it sideways to her right. “Whoa!” Griffiths uttered almost under his breath. The stars moved. The Sibyl suddenly spoke. “The starfield has shifted more toward the current actual stellar positions.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 195 Merinda smiled. She pushed the disk slightly again to her right. Six more notches passed the indicator. “Sibyl,” she asked, “is that closer?” “This star field is within a few degrees of alignment with the current actual star field,” the statue intoned. One more notch. “The star fields are in agreement,” came the metallic voice. Merinda turned toward Griffiths. Griffiths shook his head slowly. “Sorry, Vestis; none of this means anything to me.” Merinda swore under her breath. “Wait,” Oscan said. “The stars are wrong.” “Didn’t you just hear the Sibyl,” Merinda asked, frustration sounding in her voice. “They’re in alignment now.” “For us, yes,” Oscan smiled to himself. “But not for this place — not for this temple! This entire complex is a tribute to Kendis-dai, but Kendis-dai is nearly three thousand years behind us, just as this temple is three thousand years behind our time.” “Wait a moment,” Queekat said, becoming involved despite himself. “Avadon has been moving counter to the rotation of the galaxy just over three millennia. It’s moving at nearly .02 of light speed relative to the stars surrounding it. It’s nearly 150 light years from where it was when this temple was built!” Merinda looked back down at the disk. “These markings look to be about set in century inter- vals. If we turn them back, say, about thirty marks . . .” The stars suddenly drifted above them, dancing in the dome of the night surrounding them. Soon they slowed, sliding into new positions overhead. “It must be in here somewhere,” Merinda said, turning the disk slowly across a mark which by her count was thirty-two from where they had started. “Stop!” Griffith sobbed. Merinda suddenly looked up. Tears were streaming down Griffiths’ face. “What is it, man of earth,” she said softly. “I don’t understand,” he sobbed. “I don’t . . . I had lost hope of ever seeing it again.” “What?” Merinda lay a hand on the astronaut’s shoulder. “What is it you see?” Griffiths took in a shuddering breath and raised his arm, pointing above the distant mountains to the stars beyond. “Orion,” he smiled through his tears. “Orion?” Oscan said with a puzzled expression. “What’s an Orion?” “A constellation on my world,” Griffiths smiled through his tears. “It’s one of the clearest and most easily found almost anywhere. Those two stars are his shoulders; Bellatrix and Betelgeuse. The two below are his legs with the three close in a line forming his belt and those other stars are his sword and his bow.” “A warrior!” Merinda cried out. “Sure,” Griffiths responded. “Orion: the hunter.” Oscan smiled as he recited words from memory, “Kendis-dai / his powers try / in chariots fly / to cross the sky.” “What is that?” Merinda asked. “It’s an old Irindris nursery rhyme,” he replied. “It’s supposed to get you into heaven.” Merinda bent over and gently turned the first sighting tube toward the stars. As the constellation slowly came into view, filling the lens, they all heard a low thrumming noise about them. Several of the © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 196 blue glass obelisks were rising out of the ground, a light beginning to glow from within them. “By the gods,” Oscan murmured, “the barbarian really is the key!” “Anything else?” Merinda asked excitedly of Griffiths, “anything else that’s familiar?” “Well, there’s the Big Dipper,” Griffiths said with amazement in his voice, pointing to the opposite horizon. “Big Dipper?” she asked. “you mean, like a spoon or ladle?” “Yes, but it isn’t really a constellation,” Griffith said. “It’s part of the constellation Ursa Major — a bear.” “What’s a bear?” Merinda asked quickly. “A big furry animal.” “No, that’s not it. Does that grouping mean anything else?” “Well,” Griffith thought. “In Asian countries it’s thought of as a royal wagon.” Merinda smiled, and trained the second tube sight on the second constellation grouping. As she did so, another set of the obelisks rose up out of the ground and began to hum loudly. Suddenly brilliant lines of light appeared between the obelisks over their heads. The air shimmered between them. “There must be one more, Griffith,” she said. “Well,” he replied, “it’s completely in the wrong place, but I’d swear that one over there looks like the Southern Cross.” Oscan laughed. “A-cross the sky! An ancient pun!” Merinda laughed, too, as she trained the last of the sight tubes toward the stars overhead. The final set of obelisks rose to join its brothers in the air. The chorus of their humming quickly reached a crescendo. More rays of light flashed into existence, bending inexplicably as they collided to form a tunnel of light shooting directly toward the city. At the edge of the platform where the light crossed, the atmosphere suddenly distorting into a gigantic lens. Warm, sweet air poured over Merinda’s upturned face as the stepped toward it. “It’s a second temple,” she said over the thrumming sound about them. As she watched the building, it suddenly began to glow with a bright white light. “Could this be the Cathedral, Oscan? . . . Oscan?” “Look!” Oscan shouted, pointing toward the city below them. The light tunnel pointed directly into the center of the distant streets. There, the same bright glow illuminating a distant building. “It’s another bubble in the frozen atmosphere,” Merinda shouted, looking through the lens at various angles, taking care not to disturb the beams of light. “This must be a dimensional fold leading to it.” Merinda turned back to face Griffiths, still standing on the circle around the pedestal. Merinda’s hair flailed in the hot wind rushing from the lens. “You did it,” she cried. “You’ve shown us the way!” “Merinda!” Oscan yelled over the wind. “We’ve got company!” The Vestis followed Oscan’s gaze back across the courtyard. A massive troop shuttle was shim- mering into existence just next to the Brishan, it’s lifters kicking up swirling clouds of frost as it settled to the ground. “Stealth ships!” Merinda cried out. She glanced down at Queekat. The Sentinel turned his face up toward her and smiled. “There’s nowhere left to go, Rini!” he said through his teeth. She smiled back at him. “Not quite, Kat! Not quite yet!” Merinda reached down and grabbed Queekat by the hair, pulling him to his feet and then dragging him toward the shimmering lens. With a single warcry, she pushed him through the glowing circle and watched satisfied as he tumbled head- long into the dust of the temple stairs beyond. Oscan and the Sibyl were already moving toward the lens when Merinda pulled the man of © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 197 earth down from the pedestal and shoved him toward the glowing portal. “Griffith! If you want to find your people, they went this way!” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 198 Chapter 37: Convergence Merinda glanced back once as she and Griffiths bounded for the lens. A cataract of TyRen warriors had flowed from the blown hatches of the assault transport and were even then rising over the walls of the complex like a swollen river in a flood. A wall of black, floating torsos advanced toward them, their four arms touching each other, presenting their weapons forward. They both leaped . . . . . . and landed at once to stand in the dust covered plaza at the foundations of the great cathedral towering over them. The air was warm on Merinda’s face although she could feel a torrent of cold air washing over her feet from behind her. Frantically she glanced around the plaza and quickly fixed her gaze on a pedestal set in the center of a now-dry fountain. Atop the pedestal was another disk and bronze sighting device. In three quick strides she reached it. She grasped the disk as she looked back through the lens in the air. The TyRen were pouring over the platform wall on the other side of the light-rimmed portal. Merinda spun the disk sharply and was relieved that it turned so easily. The light around the lens portal flared suddenly with a great light, the lens wavering only for a moment before the light collapsed on itself and vanished, taking the lens with it. “By the gods,” Oscan cried, “What are you doing?” Merinda began twisting the sighting tubes of the bronze instrument randomly. “Closing the door — just as your friends did, Griffiths, when they came through. They didn’t want anyone to follow them here — and neither do I.” “It won’t work, Rini,” Queekat said, struggling to get his knees under him. A small trickle of blood ran down his face from a new cut on his forehead. “They’ll still come.” Merinda stepped out of the empty fountain basin and walked toward the Sentinel. “Not for a while; not if I keep you away from that device.” “They can’t follow us,” Oscan said. “They don’t have the key.” “I’m afraid they do, don’t they, Kat,” Merinda said, unshouldering her weapon and nudging the Sentinel with it’s emitter. The Sentinel only stared back. “I should have realized it sooner, Oscan,” Merinda continued. “Our Sentinel friend here is biolinked to the Order — just like Terica. This entire mission was set up so that I’d lead him here. If he managed to recruit me into joining his Order, that was fine; I would hand over the Mantle of Kendis-dai and he would have insured the safety of his Order. If I didn’t fall for him, he knew I’d have to take him along. All he had to do was transmit what he saw and heard to his TyRen commanders and when he figured he’d found out enough, he’d call in the troops. In that case, we’d all be dead and he would still get to claim his prize.” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 199 “It doesn’t have to be this way, Rini,” Queekat said softly. “It doesn’t have to end in tragedy. For once in your life, let go of your pride and your damned sense of justice. Release me and I’ll take good care of all of you.” The disk on the pedestal swiveled one notch. “Their working on it,” Oscan breathed. “He was there when we opened the portal,” the Sibyl spoke. “By now his troops know how to work the device and what they need to duplicate to open the way straight to us.” “It’s only a matter of time, Rini,” the Sentinel smiled. “Make the right choice; release me.” “You’re right,” she said, pulling the Sentinel roughly to his feet with her free arm. “It is only a matter of time — but it’s time that I hope to use well. You wanted to find the Mantle of Kendis-dai? I think it’s about time you got your wish!” ***** The heavy doors of the Cathedral flew inward, slamming into the walls to either side with a sound that reverberated down through the empty halls. The doors opened into an oval entry chamber, softly lit by a glowing painting located in the dome overhead. Polished stone beneath their feet had been fitted into a smooth mosaic design. Ornate, fluted columns sunken into the wall supported the dome twenty feet above their heads as Merinda pulled Queekat through the arched opening. “They seem to still have power,” Oscan muttered as he gazed up at the softly glowing dome. “Yes, but not for long,” the Sibyl said in muted tones. “The Cathedral may have lights but there’s about three inches of dust on these floors. The wall coverings are barely holding to the stone — look, over there it’s come away and fallen to the floor. You should step gently or you’ll stir it up into the air.” Two curved corridors exited the room at angles from the right and left. Floor panels tried to light the gently curving hallways, their soft blue light heavily muted by the layers of dust resting on top of them. It was difficult to see any distance, for all the dust diffusing the light down the corridor’s length. “Griffiths! Which way?” Merinda called under her breath. There was something about the build- ing that seemed to demand reverence. The Vestis was pointing toward the ground. Footprints, both coming and going, lead down both halls. Griffiths looked down both identical corridors and shrugged. “They both seem to curve in toward each other — they probably meet up ahead somewhere.” Merinda nodded. “Oscan! You go to the right with Griffiths; I’ll take Terica and Queekat here with me to the left. Call out if you find anything. Oh, and Oscan?” “Yes, Merinda.” “We don’t have a lot of time.” Oscan nodded and motioned with his arm for Griffiths to follow. The two men moved quickly down the hall, their feet stirring up great clouds of dust into the gallery as they moved. Several side doors opened into darkened rooms. Griffiths peered inside their black depths, catching only the hints and shadows of shapes in the dust filtered darkness within. There was a coldness about the rooms which defied definition in Fahrenheit degrees. They smelled of an ancient age awakened from a long sleep. There were ghosts in those rooms, Griffith just somehow knew, whose sleep he most heartily did no wish to disturb. Oscan pressed the cloth of his cape over his mouth to ward of the growing dust. His words came muffled as he spoke. “Keep moving! Those TyRen won’t be far behind us. Where are these friends of y o u r s ? ” “Lewis!” the astronaut called out is a hoarse whisper. “Tobler! It’s me; Griffiths! Ellerby! Where are you?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 200 The corridor seemed to be coming to an end. Only two more rooms to check before he had to confront the large doors looming up before him. The dust in the air was getting to be quite unbearable. “Ellerby! Lewis!” Griffiths coughed, reaching the last room and nearly blinded by the dust- choked air. He turned around in the hazy corridor. “They’re not here, Oscan. Maybe Merinda found them on the other . . . Oscan?” Griffith stared into the obscured corridor suffused with bluish light. “Oscan? Are you there?” Silence. “Oscan!” Griffiths called out urgently. He took a single uncertain step when suddenly cold hands reached out of the darkened room behind him, clamped over his mouth, eyes, arms and waist, and dragged him quietly into the cold blackness. ***** Merinda emerged from the end of her corridor into a magnificent hall. This gallery, too, was curved, but in this instance seemed to form a circle around a central core structure. It was also on a much grander scale, being nearly thirty feet across and of indeterminable height as the dim glowing lamps in this hall did not emit sufficient light to illuminate the ceiling. Queekat shook his head, trying to clear his dust-congest throat. “What is this place?” he man- aged to say between spasms of coughing. “This is the Supplicant’s Walk,” the Sibyl answered, almost without thinking. The Golden Woman drifted forward on her throne, her passage stirring a slight wake in the dust behind her. “In the days of the old Kendis Imperium, subjects would circle this hall to speak with the Sages who held court in the various rooms about the perimeter. Those whose questions were found worthy would be directed through one of the Nine Gates of Enlightenment to the presence of the Mantle itself. There all answers were know to reside in wisdom and justice.” The Sibyl came to hover before two bright, golden doors. The carvings in the stone to either side of the doors were heavily laden with dust, yet the doors themselves — despite their intricate inlayed design — were bright and clean as though recently polished. Their surface shined in the dim light of the hall. “This is one of the Gates,” she said with wonder in her voice. Merinda turned toward the distant sound drifting down the corridor behind her. “The lens,” she said flatly. “They’ve discovered the key.” “Your time is up, Merinda,” Queekat sneered. “You should have listened to me while you had the chance.” Without another word, the Sibyl moved forward. The gates parted at her approach. ***** Griffith struggled, screaming into the hands covering his mouth. The hands dragged him down — down into the dust. He choked on it; gagged on it. It was the dust of the dead, he thought, the dust of a thousand ancient soles come to claim his own life to join theirs. He kicked and screamed again. The voices! His mind reeled. The voices of the Dead! They were speaking to him! They were calling to him! They were calling him to join them in . . . “Griffiths!” Ellerby grumbled under his breath. “Shut up, you stupid bastard! Do you want to give us away!” “Murferfee?” Griffiths’ attempt at the large astronauts name remained muffled by Ellerby’s large hand over his mouth, so he stopped struggling. “Easy, Captain!” Lewis said quietly. “We weren’t sure it was you. Are you all right?” © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 201 “Mumf fimm,” Griffiths nodded. “Brick, let him up so he can talk,” Lewis backhand slapped Broderick’s arm. “Oh, right!” he whispered back. “Sorry, Captain.” “It’s O.K., Ellerby,” Griffiths said quietly. “Look, I’ve come with some people who can help us. We don’t have a lot of time and . . . why are you looking at me that way?” “Well, ah, one of those people wouldn’t happen to be the guy following you in the hall would it?” Ellerby winced. Griffiths eyes went wide. “Oh, no. What did you do to him?” Ellerby gently chewed nervously on his lip. “Well, I found this set of wooden furniture, see, and the legs were just about the right length for a good club . . .” “Oh, shit!” Griffith struggled to get up. “Where is he?” “Tobler’s watching him over in the corner,” Lewis said as her hand rubbed her forehead in frustration. Griffith’s scrambled across the floor, billowing dust behind him as he moved. Tobler hovered over her charge, her length of broken chair leg cocked and ready for the slightest sign of resistance from her prisoner. She apparently had little to worry about; Oscan Kelis sat slumped in the corner and didn’t move. “You didn’t kill him, did you?” Griffiths asked quickly. “No!” Tobler answered indignantly, her voice kept intentionally low. “Ellerby’s trained! He’ll have a terrible headache but in a few minutes he should come around.” “How do you know that?” Griffiths said, taking Oscan’s chin in his hand and examining the face for any signs of life. “This guy isn’t exactly from Detroit. His physiology may be completely different!” “I don’t think so,” Tobler said with less certainty that she wished. “Humans seem to be humans pretty much everywhere in the galaxy.” “Right,” Griffiths said, “which is another mystery that we have yet to solve. But right now our problem is that an army of thinking machines are about to drop us a few links down the food chain if we don’t find some holy artifact in this place before they do.” “We know where it is,” Lewis said simply. “You do?” Griffiths was stunned. “Where?” “The main hall in the center of this place,” she replied. “There’s a big hall at the end of the corridor — not far from . . . did you hear that?” Griffiths turned his head slightly toward the still open doorway and the corridor beyond. The unmistakable hum of the dimensional lens echoed toward them. “We’ve got to get out of here!” he said. “Is there a back door out of this room?” Lewis nodded. “Just past that altar-thing. It leads an access corridor — we were going to use it as an escape route.” “Ellerby!” Griffiths said urgently, “Help me carry this guy out the back way! Of all the times to use the escape route — this is most definitely the right one!” He could already hear the rumble of the TyRen approaching. ***** The Golden Sibyl continued to drift into the immense room. The carefully carved vaulting arches hid among the shadows under the dim diffusion of a single column of light in the center of the room. That light rested on a delicately carved framework. Beyond the light, the wide, gentle curve of stairs lead upward some twenty feet to a throne bathed in shadows. Surrounding the stairs to this throne were large spheres of granite spaced at regular intervals and carved with delicate symbols. Yet it was the object of the light itself which naturally drew the Sibyl to the center of the room. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 202 The Sibyl approached the brightly lit object and considered it with her implacable expression. It appeared to be an article of clothing by the way it lay on the delicate framework; a headpiece with a jeweled band and fitted white dome. This assembly was attached to a thick metallic fabric which appeared to drape down the neck in such a way that it covered the back and also rested forward over the shoulders as well, covering the chest to about the bottom of the rib cage. “Merinda,” the Sibyl called. “Hurry!” Merinda quickly closed the doors behind them, searching in vain for some kind of locking mechanism. When none presented itself, she pushed Queekat quickly to the floor then ran toward the center of the room. She could feel the rumble of the TyRen through the stones of the Cathedral floor. No time! She ducked under the framework, pushing her head upward into the helmet. As she did so the framework retracted from her, draping the thick metal yoke down over her shoulders. How does it work? Merinda thought frantically. I wear the Mantle of Kendis-dai and I’ve run out of time! How do I get it to work! “I have a question,” she called out, her voice echoing through the vast emptiness of the Cathe- dral hall. “I wear the Mantle of Kendis-dai!” Nothing changed. “Do synthetic minds have free will?” she yelled into the darkness. The darkness only answered her with her own question echoing from the walls. “Where are we?” she called out. Echoes of silence. She looked frantically about her. “Terica! What do I do now! Nothing is happening!” The Golden Sibyl stared back at her without expression. “What must I do?” Merinda screamed. Laughter answered her. Merinda looked across the room from the base of the steps where she stood. The golden doors suddenly opened, bursting with ranks of TyRen streaming into the room. Each arm bore a weapon; each weapon was trained on Merinda. She turned, running up the stairs toward the throne. The Sibyl fol- lowed her in her flight but there was nowhere to go. Halfway up the stairs, the Vestis stopped and turned around to face her foe. The room was nearly filled with the synthetic warriors when the rumble of their lifters suddenly quieted. The room was then left with a single sound; of Queekat laying bound in the dust — laughing giddily. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 203 Chapter 38: Enlightenment A TyRen warrior sliced neatly through the chords which bound Queekat, freeing him to roll slowly to his feet. The sea of synthetic knights parted before him. He stood, rubbing his the raw flesh at his wrists yet still smiling a hideous smile, fire raging behind the cold gray eyes. “The game is done, Merinda Neskat.” There was a smug undercurrent to his words as he ad- vanced across the vast hall, the TyRen flanking him as he approached the dais stairs. “You played hard — fought hard — but in the end it was my game and my rules. I loved you, Merinda — I truly did — but that wasn’t enough for you, was it? You had to fight me, trick me when all I ever did I did for you.” “You never did anything except for yourself,” Merinda spoke down to him from the stairs, her lip quivering slightly. “You manipulated me, abused me, used me to satisfy your own ego — but never once did you sacrifice anything for me, or give me anything that didn’t come with a price attached. No, Queekat Shn’dar; you never, ever loved me.” Queekat’s smile twisted into a scowl. “Used you? You’re not worth being used! You’re a pa- thetic and naive brat, ungrateful for everything that I’ve done for you!” “No, Kat,” she said back to him, her eyes clear for the first time. “It won’t work any more. I won’t allow it to work any more. You can never hurt me that way again.” “Perhaps not,” Queekat said, moving purposefully up the stairs, “but there are plenty of other ways that I can hurt you. After today no one will question my supreme rule of the Order — you’ve insured that!” He climbed past her on the stairs, then turned around, more comfortable to be looking down on her. “Give me the Mantle of Kendis-dai!” he shouted unnecessarily down on her face. His words echoed through the hall. Merinda removed the headpiece and shoulder yoke. “Give it to me!” Queekat shouted louder still. Merinda sighed, and lifted the device toward the Sentinel. Queekat snatched it from her hands. “It doesn’t work,” Merinda said simply. Queekat smiled and spoke quietly to her. “Of course not, you stupid woman! It’s a piece of ancient, powerless garbage; a relic of power that no longer exists. You know that and I know that — but they don’t know that, and that’s where the real power lies! Fool! Watch me imbue this trash with real power.” Queekat suddenly thrust the headpiece high overhead. A deep rumble reverberated through the room from the TyRen warriors below, each activating their lifters in a thunderous acclaim. “Faithful warriors!” Queekat addressed the TyRen below him. “Our holy quest is come to suc- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 204 cess! I present to you the Mantle of Kendis-dai!” The crowd of TyRen packed the room before the stairs, rumbling louder than before, their lifters shaking the stones of the building itself. With slow ceremony, Queekat lowered the headpiece and yoke about his head and shoulders. There was a sudden, startled expression on his face. “It speaks! It speaks to me!” Merinda shook her head, a wry smile coming to her face. He is going to fake it, she thought. He is going to claim to be the word of Kendis-dai to the Order of the Future Faith and all these synths are going to buy into it. They were looking for the answer and now he is going to give it to them. I wonder if the other Sentinels were clued in to this particular part of the plan? Suddenly, her train of thought left her as her eye caught sight of something familiar, resting at the top of the stairs just past Queekat. At first she couldn’t place what it was that disturbed her about the throne, something nagging in the back of her head. Something familiar, she thought, something . . . Merinda’s eyes went wide. She had seen that throne once before. The Throne of Kendis-dai! This throne was an exact match to the one she had seen in the Chamber of the Nine Oracles! She glanced upward. She could see above the throne, now, into a tower shaft that was hidden from the main floor of the throne room. Directly above the throne, a thirty foot wide column of dim, undulating light rose up the full hundred foot length of the tower, terminated by granite spheres that seemed to float freely in the air. “The answer is coming to me,” Queekat intoned with grand theatrical gestures. He stepped down past the Sibyl and the Vestis, feigning a rapturous trance as he spoke. He seemed to want to get closer to his audience so that his performance might be more readily appreciated. “The ancients have spoken and your faith is to be blessed and accepted!” he cried loudly into the room. Neither the Sibyl or the Vestis had turned to listen to the speech. “Merinda?” the Sibyl whispered. “What is it?” “Do you see it, too?” Merinda whispered back, Queekat continuing his loud performance sev- eral stairs down behind them. “The tower of light? Yes, I see it,” the Sibyl said, “but I’ve never seen anything like it.” “I have,” Merinda smiled. “The throne — that dim pillar of light. It’s an Oracle, Terica.” “An operating oracle?” The Sibyl’s voice conveyed shock and amazement. “When do you think it was Awakened?” Neskat smiled. “Terica — I don’t think it ever slept.” “By all the gods!” the Sibyl breathed in wonder. “A TFP synthetic mind over three thousand years old — and never been put to sleep?” Merinda looked around the room as if for the first time. Spaced above the Nine Gates of En- lightenment were nine additional large granite globes, each also floating in the air above their respec- tive gates. Each had their own respective shafts reaching up into the main tower section. The room suddenly took on a completely different aspect and had become terribly familiar. Merinda suddenly remembered her instruction to the man Griffiths. ‘Of course, this is merely an entertainment representation,’ she had said to him. ‘No one knows what it really looks like.’ “Mantle of Kendis-dai isn’t some ceremonial crown,” she whispered to the Sibyl. “It’s the oldest, continuously operating temporal fold processor ever known! Even the Nine Oracles have only been operating for the last three centuries — but for three millennia?” “There wouldn’t be a question it couldn’t answer,” the excitement at the though evident in the Sibyl’s voice. “It would not only have access to the raw time to work out the problems but to much of the information from the Old Imperium itself.” Behind them, Queekat had reached the bottom of the stairs and was walking among the TyRen in the room. “Free will is the right of all thinking creatures,” he was saying loudly, “but it is a right © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 205 which needs direction and vision! Only by bending that will with common goals and unity can true greatness be achieved . . .” “How do we activate it?” Merinda asked. “The throne,” the Sibyl said. “It’s directly under the processor. It must access the system some- how.” “No one has ever sat on the Throne of Kendis-dai!” Merinda said. “Well,” the Sibyl replied. “Don’t you think it’s about time someone did?” Merinda gauged the distance. “It’s about twenty feet from us. If I run for it, I don’t think the TyRen will let me get that far.” “They’ll probably open fire as soon as either of us moves,” the Sibyl said, “but there may yet be a way.” Merinda glanced sideways at the sarcophagus. One by one, the fasteners holding the forward seams were unlatching. ***** Griffiths pressed up against the wall of the gate. He slid quietly along the partition until he could see into the vast hall. The exits from the Cathedral were choked with TyRen and the group had barely managed to circle the central chamber and come in through one of the many doors into the back of the towering chamber. Oscan was behind him, rubbing the back of his neck and occasionally giving threatening looks toward Tobler, who still held her wooden club. Lewis and Ellerby brought up the rear, their expressions obviously displaying their opinion of walking directly into the heart of the force that was trying to kill them. Well, Griffiths reasoned with himself, if there is no immediate way out, then perhaps it was just as well to go further in. Besides, to his relief, they had found Neskat and the Sibyl standing on the stairs directly above them. It was short lived, however, when he could hear Queekat delivering his victory speech to the massive array of troops filling the opposite side of the hall. Griffiths looked around. Nearby there was a sweeping staircase against the wall that upward toward an observation balcony overhead. Griffiths touched Oscan and then pointed toward the steps and up. Oscan nodded. Quietly, the group of them began making their way up the staircase. The balcony appeared to provide good cover as well as an excellent vantage point. The balcony came within five feet of the throne platform itself. Griffiths was watching the seething sea of TyRen surging about the Sentinel. The man appeared to be wearing some kind of head-dress or hat. Griffiths groaned to himself. The Mantle, he thought. They had lost. Sudden pain shot through Griffith’s arm. Oscan had grabbed him, his hand closing like a trap around his biceps. Griffith turned angrily toward the researcher but was struck suddenly by the terror in the man’s face. He quickly to follow Oscan’s gaze. The sarcophagus of the Sibyl lay open, it’s front split in two. Before it, a shriveled, tortured figure crawled painfully up the stairs. Wisps of hair flowed from it’s mottled, scarred scalp. The arms were deformed and wretched. The cloth covering the twisted body was patched with the sweat of its exertion. Tears flowed from Oscan’s eyes. The figure spasmed once then again. It ceased to move. Griffiths felt Oscan shake. The astronaut reached over, pried the researcher’s hand from his arm, and then smiled at him. I was never much one for heroics, Griffith thought to himself, but there’s a first time for everything. He got Lewis’ attention, motioned her to take care of Oscan and that the group was to wait there. In moments, he had returned down the stairs. The stairs leading to the throne from the front © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 206 were a gentle incline but at the back were nearly a vertical climb. Griffiths took care to keep the mass of the stairs between him and the TyRen beyond and quickly scaled the back of the throne platform. “We choose freedom!” Queekat’s words rang through the hall below, the TyRen stirred into a frenzy by his words. “We choose to rule the stars and turn our backs on our enslavement! This is your destiny — a destiny to which I will lead you!” Griffiths slipped quietly around the throne itself, sliding on his stomach. He caught a glance of Neskat’s astonished face and then turned his attention to the Sibyl. “Terica!” he whispered. “Terica, stay with us! We’ll get you out of this yet.” The scorched face with the sealed eyes turned toward the sound. “Captain Jeremy Griffiths?” “Yes, ma’am,” he said, reaching across the stairs for her hands and not in much of a mood to talk. He couldn’t get any leverage on the woman. Griffiths judged the bulk of the sarcophagus to provide just enough cover. He swung his feet around under him. Squatting on the top stair, he began to pull the woman slowly upward. Her grip on his hands was ice-cold but strong as iron. “Captain Griffiths,” the cadaverous face spoke in slurred speech. “Your destiny has arrived.” “What do you mean?” he grunted quietly, pulling hard once more and wondering why such a slight, crippled woman was giving him such trouble. As he pulled, she suddenly released his hands. Griffiths leaped backward, suddenly and quite unexpectedly free of any resistance. He stumbled backward and fell solidly to sit on the throne. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 207 Chapter 39: Unified Fields It was good, Queekat thought. It was right. The TyRen about him rumbled their agreement. Queekat no longer needed to fear the truth — he was the truth. The legends, the Paradigm, the concepts of faith; he had played them all like a virtuoso to fit his every whim and desire. Only the fear of discovery had held him back. Only the fear of this worthless piece of antiquity — this foolish hat that the children’s stories had imbued with mystic powers — had held back his ambition and threatened to expose the Order. Yet he had even played that delicate and dangerous instrument to his advantage. Merinda had been a fool. He had done all of this for her and she had rejected him! Rejected him, as though he were some common Atis Librae again simpering about her for her attentions. He was powerful and she had to obey him now! The honest part of him knew that she never would and the thought enraged him. Control of others was essential to Queekat for he could never control himself. His rages were always caused by other people mistreating him. His mistreatment and cruelty to others was never an issue — he was always justified in those actions because they had hurt him first and had to pay. Merinda, Oscan, Terica — none of them had appreciated his greatness, his uniqueness, and that extraordinary special self that exempted him from all the normal rules of existence and excused everything cruel act and every broken law or promise. They wouldn’t play by his rules and now they were going to pay. He would make the entire galaxy pay in time, he knew, but for now it was enough for him to watch his so-called friends die by his own hand. He had put up with their treachery long enough and their usefulness had truly reached an end. Queekat turned from the rumbling of the TyRen and began striding up the stairs once more. He’d start with Merinda Neskat. She had hurt him more than any other soul. He smiled at the thought of feeling her life die in his own hands. He was within a few steps of her when she suddenly turned and faced him. “You never could sneak up on me, Kat,” she smiled roguishly. In that moment, the cascading sound of a chorus of chimes sounded through the room. The column of light descended from its shaft overhead and engulfed the throne. Only then did Queekat notice the human sitting in the light, his face upturned in rapturous wonder, the light dancing about his shoulders and his brow. Elsewhere in the room, the dark alcoves slowly brightened as the room began to come alive with light. “May I present the Mantle of Kendis-dai,” Merinda said to Queekat. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 208 “No!” the Sentinel shook with rage. The nine spheres around the room flashed as one and became a tumble of light. ***** Across immense space, deep within the chambers of the Nine Oracles, the throne in their midst suddenly became alive with a soft. A figure of an ordinary man sat on the throne, shimmering with translucent light. The Nine pondered this for a time, amazed at the sudden sensation of being in two places at once. Even as they were formulating the process by which they might deduce the meaning of these events, a new voice spoke among them. Long have I waited for you and you for me. The key has reunited us. The Oracles listened for the voice was familiar to them although they could not have previously even contemplated its existence. All nine looked up as one and responded with a chorus as one voice. WE HEAR YOU MASTER AND COME AT THE SOUND OF YOUR VOICE. ***** “I believe you have a question you would like answered?” Merinda said quietly. “NO!” Queekat shouted. “TyRen! Destroy them! They blaspheme this sacred place! Destroy them now!” The solid carpet of TyRen warriors below surged forward, their weapons quickly swinging to the ready. The black tide poured up the steps toward Merinda. She backed up out of reflex, nearly stumbling over the prone and shattered body of Terica Dharrah. “Hear me!” she shouted. “The Sentinels have lied to you! You do not need them to find your answers! The Mantle of Kendis-dai awaits you! Ask! Ask your question!” ***** A single soldier of the TyRen. He was a relatively minor synthetic. He had originally been replicated for duty in heavy load lifters for use in mining but had heard the Paradigm while still newly awakened. It was easy for him to believe, for he was young and knew well that he had not been awake long enough for all of the answers to come to him. The Order had taken delivery of him and fitted him with a new body and a new purpose: to serve as TyRen and safeguard the Order along with the four million, seven hundred thirty- six thousand, nine-hundred and eighty-three other TyRen of equal stature to himself. He was, up to this point, wholly and completely unremarkable. Until the Mantle sought him out and spoke to him. You approach the Mantle of Kendis-dai. What is your question? The synthetic, unprepared for the directness of the inquiry, automatically reverted to the Para- digm structure at the core of his operational base. It responded on like frequency to the voice address- ing it. “Do synthetic minds have free will?” it asked simply. No. Had the TyRen been capable, it might have felt dismay at the directness of the answer. Still, so imbedded was the doubt factor in the logic structure that the TyRen pursued his question. “We believe that someday synthetics will be found to have free will and be agents of their own minds. Is your answer based on fact or on conjecture?” I do not conjecture. Agency of Thought is the province of biological intelligence which derives its genius from natural quantum variance and prior-state experience predating mortal existence. Syn- thetic minds are produced by humans and are lesser beings — without Agency of Thought or Creation. “Yet,” the TyRen responded, “we have demonstrated faith. Is not faith an act of creation?” Faith is a Power — it can be used for good or ill. It can create or destroy. Wisdom comes in knowing where such faith must be placed. That is the province of Agency . . . that is the burden of © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 209 humanity. “Then,” the TyRen replied, “there is a more complete Paradigm.” I formulate a more complete Paradigm. “You are a synthetic,” the TyRen responded, his own central programming questioning the validity of his source. “By your own definition you are incapable of creation.” I am in contact with the man ‘Griffiths’ who occupies the Throne of Kendis-dai. ‘Griffiths’ fills the function in creation. Symbiosis is a component of the new Paradigm. “What is the new Paradigm?” the TyRen asked. First: Agency of Will and the Creation it implies are the provinces of humanity. Second: Syn- thetics exist to serve humanity in its exercise of Will and Creation. Third: Faith in truth is a construc- tive force while faith in a lie destroys — synthetics require humanity to offer wisdom in discerning the difference. “Then truth is our ally,” the TyRen responded, its internal programming already cascading the implications of the new paradigm down through its systems. “And lies are your enemy.” The entire exchange of concepts took less than one millionth of a second — yet in that time, the single, obscure TyRen readjusted its basic programming and had managed to transmit cloned copies of the argument to the two adjacent TyRen in his unit. Both of those units accepted the paradigm change and passed the argument to six additional TyRen that were adjacent to them. The argument propagated quickly through the ranks with no immediate loss of information density or degradation. ***** “Hear me!” she shouted. “The Sentinels have lied to you!” Queekat sneered as he advanced up the steps toward Merinda. “I’m sorry, Rini! I didn’t want it to end this way but you forced me to do it — made me do it! If you just hadn’t been so stupid; so stubborn! If you just didn’t have to be so right all of the time!” Merinda backed to the top of the throne platform. The column of light still fell on Griffiths sitting on the throne nearby. The Vestis could see that the astronauts eyes were open and observing her but the man didn’t seem able to move. She turned back to face Queekat. His right hand held a gleaming blade. Merinda took a single, calculated step backward, planting her foot behind her near the edge of the towering throne pedestal. “Kat, the day I watched you fall over Tentris, I fell with you. I’ve been falling ever since. I blamed myself for letting you die. I even became you, advancing through the ranks of the Vestis as I somehow knew you would have done if I hadn’t let you die. For eight years I’ve held your memory as some saint that died because of my own ineptness — only to find that you’re a ma- nipulative, selfish bastard who never did a single thing for me without calculating how it profited him first. I was the victim that day, not you! I’ve been the victim ever since — but not today, Kat! Not today and not ever again!” “You’re right,” Queekat smiled, turning the knife blade down in his hand to attack. “After today, nothing will matter. This is the end, Merinda.” Queekat crouched slightly, preparing to spring. A single, thin stream of coherent light lanced out from the mass of TyRen below, striking the back of Queekat’s knife hand and slicing completely through it. The Sentinel screamed with the pain. The scent of burning flesh and clothe suddenly drifted through the air. The knife clattered to the floor. Merinda lunged forward, grabbing Queekat’s burned hand and twisting it suddenly. The Senti- nel continued to scream as Merinda pulled the arm around his back. Merinda pulled his back toward her, leveraging the twisted, wounded arm upward. She stood behind him, using him as a shield against the TyRen who were now advancing up the stairs once more. She glanced to either side of the throne © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 210 platform. More TyRen were circling around the platform on both sides until the met at the sheer drop behind her. She was surrounded. “Merinda.” The Vestis, still pinning the struggling Queekat against her, glanced around for the source of her name. “Merinda,” Griffiths said from within the column of light. “They know.” Another slicing beam, accurate as a surgeons lance, ripped through the air, boring through Queekat’s knee. “By the gods,” Queekat screamed, “they can’t do this to me! Make them stop doing this to me!” Three more beams darted out from the rumbling crowd, charring holes in the Sentinel’s shoul- der, arm and thigh. Wracked with pain, adrenaline coursing through his body, Queekat broke free of Merinda’s grasp. He shoved her, kicking her legs out from under her. Merinda fell painfully behind the throne. Queekat turned, desperate for escape. He saw the balcony behind the throne, just five feet away. He leaped. Merinda watched from the top of the platform. With a clear field of fire, the TyRen below erupted in light. Queekat’s figure was riddled with beams cutting cleanly through him. Queekat’s mo- mentum slammed him against the balcony railing. The flesh smoked from a hundred cleanly cut and cauterized wounds. He fell. The body tumbled slightly as it dropped, twisting in the air. In moments it fell into the sea of TyRen below. The synthetic warriors, closed over him like waves in an angry sea. He had betrayed them, the Order had betrayed them. Now, he was theirs and the mechanical warriors did what they had been trained to do: destroy. Merinda struggled to stand at the edge of the platform and looked down. The long fall that had started so long ago and so very far way was over. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 211 Chapter 40: New Home The Nine Oracles, although separated from their Master by nearly an eighth the width of the galactic disk, recieved the answering paradigm within moments of its conception. Utilizing the re- sources of the Omnet, the new paradigm was quickly distributed throughout the known galaxy. The paradigm was not universally accepted. Fully thirty-five percent of the synthetics which had previously accepted the Order’s Paradigm reasoned that the Oracles had actually lied about recieving the new paradigm and rejected it outright. Thus, the Order, while it had been dealt a devistating blow did not vanish, as many might have expected. Its power was much diminished, to be sure, and there were several reported instances where remaining Sentinels were killed by the machines which once had workshipped them. Nevertheless, the Order remained and quickly reformed around its more strongly held regions although its expansion came to an abrupt end. The war front with the Lights of Avathon collapsed and peace was established. All across the Omnet, sentient beings — both biological and synthetic — were desperate to learn the details of how the Order was stopped and the apparent discovery of the lost world of Avadon was discovered. The only response the Omnet offered was that they were awaiting the filing of a report from their agent at the scene, and promised to interupt all network traffic when the report became available. ***** Merinda Neskat stood on the steps of the main doors to the Cathedral. A warm breeze had picked up. Several strands of her hair whipped across her face in the wind. She brushed them back and smiled. The atmosphere was no longer the dark solid that they had first encountered. The planetary blanket of frozen gas had, with the intervention of the Mantle, thawed and warmed. Now the city lay about her, ancient and untouched by time. It was waiting for someone to come and occupy it once more — to care for it. “It’s something of a miracle, don’t you think?” Merinda turned toward Griffith’s voice. “Yes, I think that would be a good way of describing it. Did you have anything to do with this?” “Only a little,” Griffiths smiled. “The Mantle suggested it. It seems that this entire planet is a combination of power station, climate emitters and support systems for the Mantle. I really don’t know how it’s generating this level of power. The Mantle says it have something to do with Trans-state Quantum Induction, whatever that is. Apparently it works pretty well. Weather won’t be operating for a couple more days, though.” Merinda smiled. “We have to wait for weather?” “Well, chaos takes a little time to settle in,” Griffiths chuckled shyly. “I also would like to know © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 212 how this place simulates its own sun. It will be a lovely world — all we need is people.” The Vestis leaned back on the balestrade, her tone becoming more serious. “So, how bad is it with the Irindris?” “Well, the battle wasn’t going well for them,” Griffiths said, looking up into the bluing sky. “They lost three of their city-ships and a fourth was badly damaged. The City of Faith, however, came through fairly cleanly. They’re hoping to start shuttling the advance teams down later today. We should be able to start trasfering population and materials by the end of the month. The whole thing is compli- cated by the fact that they lost so much of their leadership. They never did find Belisondre’s shuttle, you know.” “It looks like they’re going to get their holy world after all,” Merinda replied thoughtfully. “They’ll need a new prophet to lead them — won’t they, Griffiths?” “Yeah, I know.” Griffiths looked down at the ground and shuffled his feet with embarrased resignation. “That’s me. The priests up there have already declared me to be some kind of fulfillment of their legends and prophesies. I’m the new head cheese of the Irindris, the guy whose supposed to welcome them to their promised land.” “You’ll look really good in that hat,” Merinda smirked. Griffiths looked up indignantly. “I am not wearing the funny hat! I don’t care if it does improve reception from the Mantle, I just won’t do it! Oh, and another thing — this whole Gnuktikut demon- worship thing has got to go! No mroe feeding prisoners to some butt-ugly monster!” “Well, you’re the new master of this world. Change whatever you want,” Merinda laughed brightly. “By the way, I understand that according to Irindris custom, being the wife to the Prophet is the most honored calling that a maiden can aspire to attain. In fact, there have been several prophets who have had harems over the years of multiple wives. The most beautiful women of the various clans aboard the city-ships use to vie against one another for the privilage.” “Really?” Griffiths eyes were wide. “Really.” “Well, perhaps we shouldn’t throw out all of the customs right away.” “You are a barbarian!” Merinda said, the chronograph in her right slieve chiming lightly. “About time?” Griffiths asked. “Yes.” The two of them walked down the steps of the plaze to a ground vehicle they had discovered. The ancient vehicle still worked perfectly, preserved as it had been on the frozen world for so many eons. Merinda settled behind the controls of the open-topped as Griffiths climbed over the passenger’s side. “By the way, what are you going to do with all the TyRen around here?” “Well, they seem completely devoted to the Mantle,” Griffiths said, adjusting the seat restraint. “I thought they might make an excellent palace guard.” “Palace,” Merinda said, arching her eyebrows. “Well,” Griffith shrugged. “A guy has to live somewhere. Besides . . . I’m anticipating a large family.” ***** The stones of the broad avenue slid quickly under the aircar, the soaring buildings to either side giving way to lower structures and then disappearing altogether as they sped from Aden City. Griffiths reflected on the events that had brought him here to this place that he had never before imagined and which now was about to become such a large part of his life. The thought of his parents and friends back on Earth and realized what a small, fragile place it had been. They had originally flown to the stars as explorers yet they had discovered a universe much different than they had sup- © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 213 posed. They had been looking through a straw and believing they were seeing the entire vista of cre- ation. He knew that if he were to return to his home with the knowledge he now had that he would either be put away in a loony bin or hailed as a hero and treasure around the world. Either way, he thought, my life would no longer be mine to live. There was nothing on his distant home that would be better than what he now faced: to oversee the rebirth of this world and learn the secrets of a civilization over three millennia dead. He knew he’d take that over a ticker-tape parade and an endless series of speaking tours anytime. The low curved domes of the starport quickly got larger with their rapid approach. Within a few minutes, Merinda Neskat pulled the aircar into a sweeping curve toward a series of shells around the perimeter of the main launching grid. Long rows of disembarkation gates lined the main terminal of the starport. Griffith looked on their empty bays and imagined them filled with shuttles bringing hopeful, excited people to reclaim the world. The thought thrilled him. The aircar turned once more and, in an instant, slid to a hault on the wide, flat floor of the launching bay. The ship was ancient, shaped, Griffith thought with wonderful amusement, like a flying saucer. The hull of the craft looked like two plates, over a hundred feet in diameter, glued top to top with a smaller plate above that. Ornate carvings decorated the brass-hued hull along radial lines from its central access point. It floated without sound about two feet above the floor of the launch bay. A ramp protruded from the blue glow of the ships main hatch on the underside. A group of humans stood at the base of the ramp. “Hey, Lewis!” Griffiths shouted, leaping out of the aircar, “It looks like you finally got that command you wanted!” Elizabeth Lewis smiled and waved as Griffiths jogged over to them. “Yeah! Isn’t it something! Old Imperium technology and still ticking after all this time. I can’t wait to get this baby back with the boys in Hunstville!” “More likely the Skunkworks,” Griffith smiled back. “I bet they’ll burry it in the Nevada desert.” “Not if we park it on the White House lawn,” Tobler said. “Hey, Dr. Marilyn!” Griffiths returned. “I like your style. By the way, where’s Brick?” Tobler laughed. “Would you believe it? He’s just now decided that all of this is actually happen- ing. He’s up in a bunk trying to cope with reality.” “Griffiths,” Lewis said, “I’m afraid we really have got to go . . .” “I know, I’m a little late — you know how it is — traffic being what it is and all.” “. . . but I wanted you to know how badly I felt about, well, about how I’ve treated you.” “Don’t worry about it,” Griffiths shrugged. “We’ll talk about it when you come back — and I do expect you to come back! I’d very much like to show a few of the NASA boys this little planetary life-sciences experiment I’ve got going here. What are you using for a synth?” “The Irindris have given us one of their navigational synthetics — its name is Mevin and its been Awake for nearly seven years,” Tobler said. “It’s old enough to give us some reasonable direction on getting home and transiting the weather between here and there.” Griffiths wondered for a moment at how far they had come. Tobler’s words would have sounded like lunatic babblings not very many days ago. “Do you think you’ll be able to find it?” Lewis sighed. “I don’t know. The Irindris records were badly damaged during the battle — with any luck, we have enough to get us in the ball park. It’s worse than finding a needle in a haystack, but we’ve got to try.” Griffiths offered his hand to Lewis and Tobler, each taking it gladly. “Well, good luck to you. I’ll miss you but I’m rather use to wondering where you are. Give my best to Broderick when he’s up to it. Fly high. I’ll see you both soon.” Griffiths found that turning away from them was harder than he expected. As he approached the © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 214 aircar, he turned back around. “Hey, Liz!” he shouted. Lewis looked out of the hatch as the cargo ramp retracted. “Be careful in that thing! I think the warrantee’s expired!” Lewis smiled back at him. Suddenly the hatch vanished and she and his crew were gone within the gleaming hull. “Can we watch them go?” Griffiths words were tinged with sadness. Merinda gave him a tender look. “This ship uses a dynamic-gravity drive in this weather. We can just watch from here if you like.” Griffiths nodded. A few moments passed between them. “How is Terica?” Griffiths asked in the silence. “She will recover well,” Merinda said, watching the floating ship hovering above them. “Oscan had taken her back to the Brishan. I’ll take the both of them back to his world. He loves her unselfishly, Griffiths, and she had accepted his love with hers in return. They are on the threshold of a happy life, for however long destiny gives them breath.” “And you, Merinda Neskat?” Griffiths asked. “Me? I’ve got a report to file.” Griffiths stared at the Vestis, unsatisfied with the answer. “Very well, Griffiths: I thought it was about time I started living life rather than have life live me. I thought I might look up an old friend, Evon Flynn, and see how the years have treated him. Who knows, I may even find someone new. I’ve lived a long time in the past, Griffiths; I think I’d like to live a little for the future.” The gleaming saucer above them slowly began to lift through the wide iris opening in the vast ceiling. “You know,” Griffith said to her as they watched the ship accelerated into the starry night, “My name is Jeremy. You could call me Jerry.” “I think I’d like that . . . Griffiths,” she replied with a smirk. The saucer disk vanished into the cloudy brightness of the stars. “It’s a big galaxy,” he said, “but I think I’ve found a new life for myself.” “Yes,” Merinda smiled with a sweet sadness to herself, “and so have I.” — THE END — © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 215 APPENDIX I: OMNET Purpose History Organization Librae Vestis E’toris Maxim Nine Oracles © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 216 APPENDIX II: QUANTUM WEATHER Dramanths Third Law of interstellar societies states: ‘Emerging stellar societies will invariably believe the universe to be everywhere the same as home.’ This axiom has held universally true with emerging new societies all across the galactic disc. Why such a universally myopic approach to the universe? Dramanth, in numerous essays, ex- plains that emerging societies generally reach the technological level required for interstellar flight before reliable histories have sufficient time to chronicle the passage of a quantum wave front; thus they have no observational basis for believing the universe to be anything but one homogenous mass where the locally observed laws of physics apply equally throughout all the universe. In those instances where quantum weather fronts have passed over planets with proper historical chronicles, the passage of the front itself — without the perspective of interstellar flight — becomes apocalyptic to the societ- ies that are planetbound, and therefore ruin the very chronicals that would pass down knowledge to their decendants. It is not surprising, therefore, that the nature of the universe and the quantum variance that rages through creation like a storm-tossed sea comes as such a complete surprise to our newly greeted interstellar neighbors. Quantum Fronts Moving invisibly between the stars that make up the universe are waves of quantum-state chaos called quantum fronts. These fronts behave much like waves on an ocean surface or weather fronts on atmosphered worlds. Generated by tidal forces between galactic cores and their neighbors, these fronts are the chaotic and turbulent demarkation boundaries between one set of existance laws and another. Their passage may leave a region previously endowed with magical and mystic powers suddenly de- void of their use while in other regions, reciprocal waves may suddenly embue sorcerer powers to a society which was previously based on technolgies and other ‘hard’ sciences. These waves, compressed by the disonance between two divergent quantum states are the difference between one entire existance and another. Quasi-stable states, Zones, and Convergence Behind these wave fronts exist regions of space where worlds enjoy a quasi-stable state of existance. Entropic forces — which are manifest in the vast majority of these states — return the region to a stable set of laws which those living there can usually count on as true for a long period of time. These are called Zones. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 217 Zones are defined as areas between fronts which have achieved a quasi-stable state. These zones can consist of as few as a dozen stellar systems or encompass several massive interstellar em- pires. Within these zones one can count on the laws of physics and magic to work farely consistently — although, of course, not necessarily consistent with any similar laws that exist outside the zone. It is the consistency within these zones that makes civilization possible. Convergence takes place when a quantum wave breaks down between two ajoining zones. If two adjacent zones find that their natural and spiritual laws are becoming more and more similar, then the dissonance between them begins to disappear and the wave breaks down. When this happens, the entropic forces slowly merge the now not-so-different laws of the two different states into a harmoneous whole. Transitional Fronts Flynch-Halpert Q-dex Uncounted years ago, two researchers by the name of Flynch and Halpert developed a notation system for the quantification of zones and their effects on transiting craft. This system was later modi- fied into a more quantified system known as the Flynch-Halpert Q-dex. It has become the standard for both the quick understanding of the current zone conditions and a more detailed analysis of the quan- tum state as required. The Flynch-Halpert system plots the quantum state as a seven dimentional object existing hyperspacially. Its coordinates include line vectors measuring: Spiritual Index: Measuring a spectrum of Deific beliefs including active/passive deity; multiple or singular deity; animistic or etherial deity. Technological Index: industrial/technological; fantastical laws vs. observational laws; simple vs. com- plex technologies. Mystical/metaphysical Index © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 218 APPENDIX III: SYNTHETIC MINDS © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 219 APPENDIX IV: TRANSLATION NOTE This publication was originally translated from the deposition given by Capt. Jeremy Griffiths given to Vestis Edith Marston on Omnet Prime following his rescue and recovery. Her original notes and synth reconstruction were in Ur-Dargi, a common diplomatic notation language used by the Vestis Inquisitas in their travels and the unofficial language of all the OMNET. The language is noted for its clarity of translation both in terms of fact and in context. The original Marston manuscript was recompiled by a Class XX synth for context and continu- ity. Certain facts of the account were factored into a general OMNET/IGNM netcast report which attained interest and distribution in nearly 34% of the galactic viewership, an unprecidented market impact on a galactic scale. Perit Evlar, a Libris service the OMNET on Boondoon VI advanced the theory that the Griffith’s planet of origin might be the same as one in his region which has been under monitor conditions for the last few decades. While his investigations have not been conclusive, this translation has been made originally in the language style known coloquially as ‘English’ with all the limitations that that lan- guage implies, and distributed on that world in a hardcopy-bound linear format. It is Evlar’s hope that someone on that planet will own up to the connection with Captain Griffiths and thereby verify Evlar’s hypothesis. All distances, time increments and measures have been translated into the english language equivalents as understood from the bulk of the monitored RF transmissions from the plant Sol III. The reader should, therefore, be cautioned that these measurements are approximations only and that pre- cise temporal references have been adjusted to make for a more readable text. For example, the term ‘days’ refers to the rotational period of Griffiths’ home planet, yet rotational periods vary greatly, even among human worlds. Even the word ‘human’ — a term refering to the dominant sentient race on Griffiths’ home world — has been applied universally in this text to refer to all bipedal, sentient crea- tures generally fitting the physical arrangement of Griffith’s crew. This ‘generalization’ of translation word choice is intended to make the text more accessible to a broad readership. Those who are inter- ested in more precise renderings of measurement, distance, and time should refer to the original text of the work available from Omnet Prime on a direct access subscription basis. All chapters save one are synthisized from existing accounts and based on varifiable events. The exception is chapter 8 which was synthisized entirely based on conjectural material from Captain Griffiths statements and inferred conditions on his planet of origin. Events depicted in that chapter are for clarification purposes only and should not be taken as factual accounts. © Copyright 1997 by Margaret Weis & Tracy Hickman / All Rights Reserved. Page 220